Location via proxy:   [ UP ]  
[Report a bug]   [Manage cookies]                

The Genesis Conflict

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 390

THE GENESIS CONFLICT

by
Walter J. Veith

The Genesis Conflict

Copyright
2002
Amazing Discoveries
All rights reserved. No part of this book may be reproduced,
transmitted, transcribed, or translated in any language in any
form by any means without permission in writing from the
publisher.
Scripture quotations, unless otherwise noted, are taken from
The Authorized Version
Editor: Wendy Goubej Penner
Cover Design: Brian S. Neumann
ISBN: 0-9682363-5-9
Printed in South Africa
Published by:
AMAZING DISCOVERIES
PO BOX 189
7101C-120th Street
Delta, BC V4E 2A9

Table of Contents
Preface......................................................................................5
1 - A Basis for Conflict............................................................9
2 - Cosmology and the Earth.................................................53
3 - The Fossil Record...........................................................105
4 - Evidence in Stone...........................................................157
5 - The Origin of Life and Variability..................................189
6 - Creation to Restoration...................................................245
7 - Written in Stone: Archaeology Confirms the Bible..........313
8 - Stones That Speak..........................................................357

The Genesis Conflict

Preface

PREFACE

We are living in an age of unprecedented technological
advances where computer wizardry and space technology are the
order of the day. Our hyper-technological world is proof of the
power of science, and the scientific fraternity is highly respected as
a consequence. When it comes to the question of origins, however,
science and religion seem to be at loggerheads, and generally the
world at large accepts the word of science over the Word of God
in these issues. The theory of naturalistic origins is virtually the
only theory that is publicized in the media, the educational systems,
and the museums of the world today, and the Biblical accounts on
these issues are generally relegated to the realms of myths or at
best a form of poetry. It is not only in the field of origins that the
Scriptures are questioned, but they are also doubted with regard to
their historic and prophetic content. In this regard the modern historical critical method has disseminated the Bible to such a degree
that only a skeleton remains of that which is considered relevant.

The conflict between science and Scripture is severe, and
many an individual has floundered on the shores of unbelief as a
consequence. Many have opted for compromise in order to stay
afloat in a sea of uncertainty, but the question may well be raised
whether compromise is possible at all. The fact of the matter is that
most of the religious world has opted for compromise and teaches
that the physical world originated through naturalistic means whilst
the church operates and deals with the spiritual world. The problem
is, however, that the very Word they base their spiritual teaching
on has much to say on the physical world as well. Moreover, many
spiritual teachings have their basis in physical realities, and Gods
claims regarding His relationship with man are based on ownership
because, according to the Scriptures, He created all things.

The Genesis Conflict



In spite of the almost overwhelming support for the views
expounded by the voice of science, there is a growing trend toward a
literal acceptance of the Biblical accounts on the question of origins
and with regard to the historic content of the Scriptures. The science
of archaeology has done much in recent years to confirm the veracity of the Bible with regard to its historic content, and as more and
more evidence as to the awesome complexity of living organisms
emerges, more and more naturalistic scientists are leaning toward
the concept of origin by design. Advances in our understanding
of the genome have provided new avenues to explain the varieties of species other than by natural selection, and the information
preserved in the geological and palaeontological record is being
revisited in the light of new information. The sword of technology
is cutting both ways and is opening up new possibilities in the study
and interpretation of the origin of the natural world. The conflict
between science and Scripture is not over; indeed the final battle
has only just begun. The reader is invited to sift the evidence and
to decide for himself or herself which side of the conflict he or she
would like to stand.

Preface

ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
I am indebted to many people for their unselfish assistance in the
gathering of the information recorded in this book. I wish to thank
the international Amazing Discoveries team, particularly Wendy
Penner and Wenzel and Dagmar Goubej, for all their hard work. I
would also like to thank Brian Neumann for the cover design and
thanks go to the team at the Geoscience Research Institute, in particular I would like to thank Drs. Ariel Roth, Harold Coffin, James
Gibson and Clyde Webster for helping me with my initial conflict
and for all their support since then. Special thanks go to my dear
friend Francois du Plessis with whom I had the privilege of travelling to many archaeological sites in the world and who never tired
of climbing tell after tell. I would also like to thank him for all his
advice and support as well as all the material he made available to
me. Finally, thanks go to my wonderful wife, Sonica, for her patience
and support and the many times she had to hold the fort alone whilst
this information was being gathered.

The Genesis Conflict

A BASIS
FOR CONFLICT

The purpose of this chapter is to define the parameters of the
theological conflict between science and the Bible and not to provide
scientific data to substantiate the veracity of the Scriptural claims. The
scientific aspects will be dealt with in subsequent chapters.

To most scientists in the world today, the theory of evolution is no longer just a theory, but is regarded as a fact. There are
differences of opinion regarding the tempo, mode and mechanisms
of evolution, but the basic concepts of the theory have become an
established paradigm. Even in the religious world, old animosities
between science and religion have been largely forgotten and are
shrugged off as unfortunate history based on ignorance. After all, the
church has made mistakes in the past and has had to acknowledge
its errors in the face of overwhelming scientific evidence against its
stand. Science has gained the ascendancy in this battle and in the light
of the awe-inspiring discoveries and progress in the civilized world
attributed to science, who is there who would dare to contradict its
paradigms? The educational systems of the world bear witness to this
total regard for the voice of science, as they propagate naturalistic

The Genesis Conflict


worldviews on origins to the exclusion of all others. Moreover,
proponents of the literary critical method have questioned the Bible not only on issues concerning origins, but on historical content
as well.

The theory of evolution is presented in secondary and tertiary
institutions as the only feasible theory of origins and even at the primary educational levels, evolutionary concepts are imprinted in young
minds as indisputable facts. Alternative models are regarded with
skepticism, even ridiculed, but in spite of these odds, there still exists
a large body of people, including eminent scientists, who believe in a
personal creator God and support a literal interpretation of the Genesis
account. This fact may astound some evolutionary scientists, but it is
indeed true. In 1999, a book was published in which fifty scientists
with PhDs confirmed their faith in a literal creation account. The book
In Six Days - why 50 scientists choose to believe in creation was
published after a research scientist at Marquarie University in Sydney challenged the concept that even one scientist with a PhD would
advocate a literal interpretation of the Genesis account. Rising to the
challenge, the Editor of the book sought to show that many scientists
would be prepared to defend their faith on scientific grounds. All the
contributors had doctorates from State recognized universities from
around the world and included university professors and researchers,
geologists, zoologists, biologists, physicists, chemists, mathematicians, medical researchers and engineers. Many many more would
have contributed had space allowed.1

Evolutionary scientists argue that creationism is not science,
as it is based on preconceived ideologies which exclude it from the
realms of science. Religious views and revelations are not subject to
the scientific method and the two worldviews on origins need thus to
be kept separate. This sounds like a sound argument, but what if the
facts actually fit the Biblical paradigm? On the basis of them being
recorded in Scripture, would they then be excluded from the realms
of science and thus also from the realms of fact as well as from the
educational system? Right would then be excluded on the grounds of
having been preconceived and truth would be thrown to the ground.
10

1 - A Basis for Conflict


If this scenario were indeed true, then science would be left groping in the dark outside of the defined parameters of truth. There are
only these two possibilities. The world as we know it came into
existence by naturalistic processes or it was created by an intelligent
designer. No other possible choices exist.

In my own life, I have been confronted with this dilemma
and have sat on both sides of this fence. For most of my life, I was
a committed evolutionist and presented the theory of evolution
to my students as an established fact. I received my training at a
secular university, well known for its ground breaking research and
views on evolution. World-renowned evolutionary scientists such
as Robert Broom, of Mrs. Ples fame, had molded the thinking and
direction of the Zoology department where I received most of my
training and there was no room for any other paradigm. For twenty
years of my teaching and research career, I was so committed to the
naturalistic view of origins that there was no room for alternative
explanations.

As a young lecturer, I was occasionally confronted by students who believed in a literal creation, but this made no impact on
me. Occasionally we would even entertain creationists at the university and would then delight in tearing their arguments apart and
ridiculing their efforts in our subsequent lectures to our students. It
was not that we were devious in these endeavors. It was just a matter
of the two worldviews being so far removed from each other that
the differences were irreconcilable. Our worldview was obviously
right; therefore the other had to be ridiculous. Thinking back on
these events makes me realize that our worldview embraced more
than just Science. It embraced religion. The Biblical paradigm was
rejected in favor of ours and we would defend it vehemently even
acrimoniously, but what were we defending other than a theory
of origins? Yes to our minds it was not a theory, it had become a
fact in spite of the fact that the origin of all things is not subject to
scientific empirical research but must always remain in the realms
of faith - faith in a naturalistic process or faith in God.

This conflict between these opposing worldviews is nowhere
11

The Genesis Conflict


fought as rigorously than at the tertiary institutes of the world, but it
is also a conflict which rages at many other levels of society not least
of which is in the minds of men. Yes, there have been attempts to
reconcile the two views by propagating some form of theistic evolution, but this halfway measure is equally unacceptable to the atheistic
evolutionist who has no room in his paradigm for a Higher Being.
Moreover, there are so many theological problems associated with this
compromise, that the rigorous Bible believer is also not in a position
to embrace this ideology. The conflict is fierce and it is not possible
to resolve it peacefully, as I was to discover for myself.

Models of Compromise

Theories that have been proposed to find some form of
compromise between science and Scripture have become more
common as efforts to reconcile the two worldviews have increased
over the last decades. Basically, there are two worldviews which are
mutually exclusive if we wish to accept them in their fullness; these
are a belief in a literal six-day creation or a belief in naturalistic
evolution. In his book Origins, Linking Science and Scripture, Ariel
Roth lists and discusses the various alternative models that have been
proposed to bridge the gap between these two views.2 Only a brief
summary of some of these alternate models will be presented here,
but the theological problems associated with them will be discussed
in greater detail.
The Gap Theory - which proposes two cycles of creation. An initial
six-day creation that is destroyed by God and is followed by a gap
whereupon the present creation described in Genesis follows. This
interpretation then allows for long time periods. However, there is
no evidence of a gap in the fossil record and this model raises more
questions than it answers.

12

1 - A Basis for Conflict


Progressive Creation - which proposes that God created numerous
times and that these creation episodes were spread over long ages.
Scripture does not support this theory with its Day-Age concept.
Theistic Evolution - which proposes that God directs the process of
evolution and helps it along when it comes to the difficult barriers.
Deistic Evolution - which adheres to the concept of some form
of God, but denies Scripture and the personal nature of God. God,
according to this model, is not active in human affairs.
Pantheistic Evolution - which proposes that God is part of creation and is in all things. All things are thus part of God and are
sacred. Man is thus also, in a sense, God and together with God is
evolving to a higher level. This view forms part of Eastern culture,
earth, and Gaia worship and God becomes both the destroyer and
the progenitor of life and is both good and evil or Ying and Yang.
This view also directly contradicts Scripture.
Space Ancestry (Panspermia or Cosmic Creation) - which
proposes that life did not evolve on earth but was transported to
earth via meteorites or other stellar sources, even extraterrestrial
planting of life on earth. The idea originated in view of the unlikely
scenario for life evolving on earth and in a sense transports the
problem to space.

13

The Genesis Conflict

The Theological Barrier to Compromise



H.G. Wells the well-known science fiction writer, historian,
and Fabian Socialist wrote concerning the evolution of man:
If all animals and man had been evolved in this
ascendant manner, then there had been no first
parents, no Eden and no Fall. And if there had
been no fall, then the entire historical fabric of
Christianity, the story of the first sin and the reason
for the atonement, upon which current teaching
based Christian emotion and morality, collapsed
like a house of cards. 3
This statement lies at the heart of the issue of compromise. Models of compromise allow room for a creator God who somehow
uses naturalistic processes to direct the evolution of all life forms
or a creator who created matter and stands back and allows the
evolutionary process to run its own course without interference.
The Biblical account is regarded as an allegory and at best the
days of creation are considered to represent long periods of time
in harmony with naturalistic models. Man then came about by
chance or he is the product of directed evolution. This concept is
still vaguely compatible with the evolutionary viewpoint that is
so boldly stated by George Gaylord Simpson, one of the doyens
of evolution, who in 1949 wrote the following:
Although many details remain to be worked out, it
is already evident that all the objective phenomena
of the history of life can be explained by purely
naturalistic or, in a proper sense of the sometimes
abused word, materialistic factors. They are
readily explicable on the basis of differential
reproduction in populations (the main factor in

14

1 - A Basis for Conflict


the modern conception of natural selection) and of
the mainly random interplay of the known processes
of heredity.... Man is the result of a purposeless
and natural process that did not have him in mind
(Emphasis Added). 4

The Beginning

Theistic evolutionists may not quite subscribe to this extreme
atheistic view, but, in their opinion, man is still the product of a naturalistic process subject to natural selection, an end product of an eon
old struggle for survival of the fittest. This, of necessity, implies that
the less fit did not make it and that their lineage has been relegated
to the scrap heap of extinction. This view is in direct conflict with
the plainest statements of Scripture and requires substantial intellectual gymnastics in order to achieve some form of consensus. The
Scriptures plainly state that the origin of the physical and biological
world lies with God, and that man was created in the image of God
for a purpose. The cosmology of the Bible leaves no room for a
naturalistic origin of the universe or of living organisms. The very
first statement in Scripture identifies God as the Creator:
In the beginning, God created the Heavens and the
Earth. Genesis 1:1
This statement does not define when this beginning took place,
and many consider it to provide room for long ages by placing this
beginning into the nebulous past and allowing for a more recent
biological creation. However, this would create problems with the
creation of the sun and the moon, which according to the creation
account were only created on day four. Verse 16 also states that
God made the stars also, but this could be a parenthetical statement
and could allow for the stars to have been created at an earlier time.

15

The Genesis Conflict


However, the use of the definite article the in the words In the
beginning implies a definite time for this beginning and not some
nebulous past event. The use of the same definite article in the
designation of the days of creation, i.e. the first day, the second
day etc. also implies a literal twenty four hour day and not long
periods of time. This is further substantiated by the designation
of ordinal numbers for the days (day one, day two, ) which
also points to a literal 24 hour day (Hebrew yom).

The heavens, according to Scripture, were thus not
derived from an arbitrary process but were created by God and
proclaim the glory of God.
The Heavens declare the glory of God, the skies
proclaim the work of His hands. Psalms 19:1
When I consider thy heavens, the work of thy
fingers, the moon and the stars, which thou hast
ordained. Psalm 8:3
Thou, even thou, art Lord alone; thou hast
made heaven, the heaven of heavens, with all
their host, the earth, and all [things] that [are]
therein, the seas, and all that is therein, and
thou preservest them all; and the host of heaven
worshippeth thee. Nehemiah 9:6
Seek him that maketh the seven stars and Orion,
. Amos 5:8
He telleth the number of the stars; He calleth them
all by [their] names. Psalm 147:4
An interesting verse on cosmology in the Bible is found in the
book of Job:

16

1 - A Basis for Conflict


Canst thou bind the sweet influences of Pleiades,
or loose the bands of Orion? Job 38:31

Within galaxies, there are different kinds of star clusters
known as Galactic Clusters or Open Clusters, and practically all
of them are flying apart rapidly. The reason for this phenomenon
appears to be that there is not enough mass to hold them together,
but the Pleiades seem to be an exception to this rule since there
appears to be sufficient mass to hold the cluster together and to
prevent it from disrupting. Scientists call such a cluster a bound
cluster. Moreover, astronomical observations show that the belt
of Orion is certainly being loosened. The stars in the constellation are moving apart rapidly, and one of the clusters in the Orion
constellation, the famous Trapezium is flying apart so rapidly
that cosmologists are astounded, since by all calculations they
could have been touching just thousands of years ago. The question posed to Job only really finds meaning in our time where the
science of cosmology is expanding our vision of the universe.

These verses quoted previously leave no room for compromise on the issue of who created the universe and who holds
it together. The method of creation is also clearly defined:
By the word of the Lord were the heavens made;
and all the host of them by the breath of His mouth.
For he spake, and it was done; He commanded,
and it stood fast. Psalm 33:6,9
Creation not only points to Gods existence but also places responsibilities on us as well:
For the invisible things of him from the creation of the
world are clearly seen, being understood by the things
that are made, even His eternal power and Godhead;
so that they are without excuse. Romans 1:20

17

The Genesis Conflict


The Old and the New Testament are in complete agreement on the
issue of creation and introduce a personal creator who not only
created man in His image, but also redeemed him after the fall.
According to the Scriptures, the creator who spoke and it stood
fast was none other than Jesus Christ Himself:
God, who at sundry times and in divers manners
spake in time past unto the fathers by the prophets,
hath in these last days spoken unto us by His Son,
whom He hath appointed heir of all things, by
whom also He made the worlds. Hebrews 1:1,2
And to make all men see what is the fellowship
of the mystery, which from the beginning of the
world hath been hid in God, who created all
things by Jesus Christ. Ephesians 3:9
In the beginning was the Word, and the Word
was with God, and the Word was God. All things
were made by him; and without him was not any
thing made that was made. He was in the world,
and the world was made by him, and the world
knew him not. And the Word was made flesh, and
dwelt among us. John 1:1,3,10,14
In this verse we also have the words In the beginning, but in
the original Greek the definite article the is omitted, unlike its
equivalent verse in Genesis 1. In the Hebrew mindset and syntax,
this implies that there was no definite beginning to the Word, but
that the Word was there from the beginning. It is this incredible
attention to detail, which underscores the veracity of the Scriptures. Further verses showing Jesus Christ to be the Creator are:

18

1 - A Basis for Conflict


But to us there is but one God, the Father, of whom
are all things, and we in Him; and one Lord Jesus
Christ, by whom are all things, and we by him.
1 Corinthians 8:6
For by him were all things created, that are in heaven,
and that are in earth, visible and invisible, whether
[they be] thrones, or dominions, or principalities, or
powers: all things were created by Him, and for
Him: And He is before all things, and by Him all
things consist. Colossians 1:16,17

This Jesus Christ, according to the Scriptures, is none other
than God manifest in the flesh who made the earth to be inhabited, for
His good pleasure, and who will come again to redeem His people.
Looking for that blessed hope, and the glorious
appearing of the great God and our Saviour Jesus
Christ; Who gave himself for us, that He might
redeem us from all iniquity, and purify unto Himself
a peculiar people, zealous of good works.
Titus 2:13,14
For thus saith the Lord that created the heavens; God
Himself that formed the earth and made it; He hath
established it, He created it not in vain, He formed
it to be inhabited: I am the Lord; and there is none
else. Isaiah 45:18
These statements leave no room for a pantheon of gods and make
God personally responsible for every detail of creation. According
to Genesis 1:27, God created man in His own image, and He created
them male and female. Moreover, the creation was a personal act, the
pinnacle of His creation and not the result of evolution from chaos.

19

The Genesis Conflict


And the Lord God formed man of the dust of the
ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath
of life; and man became a living soul. And the
Lord God caused a deep sleep to fall upon Adam,
and he slept: and he took one of his ribs, and closed
up the flesh instead thereof; And the rib, which the
Lord God had taken from man, made he a woman,
and brought her unto the man. Genesis 2:7, 21, 22
Man was not only created in the image of God, but he was also
assigned a position of authority and was to rule over the earth.
And God said, Let us make man in our image, after
our likeness: and let them have dominion over the fish
of the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over the
cattle, and over all the earth, and over every creeping
thing that creepeth upon the earth. Genesis 1:26
There is not the slightest room for evolutionary ideas to be substantiated by these plain statements of Scripture. Moreover, the problem
is compounded by the Scriptural account of the events subsequent
to the creation of man. Life was granted man on condition of obedience to God's ordinances and would be forfeited on disobedience.
The test of obedience was the tree of the knowledge of good and
evil from which Adam and Eve were forbidden to eat. The day they
should choose to disobey, they would become subject to death.
But of the tree of the knowledge of good and evil,
thou shalt not eat of it: for in the day that thou eatest
thereof thou shalt surely die. Genesis 2:17
For the wages of sin is death; but the gift of God
[is] eternal life through Jesus Christ our Lord.
Romans 6:23

20

1 - A Basis for Conflict


Herein lies a further dilemma for theistic evolutionists. Death, according to the Scriptures, is a consequence of sin, but according
to the theory of evolution, death is the means of advancement to
a higher level. The survival of the fittest to the detriment (death)
of the less fit is the means whereby progress is made. Without the
constant cycle of death and survival, no evolutionary progress is
possible. Once again, the two worldviews are in disharmony with
each other. This however, is not the least of the compromises that
the theistic evolutionists have to make in order to fit their worldview into the stranglehold of the Scriptural texts. The sequence
of events portrayed in creation week cannot be synchronized with
evolutionary events either.

In Six Days

Compromise models often convert the literal 24-hour
days of Genesis 1 into long time periods during which evolutionary events occurred. Not only does the use of the definite article
the in the designation of the days imply a literal 24-hour day,
but also the specific mention of the day cycle, it was evening and
it was morning further underscores a literal intent in the rendering of the text. Moreover, the order and sequence of the events
of creation week portray not only a different sequence to that of
supposed evolutionary events, but implies a radically different
intent as well. The first three days of the creation week deal with
the creation of the physical environment and the next three days
deal with the filling of that environment. On day one God creates
light, on day two He creates the firmament and on day three He
creates the earth with food.

21

The Genesis Conflict

ORDER OF CREATION WEEK


Days 1 & 4 - Light & Bodies of Light
Days 2 & 5 - Firmament & Filling of Firmament
Days 3 & 6 - Earth with Food / Filling the Earth


The events of days one and four highlight the fact that God is
the source of light and is not reliant on bodies of light for provision of
that light. On day two, the firmament is divided. The waters below,
which represent the earthly waters, whilst the firmament above
represents the heavens and must represent the atmosphere as this is
to be filled with flying creatures on the fifth day. On the third day,
God creates the terrestrial environment by gathering the water into
one place and letting dry land appear in another. He then creates the
plants, which are to serve as food for the life forms to be created on
the subsequent days. This leaves no room for co-evolution of plants
and animals, which is a basic premise of the evolutionary theory.
Here the plants are designed as a source of food and the animals
that will make use of these for sustenance are specifically created
to occupy the prepared niche. Any co-dependence is thus by virtue
of design rather than by virtue of evolution.

On the fourth day, the heavenly bodies - the sun and the
moon, were created, and the dilemma is that if the days of creation
are to represent long eons of time, then the plants would have existed
without a sun for millions of years if the time sequence of the Genesis
account is to be harmonized with the evolutionary paradigm.

On the fifth day, God created all the creatures that swim in
the waters and all the creatures that fly, and on the sixth day, He
created the creatures that occupy the terrestrial environment. Here
again there is a problem of reconciling the Biblical record of the
days of creation with long time periods. According to the theory of

22

1 - A Basis for Conflict


evolution birds and mammals evolved from reptiles. Reptiles are
terrestrial animals and would have been created on the sixth day,
but the creation account places the creation of all flying creatures
in the fifth day. Birds and flying mammals would thus have preceded their ancestors. A similar problem is encountered when we
consider the marine mammals such as the whales, dolphins, and
seals which would also precede their ancestors as they were also
created on the fifth day, but according to the evolutionary theory,
these marine mammals are the product of a secondary incursion
of the sea by certain eutherian land mammals.

According to the Scriptures, the creation of man is the
crowning act of Gods creation. Towards the end of the sixth
day, God created man and gave him dominion over the rest of
the creation. Man was also created in the image of God.
So God created man in His own image, in the
image of God created He him; male and female
created He them. And God blessed them, and
God said unto them, Be fruitful, and multiply,
and replenish the earth, and subdue it: and have
dominion over the fish of the sea, and over the
fowl of the air, and over every living thing that
moveth upon the earth. And God said, Behold,
I have given you every herb bearing seed, which
is upon the face of all the earth, and every tree,
in the which is the fruit of a tree yielding seed; to
you it shall be for meat. And to every beast of the
earth, and to every fowl of the air, and to every
thing that creepeth upon the earth, wherein there
is life, I have given every green herb for meat:
and it was so. And God saw every thing that He
had made, and, behold, it was very good. And
the evening and the morning were the sixth day.
Genesis 1:27-28

23

The Genesis Conflict



These verses create even more problems for those who
wish to live on common ground and embrace both Scripture and
the theory of evolution. Firstly, man was created in the image of
God, and in Genesis 2:7 we read that God formed man personally. He was thus not the product of an evolutionary process, but a
noble creation reflecting the attributes of God Himself. Moreover,
He created them male and female with the ability to reproduce.
This simple statement is one of the most difficult to explain in
terms of naturalistic processes, for how did the complex genetic
mechanisms, which make this process possible evolve?

According to the above passage of Scripture, man and
all the animals were total vegetarians and no carnivores existed.
This would of necessity be so, because according to the Scriptures
there was no death prior to the fall. Some may argue that plants
are living organisms and that there must therefore have been some
form of death before the fall because surely the plants are killed
when they are eaten, but the Scriptures define plants as food, not
as living animals. Although plants consist of living cells and are
thus living food, they do not represent the same category of life
as the animals. Moreover, Leviticus 17:11 defines that life is in
the blood, and plants have no blood nor do they have a nervous
system. This is quite the reverse of what is believed by evolutionists. The cycles of death and violence, predator and prey relationships, co-evolutionary strategies and counterstrategies, these are
all vital to the evolutionary paradigm, but the Scriptures speak
of perfect harmony and coexistence between species and very
good (perfect) adaptations to meet the niche requirements of
all species. The pre-fall world, according to the Scriptures was
thus radically different from what we see in the world today. This
implies mega-change and not uniformitarianism. Surely, it will
be argued, that the carnivores of today are admirably adapted for
their lifestyle and that this must support evolution; but even here
there are two sides to the coin and this issue will be discussed in
greater detail later.

24

1 - A Basis for Conflict



Finally there is the issue of the seventh day which rounds
off the creation week. What was the purpose of the seventh day?
And on the seventh day God ended His work which
He had made; and He rested on the seventh day
from all His work which He had made. Genesis 2:2
The Hebrew word for 'rested' is 'Shabath'. Strongs concordance
defines it as:
7673. shabath, shawbath; a prim. root; to
repose, i.e. desist from exertion; used in many
impl. relations (caus., fig. or spec.):(cause to,
let, make to) cease, celebrate, cause (make) to fail,
keep (sabbath), suffer to be lacking, leave, put
away (down), (make to) rest, rid, still, take away.
God also blessed the seventh day, which means that He set it
aside for holy use.
And God blessed the seventh day, and sanctified
it: because that in it He had rested from all His
work which God created and made. Genesis 2:3
After the fall, the Sabbath became a sign of obedience and adherence
to God, whereas before the fall the test of obedience was the tree of
the knowledge of good and evil. Speaking about the Sabbath, God
commanded the children of Israel to keep it for it is linked to His creative act and by keeping it, they would acknowledge His ownership.
It is a sign between me and the children of Israel
for ever: for in six days the Lord made heaven
and earth, and on the seventh day He rested, and
was refreshed. Exodus 31:17

25

The Genesis Conflict



The Hebrew word used here for refreshed is naphash
and in this verse a different word is used for rested; it is the word
nuwach. Strong's defines these words as:
5314. naphash, nawfash; a prim. root; to breathe;
pass, to be breathed upon, i.e. (fig.) refreshed (as
if by a current of air):(be) refresh selves (ed).
5117. nuwach, nooakh; a prim. root; to rest, i.e.
settle down; used in a great variety of applications,
lit. and fig., intrans., trans. and causat. (to dwell,
stay, let fall, place, let alone, withdraw, give
comfort, etc.):cease, be confederate, lay, let down,
(be) quiet, remain, (cause to, be at, give, have, make
to) rest, set down. Comp. H3241.

These verses throw some light on the purpose for the Sabbath or the Seventh day of the creation week. Firstly, it clearly points
to God as the Creator during the six-day creation cycle since it was
set as a memorial to His creative act. Secondly, God was refreshed
(naphash) on that day, He breathed a breath of satisfaction or sigh
of contentment. He also rested (nuwach); He was confederate; in
other words He was in the company of His creation; He spent time
with them.

If we consider the sequence of the events during the six
days of creation, then there is a distinct pattern to be discerned.
God created the spaces and the sustenance for His creation in the
first three days and then filled these spaces in the subsequent three
days, then followed the seventh day. Following the same pattern,
the setting aside of the Sabbath, or the creation of a further block of
time - the seventh day - was in a sense also creating a space, a space
in time. What did God fill this space with? He filled it with Himself
by drawing close to His creation. The basis of all relationships is
togetherness, commonality, fellowship and trust. In creating man

26

1 - A Basis for Conflict


in His own image, God had noble intentions for His new creation.

Nowhere in the Scriptures do we have even an inkling
of man having evolved from a lower state to a higher state. God
created man noble and for a purpose, not only did He give man
dominion, but He wanted to share Himself with man and be confederate as well. The Psalmist writes:
What is man, that thou art mindful of him? and the
son of man, that thou visitest him? For thou hast
made him a little lower than the angels, and hast
crowned him with glory and honour. Psalm 8:4, 5

Rather than pointing to the insignificance of man, these
verses highlight his nobility. What is so significant about man that
the great God of the universe should be so mindful of him? Verse
5 provides the answer. Firstly, the rendering of the text lower than
the angels by the King James Version is not necessarily correct;
the word translated angels in the Hebrew is elohiym, which
means God though it is sometimes also a reference to angels, who
incidentally are also in the image of God judging by their high
position. Strongs concordance defines elohiym as follows:
0430 elohiym {el-o-heem} - God, god, judge,
goddess, great, mighty, angels, exceeding, Godward, godly. 2) (plural intensive - singular
meaning) god, goddess godlike one, works or
special possessions of God, the (true) God, God
God thus created man just a little lower than Himself and shared
Himself with man. He gave man dominion, glory, and honour.
Thou madest him to have dominion over the works
of thy hands; thou hast put all things under his feet:
All sheep and oxen, yea, and the beasts of the field;

27

The Genesis Conflict


The fowl of the air, and the fish of the sea, and
whatsoever passeth through the paths of the seas.
O Lord our Lord, how excellent is thy name in all
the earth! Psalm 8:6-9

The seventh day of the creation week was thus set aside
for fellowship and confederacy and God rounded off His creation
by binding it to Himself. This certainly leaves no room for an
impersonal God who stands back after initiating the creation process and then allows evolution to create intelligence out of chaos.
Reading the Genesis account as it stands, it is apparent that it is
not compatible with the requirements of the naturalistic approach
to the question of origins. To overcome this problem, there have
been a number of attempts to reduce the impact of the Biblical
narrative to the level of mythology or allegory. This would allow
for poetic license in the interpretation of the text.

Genesis 1 versus Genesis 2:


The discipline of literary criticism arose in the 18th century and
questioned Biblical validity with regard to its historic and prophetic
content. The creation account has been one of its prime targets
both in terms of validity and authorship. Even the continuity of the
narrative has been questioned and its authorship split into factions
separated by centuries. Traditionally, the authorship of the book
Genesis is ascribed to Moses, but critics have tried to assign the
creation account in Genesis to the 10th and 6th or 5th centuries BC.

According to the Documentary Hypothesis, Genesis 1
was written in the 6th or 5th century BC. and Genesis 2 was supposedly written in the 10th century BC. The two narratives differ
in various ways, but also have numerous points of contact as
well. In his exhaustive study of the two narratives, William Shea
clearly exposes the unlikelihood of these accounts ever having
been written centuries apart or even by two authors.5 According

28

1 - A Basis for Conflict


to Shea, Genesis 2 essentially picks up the narrative of Genesis
1 and although everything is not repeated in the second narrative, highlights of the account are doubled to bring these issues
into view. One example is in the announcement of the creative
act itself, which is doubled in the second narrative. In Genesis 1
we read:
In the beginning God created the heavens and the
earth. Genesis 1:1
In the second chapter we read:
These are the generations of the heavens and of the
earth when they were created, in the day that the Lord
God made the earth and the heavens. Genesis 2:4

Not only is there a doubling in the narrative, but also the
divine name is employed differently in the two chapters. In Genesis
1, the divine name Elohim is used exclusively, whereas in Genesis
2 the combination Yahweh Elohim is used throughout the chapter,
and the literary critics believe this to be an indication of different
sources. However, since there are points of contact in terms of the
chiastic structure of the two chapters and a doubling of narrative
phrases and of the divine name throughout the second chapter, this
indicates intent and points to one author. Moreover, it is unlikely
that this doubling in Genesis 2 can make this chapter the primary
source which supposedly preceded the writing of Genesis 1 by five
centuries; rather it points to continuity and harmony between the
chapters since the second chapter is schooled on the first. There
is a reason why the second account seems so different to the first.
Genesis 1 provides an overview of the creation events, but in
Genesis 2 the focus is the creation of man and Gods personal
involvement and relationship with man. This close relationship is
highlighted by the use of the personal name of God, namely Yah-

29

The Genesis Conflict


weh. The use of the name Yahweh Elohim brings God into personal
contact with man and is a direct contradiction of the concept of an
impersonal God who started the evolutionary process and left it to
its own devices.

It is claimed by theologians critical to the literal interpretation of the Genesis account of creation that the accounts of Genesis
1 and Genesis 2 do not correspond and that they even contradict
each other thus suggesting not only different narratives, but different authors for the two accounts. In Genesis 2 we read:
These are the generations of the heavens and of the
earth when they were created, in the day that the
LORD God made the earth and the heavens, And
every plant of the field before it was in the earth, and
every herb of the field before it grew: for the LORD
God had not caused it to rain upon the earth, and
there was not a man to till the ground. Genesis 2:4-5

After completing the six day creation account, culminating
in the seventh day of rest, in the first chapter, the account of Genesis
2:4-5 lists four things that God had not yet done: the plant of the
field, the herb of the field, rain, and a man to till the ground. This
seems to contradict the completed creation of Genesis 1. Moreover,
we read in Genesis 2:7-9
And the LORD God formed man of the dust of the
ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath of
life; and man became a living soul. And the LORD
God planted a garden eastward in Eden; and there
he put the man who he had formed. And out of the
ground made the LORD God to grow every tree
that is pleasant to the sight, and good for food; the
tree of life also in the midst of the garden, and the
tree of knowledge of good and evil. Genesis 2:7-9

30

1 - A Basis for Conflict



This sequence of events also seems to contradict the account
of Genesis 1, since man now appears to precede the formation of
plants which according to Genesis 1 had already been created on
the third day. Randall Younker, Professor of Old Testament and
Biblical Archaeology and author of God's Creation: Exploring the
Genesis Story, succinctly analyses the reasons for these discrepancies and provides a profound solution for the apparent inconsistencies. Firstly, he points out that the transition between Genesis 1 and
Genesis 2 does not appear where it is currently placed, since the
division is arbitrary and, as acknowledged in many modern translations, the transition actually occurs in the middle of verse 4 after the
concluding sentence: "These are the generations of the heavens and
of the earth when they were created, in the day that the LORD God
made the earth and the heavens." The things that God had not yet
created thus form part of the second narrative. Secondly, he points
out that the idea of multiple authors raises a number of questions
which would place doubt on various other portions of scripture,
especially since the Bible writers and Christ Himself refer to the
Genesis account as written by Moses and considered it divinely
inspired (Rom 4:17; Gal 3:8; Heb 4:4; James 2:23). Younker states:
Especially interesting is Jesus' comment to the
Pharisees about the permissibility of divorce
(Mt 19; Mk 10). Jesus asked, "What did Moses
command you?" (Mk 10:3). When they replied by
quoting Deuteronomy 24:1-4, Jesus countered by
quoting from Genesis 1:27 and 2:24 (Mt 19:4,5;
Mk 10:6-9). clearly, Jesus' counter-argument was
based on the assumption that Moses authored these
passages - otherwise His arguments would have
been devoid of authority.

What about the four things that did not yet exist after the
completion of the earth and the heavens (plant of the field, the

31

The Genesis Conflict


herb of the field, rain, and a man to till the ground)? These then
would form part of the second narrative and an explanation seems
warranted as to why these things did not yet exist when the creation account seems to have been completed in Genesis 1. Younker
points out that most scholars who had studied the creation accounts
in Genesis appear to have assumed that the phrases used for the
plants in Genesis 1:11,12 and Genesis 2:5 referred to the same type
of vegetation, but this is not the case. He states that:
Genesis 1:11,12 actually reads "Let the earth
produce vegetation [Heb. deshe'], seed-bearing
plants ['esev mazry 'zera'], and fruit-bearing fruit
trees ['ets pry 'oseh pry] with seed according to its
kind." Genesis 2:5, on the other hand, reads that
prior to man's creation there was no shrub of field
[siah hassadeh], and no plant of the field ['esev
hassadeh] "had yet sprung up."

The Hebrew terms are different in the two chapters and
refer to different things. Younger continues:
The word siah, "shrub", appears in only three
passages in the Hebrew Bible - Genesis 2:5, 21:15,
and Job 30:4,7, while the full expression siah
hassadeh, "shrub of the field", is unique, appearing
only in Genesis 2:5. The context of both Genesis
21:15 and Job 30:4,7 make it clear that the siah
is a plant adapted to dry or desert environments.
As such, it is most likely a spiny or thorny plant...
thus, one of the plants that did not yet exist at the
beginning of the narrative of Genesis 2:4b was the
thorny xerophyte - the agriculturist's bane.

32

1 - A Basis for Conflict



The other botanical term used in Genesis 2, 'esev (plant) is
quite commonly used, but the full expression 'esev hassadeh (plant
of the field) is used only in Genesis 2;5 and Genesis 3:18, where
it refers to the food that Adam would have to eat as a result of his
sin. This food was to be obtained only through toil and thus also
constitutes a new order of things and is directly a consequence of
the fall into sin. Since Genesis 3:19 states that these plants were
used to make bread, the term thus refers to the grains which would
henceforth constitute the staple diet of man, and these could only
be cultivated by tilling the ground by the sweat of the brow. The
plants of the second Genesis narrative thus refer to post-fall food
crops and weeds.

The Garden of Eden was largely a fruit tree orchard, since
Genesis 2:9 mentions that it contained all kinds of trees that were
good for food. A man to till the ground, which was also not yet in
the Genesis 2 account, also does not come to view until after Adam's
sin. It is only after the fall that the ground is cursed by God and
that toil becomes necessary. Genesis 2 is thus not saying that no
man existed after God had made the earth and heavens, but that no
sinful man yet existed. Genesis 3 makes it clear, that "working the
ground" is a condition associated with sin.

The final not yet item mentioned in Genesis 2 is rain, and
this is a further circumstances that did not exist prior to the entry
of sin. Only at the commencement of the flood does rain become
a feature of the post-fall world and is a further judgment of God in
response to the fall of man. It would henceforth be the lot of man
to be dependent on rain for the successful cultivation of the staple
food crops, a constant reminder of his dependence upon God. The
introductory verses of the second Genesis narrative thus explain the
origin of the four things that were not part of the original creation,
and rather than contradicting the first narrative, Genesis 2 forms
a bridge between the perfect creation account and the fall of man
which is presented in Genesis 3.

33

The Genesis Conflict

The Flood

Flood narratives of a worldwide destruction of life on
earth are common to many cultures around the world and common threads run through all of them. The Biblical flood account,
with Noah as the central figure, is written as a historic narrative
whilst the other accounts are largely mythologized. The hero of the
Babylonian story is Atra-Hasis, the Sumerian hero is Ziusudra and
the Neo-Assyrian hero is Utnapishtim. These names do not seem to
bear any resemblance to Noah, but there is a Mesopotamian story,
the Hurrian story of which the heros name was na-ah-ma-su-le-el.
It has been suggested that this name could represent a combination
of Noah and Methuselah with the el at the end of the name being the word for God.6 In the Biblical and Babylonian accounts
many of the names associated with the antediluvian culture are
similar, and the differences can be accounted for by phonetic shifts
in the pronunciations. Both accounts thus seem to refer to the same
events and William Shea summarizes these similarities as follows:

BIBLICAL

First human Adam

BABYLONIAN
First wiseman of the city Adapa

Name of first city Henok

Patron god of the first city Enki

Builder of first city Quain

Builder of the first city

Q4-an

Grandson of the builder - Irad


of the first city

Name of first city

Eridu

Location of the first city - Nod


Title of first citys god - Nudimud

34

1 - A Basis for Conflict



If an event such as the Biblical flood ever occurred, then it
is to be expected that ancient cultures should bear testimony to such
an occurrence, and this is indeed the case. However, such an event
would undermine the very essence of the evolutionary paradigm,
which requires continuity of life from its inception to the present
time in order to allow for evolutionary change over time. There is
no room in this theory for the total destruction of terrestrial life in
the relatively recent past, let alone the story of the survival of representatives of antediluvian life having survived in the ark. Attempts
at compromise have tended to minimize the Biblical account and to
relegate the events described to a local flood in Mesopotamia. The
Biblical description is however very clear on this point, with both
the Old and the New Testament referring to a worldwide destruction of the earth by the flood. Relevant texts are:
And it repented the Lord that He had made man on
the earth, and it grieved Him at His heart. And the
Lord said, I will destroy man whom I have created
from the face of the earth; both man, and beast, and
the creeping thing, and the fowls of the air; for it
repenteth Me that I have made them. But Noah found
grace in the eyes of the Lord. Genesis 6: 6-8
And God said unto Noah, The end of all flesh is
come before me; for the earth is filled with violence
through them; and, behold, I will destroy them
with the earth. Make thee an ark of gopher wood;
rooms shalt thou make in the ark, and shalt pitch
it within and without with pitch. Genesis 6:13-14
And of every living thing of all flesh, two of every sort
shalt thou bring into the ark, to keep them alive with
thee; they shall be male and female. Genesis 6:19

35

The Genesis Conflict


There then follows a detailed description of the flood events, which
together with an analysis of the chronological data on the flood and
the genealogy of Noah can be summarized as follows:

Flood Chronology
Enter
ark
Rain
7

Ark floats
40

110

Mountain
tops

Flood peaks
wind starts

Face of
earth
dry

Leave
ark

Raven
3 doves

74

45

21 29

56

1 year 17 days


The chronology of the flood from the time that Noah entered the ark to the time that he placed his foot on dry land spans
a time of 1 year 17 days (the exact time may vary somewhat in
some manuscripts). It describes the week before the flood waters
came, the 40 day rain, the fountains of the deep bursting forth and
the waters peaking and covering the antediluvian mountains after
157 days. This is followed by the receding floodwaters, the drying
of the earth by wind and Noah finally leaving the ark in the region
of the mountains of Ararat, obviously in an area of high relief.
The time frame presented in the Scriptures does thus not preclude
the possibility of the flood waters continuing to recede for a much
longer time after this period in areas of lower relief. Moreover,
since the flood waters rose for a longer period of time than the rain

36

1 - A Basis for Conflict


fell, there must have been other sources of water involved than just
the water from above, and the waters of the great deep that are
mentioned in the Biblical account are thus of particular interest. The
waters for the flood came from two sources, the rain from above
and the fountains of the great deep from below.
In the six hundredth year of Noahs life, in the
second month, the seventeenth day of the month, the
same day were all the fountains of the great (rab)
deep (tehm) broken up (baqa), and the windows
of heaven were opened. Genesis 7:11
What exactly do the fountains of the great deep refer to? The
Hebrew for 'great' is rab, and for 'deep' it is 't@howm' Strongs
concordance defines the word great deep as follows:
07227 rab {rab}: - many, great, much, captain,
more, long, enough, multitude, mighty, greater,
greatly, 1a) much 1b) many 1c) abounding in 1d)
more numerous than 1e) abundant, enough 1f) great
1g) strong 1h) greater than 1i) much, exceedingly
08415 t@howm {teh-home} or t@hom {tehhome}: - deep, depth, deep places 1) deep, depths,
deep places, abyss, the deep, sea 1a) deep (of
subterranean waters) 1b) deep, sea, abysses (of sea)
1c) primeval ocean, deep 1d) deep, depth (of river)
1e) abyss, the grave
This implies not only much water, but can also refer to many sources
such as subterranean water and the oceans. The term tehm occurs in the Old Testament 35 times of which 21 of them are in the
singular as in the usage in the Genesis flood story. In Genesis 1:2
the word tehm is used in the sense of the waters of the ocean and

37

The Genesis Conflict


this agrees with its usage in Psalm 104:6 and Amos 5:8
Thou coveredst it with the deep [tehm] as [with]
a garment: the waters stood above the mountains.
Psalm 104:6
[Seek Him] that maketh the seven stars and Orion,
and turneth the shadow of death into the morning,
and maketh the day dark with night: that calleth for
the waters of the sea [yam], and poureth them out
upon the face of the earth: The Lord [is] His name.
Amos 5:8
As Gerhard Hasel points out,7 the word tehm also refers to subterranean waters in the Biblical narrative. In Deuteronomy 8:7 Moses
describes the land Canaan as a land of water-brooks, fountains, and
springs or deeps (tehmth) or a land watered by wells. In Psalm
74:15 we read:
Thou didst cleave [baqa] the fountain and the flood:
thou driedst up mighty rivers. Psalm 74:15
The Hebrew word baqa is defined in Strongs concordance as:
01234 baqa {baw-kah}- cleave, ...up, divide, rent,
... out, break through, rend, breach, asunder, hatch,
brake, burst, cleft, break forth, pieces, tare, tear, win
1) to split, cleave, break open, divide, break through,
rip up, break up, tear 1a) (Qal) 1a1) to cleave, cleave
open 1a2) to break through, break into 1b) (Niphal)
1b1) to be cleft, be rent open, be split open 1b2) to
be broken into 1c) (Piel) 1c1) to cleave, cut to pieces,
rend open 1c2) to break through, break down 1d)
(Pual) 1d1) to be ripped open, be torn open 1d2) to

38

1 - A Basis for Conflict


be rent 1d3) to be broken into 1e) (Hiphil) 1e1) to
break into 1e2) to break through 1f) (Hophal) to
be broken into 1g) (Hithpael) to burst (themselves)
open, cleave asunder

According to the context in which the word is used in Psalm
74:15, this implies that God split open the earth so that waters could
come forth to feed the rivers. The same word baqa is used for the
splitting of the rock by Moses in Exodus 14:16. The use of the same
word in Genesis 7:11 for broken up thus seems likely to refer to
the breaking up of the earth's crust to allow subterranean water to
burst forth. Accordingly, the sources of water for the flood seem to
have come from waters above, subterranean waters and waters of
the antediluvian seas, thus accounting for the vast quantities required
for this catastrophic event which not only covered the antediluvian
mountains but also destroyed all the animals that had lived on dry
land before the flood.
And the waters prevailed, and were increased
greatly upon the earth; and the ark went upon
the face of the waters. And the waters prevailed
exceedingly upon the earth; and all the high hills,
that [were] under the whole heaven, were covered.
Fifteen cubits upward did the waters prevail; and
the mountains were covered. And all flesh died
that moved upon the earth, both of fowl, and of
cattle, and of beast, and of every creeping thing
that creepeth upon the earth, and every man: All in
whose nostrils was the breath of life, of all that was
in the dry [land], died. Genesis 7:18-22

The New Testament describes the same events, and in
Matthew 24 and Luke 17, Jesus Christ also refers to the flood as a
literal event, which destroyed all mankind excepting those on the

39

The Genesis Conflict


ark. The apostle Peter also refers to the flood as a literal event.
For as in the days that were before the flood they
were eating and drinking, marrying and giving in
marriage, until the day that Noe entered into the
ark, And knew not until the flood came, and took
them all away; so shall also the coming of the Son
of man be. Matthew 24:38,39
And spared not the old world, but saved Noah the
eighth person, a preacher of righteousness, bringing in
the flood upon the world of the ungodly. 2 Peter 2:5

These plain statements of Scripture leave no room for compromise for those who wish to harmonize the Biblical account with
the scientific evolutionary paradigm; neither do they leave any room
for minimizing the extent of the flood to an isolated local event.
Moreover, the events described in Scripture testify to a worldwide
calamity of such enormous proportions as to dwarf even the greatest
geological events advocated by science. It is interesting that Peter
in his epistle alludes to a disbelief in the flood account, which will
undermine the faith in the last days.
Knowing this first, that there shall come in the last
days scoffers, walking after their own lusts, And
saying, Where is the promise of His coming? for
since the fathers fell asleep, all things continue as
[they were] from the beginning of the creation.
For this they willingly are ignorant of, that by the
word of God the heavens were of old, and the earth
standing out of the water and in the water: Whereby
the world that then was, being overflowed with
water, perished: But the heavens and the earth,
which are now, by the same word are kept in store,

40

1 - A Basis for Conflict


reserved unto fire against the day of judgment and
perdition of ungodly men. 2 Peter 3: 3-7

According to this verse, issues which will be considered
contentious in the last days would be the veracity of Christs second
coming, the creation account, and the belief in a worldwide flood.
Moreover, the belief that all things continue as they were from
the beginning alludes to a faith in uniformitarianism, which is a
cornerstone of the evolutionary paradigm.

Amazingly, in spite of the total onslaught and persistent efforts of evolutionists to promote their model at all levels of society,
only 9% of the general population in the United States of America
believed the purely evolutionary model according to a Gallop Poll
conducted in 1991.8 At tertiary institutes, the picture is somewhat
different, Feders (1986) study at Connecticut State University in
the USA showed that 18% of students attending an introductory
course believed that God created the universe in six literal days, a
view that he considers to be based on pseudoscience.9

It is typical of evolutionary scientists to regard any alternative
scientific approach to the study of origins, other than the evolutionary one, as pseudoscience. Even more amazing, in the light of the
theological barriers to compromise discussed above, is the fact that
even religious organizations will conduct efforts to convince students
to incorporate evolutionary principles into their religious thinking.
One such effort was conducted at the University of Cape Town by
Anderson of the organization Campus Crusade for Christ. 10

This study was conducted on Zoology students, and the
researchers were pleased to record an increase from 47% to 70%
acceptance of evolutionary ideas from their first to their third year
of study. Belief in six-day creationism declined from the first to
the third year from 13% to 0%. It was concluded that knowledge
of evolution brought about this change, but of course no counterarguments were ever presented to support any counterclaims. In
the light of this rather one-sided approach, it is not surprising that
the students were persuaded to undergo paradigm shifts. After this
41

The Genesis Conflict


very biased approach to the education of student in evolutionary
theory, it was concluded that compromise theology was the way
to retain religious convictions.

The Anderson study particularly singled out students
who believe in a six-day creation as students most likely to lose
faith when confronted with lectures on evolution. A further study
conducted by Fulljames (1991) on adolescent pupils showed that
those who hold to a six-day creation had greater difficulty combining science and religion.11 The Anderson study consequently
points out the absurdity of believing in a six-day creation in the
light of the evolutionary evidence and concludes that all pastors
should relent from attacking evolution. They should furthermore
emphasize, that whilst the Scriptures teach that God is the Creator, it is open on the question of which natural processes He used
in Creation. Theistic evolution is thus propagated as the means of
retaining students in the faith whilst people believing in a literal
creation are categorized as largely illiterate. Clearly the battle
lines in the conflict between evolutionism and creationism are
thus drawn between the six-day creation view and the naturalistic
view; the one advocating total faith in the Word of God and other
excluding God.

My Personal Conflict

At the university where I received my undergraduate training and where I spent a substantive part of my academic career as a
lecturer and researcher in Zoology, most of my colleagues believed
in the traditional model of Darwinism in that they embraced gradualism. However, the Neo-Darwinist view of punctuated equilibrium,
championed by Stephen J. Gould of Harvard University and others,
was also well supported as well, resulting in many a heated debate
in the evolution discussion classes. In actual fact, gradualism (the
idea that evolutionary change occurs gradually as organisms adapt

42

1 - A Basis for Conflict


to changing environments and the viable and fortuitous mutations are
selected through the process of natural selection) is the only model
that lives up to the expectations of the traditional evolutionary model,
and is representative of the view held by Darwin himself. Darwin
wrote in the The Origin of Species:
If it could be demonstrated that any complex organ
existed which could not possibly have been formed
by numerous, successive, slight modifications, my
theory would absolutely break down. 12

The punctuated equilibrium model (the idea that change is
not gradual over time, but that organisms experience long periods
of stability or equilibrium, and that these periods of stability are
interrupted by punctuated periods of rapid change during episodes
of environmental change) was born out of necessity, because the
fossil record does not seem to support the gradualistic model.

The fossils speak of an explosion of life forms, which
is termed the Cambrium Explosion where lifeforms literally
exploded into existence, including even the Phylum Chordata to
which man himself belongs (see chapter on the fossil record). The
idea of punctuated equilibrium was born to deal with this dilemma.
Of course, this has time implications as well, since rapid change
implies shorter time periods than would be required for gradualism and it is quite incredible how flexible the scientific fraternity is
in accommodating changes in existing time paradigms as long as
they remain within the framework of the evolutionary paradigm.
Hundreds of millions of years can be dropped out of the geological
column without too many feathers being ruffled, but should a creationist dare to challenge existing time frames, then even the warring
factions in the evolution camp stand united in their condemnation.

The leap from Punctuated Equilibrium to special creation
is really not that great. With creation, one would expect the sudden
appearance of diverse lifeforms just as we see it in the Cambrium ex-

43

The Genesis Conflict


plosion. The sequence of change in evolutionary thinking described
above is also a summary of my personal evolution in terms of my
understanding of the issues involved. As an undergraduate student
I subscribed to gradualism, then as my insights were broadened
at the post graduate level, I fell into the Neo-Darwinist camp and
supported the punctuated equilibrium model. However, when I was
challenged by the veracity of the Bible with regard to its historic
and prophetic statements, I was compelled to reassess my views on
the Scriptures in general. One of my greatest problems, however,
concerned the question of origins, and this compelled me to study
this issue in detail. I was so deeply rooted in the evolutionary paradigm that it took much research to even entertain the possibility of
an alternative model of origins, but I was fortunate in that I was
granted the opportunity to visit many sites around the world which
provided evidence for catastrophism in line with what is recorded in
the Scriptures and which contradicted the gradualistic paradigm of
origins. Based on the evidence, I gradually changed my views but
I was to find out that scientists do not take to this change of heart
lightly. The concept of a divine origin for the universe and life is
contrary to the evolutionary mindset, as the geneticist and evolutionary proponent Richard Lewontin so clearly writes:
We take the side of science in spite of the patent
absurdity of some of its constructs, in spite of the
failure to fulfill many of its extravagant promises
of health and life, in spite of the tolerance of the
scientific community for unsubstantiated just-so
stories, because we have a prior commitment,
a commitment to materialism. It is not that the
methods and institutions of science somehow
compel us to accept a material explanation of the
phenomenal world, but on the contrary, that we
are forced by our a priori adherence to material
causes to create an apparatus of investigation and a

44

1 - A Basis for Conflict


set of concepts that produce material explanations,
no matter how counter-intuitive, no matter how
mystifying to the uninitiated. Moreover, that
materialism is an absolute, for we cannot allow a
Divine Foot in the door.13

Indeed, the materialistic worldview leaves no room for
a creator, and that is why they cannot allow a Divine Foot in
the door.

The battle lines are very distinct between the creationist
and naturalistic views on origins. Thomas Huxley, who is famous
for championing Darwins cause, and even received the nickname
Darwins bulldog for his efforts, put the issue in a nutshell when
he asserted that no man could be both a true son of the Church
and a loyal soldier of science. 14

Richard Dawkins, Englands preeminent Darwinist, writes
in The Blind Watchmaker:
Biology is the study of complicated things that
give the appearance of having been designed for
a purpose. 15
He then sets out to convince his readers that this appearance is
deceptive and that there is no need for a designer. Scott C. Todd,
of the Department of Biology at Kansas State University, states it
even more boldly:
Even if all the data point to an intelligent designer,
such an hypothesis is excluded from science
because it is not naturalistic.16

Clearly this worldview is atheistic. As for me personally,
I considered myself an atheist, but thinking about it in retrospect I
was probably more like an agnostic. I did not believe in God, but

45

The Genesis Conflict


there was room in my thinking for esoteric views on the elevated
status of man, though I did not practice them nor belonged to any
group that did. I grew up in a Christian home but had never studied
the Bible as such. At best I considered it a book of allegorical stories
and myths with perhaps some valuable moral teachings. When I was
confronted for the first time in my life with a more intense study
of the Bible, I was astonished at some of the amazing insights that
I gained not only in the realms of morality, but also in the fields
of History and prophecy. Since that initial start, I came to accept
the Word of God as the most trustworthy book I have ever read.
This Word has power to change lives, to lift people up and to give
hope in the face of human hopelessness. It challenges one to test
its trustworthiness: Come let us reason together, says the Word.
My change of heart regarding the question of origins and evolution
was not instantaneous - no blinding flash shifted my paradigms - it
was also not emotional. It was the result of a long and often hard
road in search of truth. It is my intention to share the evidence I
discovered with others, and to invite the readers to sift the evidence
for themselves. If it is truth, then it will stand.

The reaction of my colleagues to my change of heart stunned
me. For the first time I experienced the fervor of united opposition
from the other side of the battle line. The conflict has convinced
me, that we are not just dealing with scientific paradigms where
opposing scientific views and theories are discussed in the spirit of
congeniality, but this is a spiritual war. Evolution versus creation
is a religious battle, and compromise is impossible.

The first time that I presented a lecture in support of origin by
design, the reaction was overwhelming. A young female post graduate student rose up and asked why in the light of all the evidence in
favor of creation as presented, had it been necessary to rob her of her
religious convictions which she had prior to her university career.
Indeed such is the power of evolutionary training. Students are trained
to disregard the teachings of the Bible in favor of the evolutionary
model. The prominent evolutionist E.O. Wilson confirms this loss of
faith so aptly, writing:
46

As were many persons from Alabama, I was a


born-again Christian. When I was fifteen, I entered
the Southern Baptist Church with great fervor and
interest in the fundamentalist religion: I left at
seventeen when I got to the University of Alabama
and heard about evolutionary theory. 17

The young student's boldness in our evolution discussion
class caused a major furor. For the first time I witnessed the raw
anger of those whose evolutionary views are challenged and from
that day onward I was treated like a man with leprosy. I was senior
lecturer at the time, with numerous graduate students working
under my supervision, but the tide of bitter opposition and the cold
war which I experienced made it impossible for me to continue my
work unaffected and I offered to resign. This led to an interesting
cycle of events and discussions, which finally ended in the office
of the rector of the university. Surely a compromise was possible.
Surely I could teach within the evolutionary paradigm without
rocking the boat and keep my convictions to myself. Prosperity
lay before me - academic advancement, but the price was too high
and I left the university convinced that the days of my university
career as Zoologist were numbered. After all, which university
would appoint a Zoologist with creationist views? I had spent
my life studying Biology. It was in my blood and I had worked
tirelessly to get where I was. It was indeed an empty feeling that
flooded through me as I left the gates of my alma mater.

Amazingly, it was not long after this event that I was approached by other universities to teach courses related to my physiological training, where my views on origins would not impact
on the students. However, the topic would never quite go to rest
because I was constantly invited to act as speaker on the subject
of origins and to take part in panel discussions. I am grateful for
the tolerance which I did find among some scientists, and for the
fact that the doors of my university career did not close altogether.
I was however very surprised when I was eventually appointed as
47

The Genesis Conflict


professor and chair in Zoology at one of the large universities in
South Africa. This position held many challenges, particularly
since my position was known to all involved. In fairness to all
parties, I chose not to interfere with the teaching of the evolutionary theory by my colleagues or invited guest speakers that
taught courses on evolutionary theory to our graduates. However,
if asked to deliver a discourse, during extra-curricular hours,
I would consent to such requests. Needless to say, this led to
much unhappiness on the part of some, particularly since many
of the students would change their views when confronted with
the other side of the story. How can students choose between
paradigms if they are not exposed to the different views whatever
they may be?

After endless sparring over this issue, the final conclusion
was to be expected. An investigation with outside adjudicators
was conducted in an attempt to diffuse the largely underground
conflict. It was amazing to hear the accusations leveled at me
and to see how closely they echoed the sentiments expressed in
this chapter. One of my colleagues bluntly stated that one could
not conduct science if one believed in a literal creation. This
statement, however, brought about considerable debate. The
constitution of South Africa guarantees religious freedom, but
sadly it appears that this freedom does not address the real issues
since it apparently cannot grant one the right to believe what God
says on the question of origins. In order to diffuse the situation
I again offered to resign, but the university graciously declined
my offer. My alternative request for transfer out of the Zoological
firing line was however granted, and since my research is largely
physiological in nature I could readily move to a more medically
inclined department.

Many scientists have come to realize how immensely
improbable it is that life could have developed out of non-life.
Many scientists are embracing the creationist paradigm, including
many graduate students and scientists from all walks of life; even

48

eminent zoologists have come to me personally and have admitted that they also believe in a literal creation. Some have done it
secretly and some have dared to defend creationism openly. It is
only to the degree that knowledge is made available, that people
will be empowered to make choices. Those who are not prepared
to even listen to the evidence are not reflecting the true spirit that
should actuate all true scientists:
Prove all things; hold fast that which is good.
1 Thessalonians 5:21

REFERENCES:
John F. Ashton, ed., In Six Days: Why 50 Scientists Choose to Believe
in Creation (New Holland Publishers, 1999).
1

Ariel A. Roth, Origins: Linking Science and Scripture (Review and


Herald Publishing Association, 1998).
http://books.google.ca/books?id=6XHnT85y7toC&printsec=frontc
over&dq=Origins,+Linking+Science+and+Scripture&hl=en&sa=X
&ei=N-_2UIL8Hoe9iwKriYCIBA&ved=0CDEQ6AEwAA
2

H. G. Wells, The Outline of History: Being a Plain History of Life


and Mankind, Vol. 2, 4th Revision. (London: Cassell & Company
Ltd., 1925): 616.
http://ia600502.us.archive.org/8/items/OutlineOfHistory/OutlineOfHistory.pdf

George Gaylord Simpson, The Meaning of Evolution: A Study of


the History of Life and of its Significance for Man (New Haven: Yale
University Press, 1949).

W. H. Shea, Literary Structural Parallels Between Genesis 1 and


2, Origins 16(2) (1989): 49-68.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/16049.htm

49

The Genesis Conflict


6 W. H. Shea, The Antediluvians, Origins 18(1) (1991): 10-26.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/18010.htm
G. F. Hasel, The Fountains of the Great Deep, Origins 1(2)(1974):
67-72.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/01067.htm

A. A. Roth, Creation Holding its Own, Origins 18(2) (1991): 51-52.


http://www.grisda.org/origins/18051.htm

K. L. Feder, The Challenges of Pseudoscience, Journal of College


Science Teaching 26 (1986): 180-186.
9

Mike L. Anderson, The Effect of Evolutionary Teaching on Students


Views of God as Creator, Journal of Theology for Southern Africa
87 (1994): 69-73.

10

P. Fulljames, H. M. Gibson, and L. J. Francis , Creationism, Scientism, Christianity and Science: A Study in Adolescent Attitudes,
British Educational Research Journal 17(2) (1991): 171-190.

11

Charles Darwin, The Origin of Species, (New York: Heritage Press,


1963).

12

Richard Lewontin, Billions and Billions of Demons, The New York


Review of Books (January 9, 1997): 31.
13

T. H. Huxley, Darwiniana: Essays (London: Macmillan, 1893).


http://books.google.ca/books?id=Kzp7Y9pJCQ8C&printsec=frontc
over&dq=T.+H.+Huxley,+%22Darwiniana%22+1893&hl=en&sa=
X&ei=QxT3UPagJqX7iwLLs4H4Cg&ved=0CC4Q6AEwAA#v=o
nepage&q=T.%20H.%20Huxley%2C%20%22Darwiniana%22%20
1893&f=false

14

Richard Dawkins, The Blind Watchmaker (London: Penguin Books,


1986): 1.
15

50

Scott C. Todd, A View from Kansas on that Evolution Debate,


Nature 401 (423) (September 30, 1999).
http://www.nature.com/nature/journal/v401/n6752/pdf/401423b0.
pdf
16

E.O. Wilson, Towards a Humanistic Biology, The Humanist


(September/October 1982): 40.
17

NOTES:

51

The Genesis Conflict

52

2
COSMOLOGY
AND THE EARTH

The question of origins has always fascinated the human
mind, and from the earliest times, the existence of life has mostly
been attributed to supernatural intervention. However, naturalistic
models of origins based on logic and philosophy can be traced
to about the fifth century BC in Greece. Plato (428-348 BC) and
Aristotle (384-322 BC) were the philosophers that probably had
the greatest impact on western thought. Their idealistic view of
striving for perfection laid the foundations for a naturalistic view
of origins and Platos views in particular had a profound effect
on biology. To him, the structure and forms of organisms could
be understood from their function, which in turn was designed to
achieve ultimate goodness and harmony imposed by an external
creator. Aristotle, the father of biology expanded this idea to include the development of organisms and the origins of groups of
organisms. To Aristotle, the adult form represented the final goal
or telos; and the changes occurring during embryological development represented a striving towards the telos and are dictated

53

The Genesis Conflict


by the telos. Transferring this idea to the larger scale of nature,
Aristotle developed a Scale of Nature in which he arranged the
natural world on a ladder commencing with inanimate matter to
plants, invertebrates and vertebrates. Among the vertebrates, he
placed the fish at the lowest rung of the ladder and humans on the
highest rung. This ladder of nature thus represents a progression
from the most imperfect to the most perfect. Moreover, Aristotle
suggested that natural laws existed and operated in nature, which
were independent of supernatural forces.

The idea that nature acted independently of higher control
set the stage for modern thought on the question of origins and the
forces acting upon nature. The Greek philosopher Anaximander
(611-547 BC) took the naturalistic concept of origins a step further by proposing that modern man was derived from fish-like sea
creatures or mermen that eventually emerged from the water and
adapted to dry land. It may be surprising to some that even the
theory of natural selection was already prevalent among the Greeks.
Empedocles (490- 430 BC) not only believed in spontaneous
generation, but also suggested that the processes of survival of the
fittest (natural selection) were operative in nature.1 Contrary to the
Darwinian concept of natural selection, which is seen as a driving
force for change, the Greek philosophers, however, saw it more as
a means of preservation rather than change.

The concepts developed by the Greek philosophers retained
their influence well into the eighteenth century and were nurtured
by prominent thinkers such as Goethe (1749-1832), who believed
that the origin of each level of organism was based on a fundamental
primitive plan - an archetype - from which the more complex features
and finally organisms developed. Although these naturalistic models
of origins have existed for many centuries, it is only since the work of
Charles Darwin (1809 - 1882) that biological evolution has become
both scientifically and socially accepted. The ideas propagated by
Darwin were totally in conflict with the Christian worldview of his
time. The biblical account of Genesis was considered by the church

54

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


authorities to be the only correct version of origins and the age of
the earth was measured by the number of generations since Adam.
In contrast, the Darwinian concept of evolution required millions
of years for the gradual change of form and structure required for
the transition of one species into another.

Aristotle still believed in fixity of species and this concept
of his was transferred to Christian thinking by Augustine (354-430
AD), one of the church fathers. Ironically, it is this very concept
of fixity of species, which eventually led to the discrediting of the
Genesis account when the church came into conflict with the Darwinian idea of natural selection, for it contradicted the observations
of Darwin and others. Darwins observations on the finches, which
he studied on the Galapagos Islands, for example, certainly did not
point to fixity of species. Moreover, natural selection thrives on
variation, which in turn is contrary to the concept of fixity of species
which was propagated by the church. The conflict between Christianity and Darwinism thus centered largely on the issues of time
and fixity of species, which contradicted the European worldview
in Darwins time - that God had created immutable, unchangeable,
fixed species in the not too distant past.

Attempts at compromise between the naturalistic view of
origins and the Scriptural exposition are also not confined to the
era of modern science. The Jewish scholar Philo of Alexandria (ca
20-45 AD) was one of the first to attempt reconciliation between the
Old Testament and the Greek philosophies by treating the Biblical
accounts as allegories. Origen (185-254 AD) took this process one
step further and under his influence Christian scholars sought to
find symbolic meaning in the Scriptural accounts thus negating any
literal interpretation. This search for symbolic meaning in numbers
and events recorded in Scripture also became central to Gnostic
thinking. In his book, The Two-Tailed Dinosaur, Wheeler states:
To help in the interpretation of Biblical allegory,
Christians employed the science and philosophy of

55

The Genesis Conflict


the ancient Greeks, Egyptians and Mesopotamians.
It brought much new knowledge to the Western
world, but it also put into wider circulation many
concepts antithetical to Christian doctrines and
beliefs. Some of the pagan concepts would help
to lay the intellectual foundation for the theory of
evolution even though they themselves may not
have been basically evolutionary in intent.2

Uniformitarianism vs. Catastrophism



The concept that the present is the key to the past is called
Uniformitarianism. The term means that the processes in evidence
in the world today are assumed to have existed in the past, and
a study of present events can be used to create models of past
events. Uniformitarianism has become basic to scientific thinking, and in the science of cosmology and geology in particular,
it forms the cornerstone for modern concepts in geochronology.
Before 1780, Uniformitarianism was not readily accepted. The
dominant doctrine was Catastrophism. According to this view,
the earths features and the fossil record for that matter, were the
consequence of a series of global catastrophes, each of which had
wrought extensive changes, both in the physical features of the
earth and in all living things.

James Hutton (1726-1797) first championed the idea of slow
gradual change to account for changes in the earths topography,
but it was not until about 1830 that Charles Lyell (1797-1875),
an Englishman sympathetic to the views of Hutton, documented
uniformitarianism in his interpretation of the origin of the rocks
and landforms of Western Europe. Lyell argued that the earth must
be very old for its many geological changes to have taken place by
such gradual processes. The presiding worldview of catastrophism

56

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


gradually gave way to uniformitarianism under the influence of
scholars who adopted the views of Lyell. It is noteworthy, however,
that many features of the earth's topography are hard to explain by
uniformitarian principles and so modern geologists have been forced
to accept that rates of change may have varied considerably in the
past, and catastrophic events have been employed more and more
to explain some of the geological features of our planet. This swing
in thinking even admits to short lived floods, storms and meteoric
impacts as being possible agents of dramatic change. In the past few
years geologists have thus come full circle, accepting the possibility
that some of the catastrophic events in our geological past may have
had more than local significance.3

Charles Darwin was much influenced by the work of Lyell,
and during the voyage of the Beagle, he carried with him Lyells
Principles of Geology and assiduously noted the geological features
of the many terrains he covered. The concepts of evolution were not
entirely new to Charles Darwin, as his grandfather, Erasmus Darwin
(1731-1802) had been an early popularizer of evolutionary ideas.
Charles Darwins ideas on this issue only really crystallized during
the voyage of the Beagle, and his experiences and observations on
the lava-ridden Galapagos Islands off the coast of Ecuador probably
had the most profound influence on his thinking. (See Figure 2.1)

On these islands, he found the most unusual collection of
organisms - giant tortoises and iguanas, many unusual plants, insects
and reptiles and many varieties of finches. The finches, in particular, interested him, as these normally seed-eating birds adopted the
insect-eating habits of species such as warblers, which are absent
on these islands. The subtle changes in form, structure, and habit of
these birds entrenched the ideas of change over time and stirred the
seed of evolutionary thought in Darwin, leading him to begin his
first notebook on the Transmutation of Species in 1837.

It seemed reasonable to Darwin that the organisms on the
islands had been transformed over time and that the new structures
and habits had developed over time. However, the mechanism for
the transformation of species was not nearly as easy to explain as the
57

Figure 2.1 - Route of the 5-year voyage of the Beagle, beginning at Plymouth, England in December 1831, and ending in Falmouth,
October 1836. Almost 4 years were spent in South America, including 1 month in the Galapagos Islands (September-Octobeer 1835)

The Genesis Conflict

58

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


assumption that such transformation had indeed occurred. It must be
noted that the world at that time had no knowledge of the science of
genetics. Gregor Mendel (1822-1884), the father of genetics, was a
contemporary of Darwin, but his work was unknown to the world
at large and unavailable to Darwin.

Lamarckism vs. Natural Selection



Lamarck was the first biologist to propose a mechanism for
evolution. He proposed that organisms acquired features as they
needed them. A giraffe would require a long neck because it strove to
eat leaves high up in the trees, and birds that did not like swimming, but
collected food in shallow water would develop long legs and become
waders. Lamarck, at times, ascribed the process of evolution to some
inner mystical vitalistic property of life (an ethereal fire). Darwin,
on the other hand, proposed the totally naturalistic mechanism of
natural selection as an evolutionary mechanism and this mechanism
has become more acceptable to biologists. He defined the principle
as follows:
As many more individuals of each species are born than
can possibly survive, and as, consequently, there is a
frequently recurring struggle for existence, it follows that
any being, if it vary, however slightly, in any manner
profitable to itself under the complex and sometimes
varying conditions of life, will have a better chance of
surviving and thus be naturally selected. From the strong
principle of inheritance, any selected variety will tend
to propagate its new and modified form.4

This theory provided a mechanism for change over time, but
it was not until the science of genetics had developed and the concept
of mutations was understood that the concept could be developed

59

The Genesis Conflict


into its present-day form where mutations provide the material for
variation and variation becomes the substance upon which natural
selection could feed.

The basic difference between Lamarckism and Darwinism is
thus that Lamarck proposed that adaptations were acquired because
organisms needed them, whereas modern Darwinism states that
the adaptations developed by chance through mutations and that
the sorting mechanism for determining which of these adaptations
would survive, was natural selection. In a sense, natural selection
becomes the driving force for change. Most biologists uphold the
basic Darwinistic view of origin by natural selection today. They
might vary on the mechanism of change, but the basic principles
of Darwinism are deeply entrenched in current scientific thinking.
Science today leaves little room for a literal interpretation of the
genesis account, let alone the short chronology associated with it.
At best, scientists might ascribe to some form of theistic evolution
where God is seen as the originator of life and the mechanisms of
evolution as the creator of the varied life forms in existence today.
In a sense, God used evolution to create man and all the other living organisms on earth. The basic theological problems with this
attempt at compromise have been discussed in chapter 1, and they
can be briefly summarized in Table 2.1.

In the light of these differences, it is evident that it would take
quite a degree of distortion to reconcile these two concepts. Indeed the
modern concept of scientific Creationism is largely frowned upon by the
scientific community and even subjected to open ridicule. Nevertheless,
some new evidence regarding catastrophic origins of many geological features warrant a reappraisal of some of its tenets. Since Luis W.
Alvarez, the Nobel prizewinner, proposed in 1980 that an asteroid had
collided with the earth and caused widespread destruction and extinction of species, there has been a general acceptance of catastrophism
as a causative agent in the shaping of geological features.

Although the concept of a worldwide flood on the scale described in the genesis account is still taboo, post catastrophic floods

60

2 - Cosmology and the Earth

Special Creation

Evolution
Life originated from
non-living material under
primitive atmospheric conditions in a chemically rich ocean
millions of years ago

God spoke living organisms


into existence a few
thousand years ago
God created basic life
forms which He called
"kinds".

All life forms originate from


a common ancestor
Organisms change because of
mutations, thus giving rise to
new species.

By natural selection better adapted organisms are


selected for survival of the
fittest. Development is progressive.

Change is limited by the


boundaries defined by God.
Since the fall there has been
a deterioration. Development is regressive. The
modern world is a distorted
remnant of the perfect world
which existed after creation.

Table 2.1

are being regarded more and more as shapers of geological features


that were previously considered to have developed as a consequence
of uniformitarian principles over thousands or millions of years. One
example of such a change of position is the story of the Columbia
River Dry Falls, which are now considered to have been shaped by
catastrophic floods at the end of the last ice age.

Even though catastrophism is being accepted as a part shaper
of the earths topography, the concept of vast ages for the history of
the world and the universe in general is still deeply entrenched in the
mindset of the scientific fraternity. Catastrophism can at best thus only
receive partial acceptance, as its obvious time implications must be
limited to intermittent events having little impact on the overall time
scale. After all, the scientific fraternity claims that radiometric dating

61

The Genesis Conflict


clearly supports long ages and the current cosmological worldview
is that the universe is between 10 and 20 thousand million years
old. Moreover, the standard model for the origin and development
of the universe is also entirely naturalistic in nature and does not
require the intervention of a Higher Being.

The Origin of the Universe



As discussed in chapter one, the Biblical model of origins
states unequivocally that God created the universe. Modern Science
has, however, presented a model of origins which does not require
an intervention of a Higher Being in the formation of the universe.
Briefly put, the naturalistic theory states that: In the beginning there
was the cosmic egg (a very dense compressed object into which
was compressed all the matter of the universe and according to
various speculations could have been smaller than a pinhead or
some claim that it could have been a few kilometers in diameter).
This primordial egg exploded some 15 thousand million years ago
and produced some atoms of hydrogen and helium, which together
with photons came shooting out of the explosion with great speed.
As it cooled, it clumped together to form stars, and nuclear reactions within the stars produced the heavier elements such as oxygen
and iron. When these stars in turn exploded, they scattered these
elements. Enriched by these elements, the gas clouds eventually
spawned other objects including our sun and planets, which contain
all the elements necessary for life to evolve. The evolutionary process then continued until by chance molecules arose which gave rise
to life. Eventually, all the plants and animals, including man, came
into existence through these naturalistic processes. This scenario
also requires a substantive leap in faith, since the very essence of
the theory violates the laws of thermodynamics.
The First Law of Thermodynamics tells us that matter cannot be created or destroyed. Since the world is here, this leaves

62

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


us with two choices, either somebody made it, or it made itself.
Of course it does not answer the question: where did the initial
material, or for that matter God, come from? The Second Law of
Thermodynamics says: everything tends toward disorder. This
phenomenon is known as entropy. The first law is one of conservation and implies that the substance of the universe (matter and
energy) is a constant. No matter or energy is thus being added to the
universe, or one could say that the creation of all matter is thereof
complete. The second law states that all processes in the universe
will result in an increase in the entropy or movement toward a final
equilibrium where all processes cease and this will lead to what has
been described as heat-death of the universe. According to this law,
order will tend to decrease rather than increase, but because there
is so much order in the universe today this law of necessity must
be violated by all theories that postulate the development of order
out of chaos. This applies both to the physical and to the biological world, but in spite of these constraints, naturalistic theories of
origins, with their implied long ages, are the accepted paradigms
within which the educational systems of the world operate. Dr.
Isaac Asimov stated in the Smithsonian Institute Journal, 1970:
The universe is constantly becoming more
disorderly. Viewed that way, we can see the
second law all about us. We have to work hard
to straighten a room; but left to itself it becomes
a mess again very quickly and very easily;
even if we never enter it it becomes dusty and
musty. How difficult to maintain houses and
machinery and our own bodies in perfect working
order How easy to let them deteriorate in
fact, all we have to do is nothing and everything
deteriorates, collapses, breaks down, wears out
all by itself and that is what the second law of
Thermodynamics is all about.

63

The Genesis Conflict


In spite of the constraints imposed by the laws of thermodynamics, theories of naturalistic origins still continued to
flourish and received a boost when radiometric methods for age
determination were discovered. It was argued that given enough
time these problems could be circumvented since one could
find pockets of inventiveness (chance formation of order in an
overall declining system) and radiometric theories seemed to
provide the proof for such long ages.

The Big Bang Theory



Ever since the discovery of radioactivity by Henri Becquerel in 1896 and the development of the technique of radiometric dating 13 years later, by Lord Rutherford, not only could age
determinations of certain strata be carried out, but also elements
were seen to have a finite existence. This raised the question of
where the elements came from in the first place and the search for
a naturalistic mechanism for the origin of matter, and the universe
in general was pursued with new vigor. In the first half of the 20th
century, astronomers were concluding that stars were the source of
complex atoms that were being produced by nuclear processes in
their interior. The process of atomic fusion could construct complex atoms from simple ones. This insight raised more questions:
where did the stars come from and where did the universe come
from? In the second half of the 20th century, a number of theories
were put forward to address these questions.

The model that has come to be most widely accepted is
called the Standard Model, as it is apparently most consistently
supported by astronomical observations. It is also generally known
as the Hot Big Bang model and can be summarized as follows5:

64

2 - Cosmology and the Earth

The Big Bang Model


The universe is 10-20 thousand million years old.
It started with a rapid expansion (explosion) of super hot
and dense primordial matter comprised of subatomic particles such as quarks and antiquarks.
The rapid expansion caused cooling.
As temperatures dropped, other particles were formed such
as electrons and positrons, protons and antiprotons, neutrons
and finally nuclei of hydrogen, deuterium, helium, lithium
and beryllium (the primordial elements).
During the first 300,000 years or so, matter and radiation
were coupled (they were in thermal equilibrium).
When the temperature had dropped to 3000 K (Kelvin, the
absolute temperature scale on which -273 K stands for 0 oC)
the universe became transparent (matter and radiation decoupled).
Table 2.2


This cosmological theory of the origin of the universe was
largely formulated by Edwin Hubble and is based on certain astronomical observation and on philosophical assumptions. In the formulation of the theory, Hubble assumed two basic principles: General
Relativity and the Cosmological Principle, and these principles lie at
the heart of the Big Bang Theory.

65

The Genesis Conflict



Before the development of modern astronomical instrumentation, there had been no way of determining the status of
some of the components of the universe. In fact, the question as
to whether other galaxies formed part of the Milky Way system
or lay outside of the Milky Way had not been settled by the dawn
of the 20th century and was a question of hot debate in 1921. In
1924, Hubble (through his study of Cepheid stars in other galaxies) showed that the majority of nebulae (as all nebulous objects
and galaxies were called at that stage) indeed lay great distances
outside our galaxy. Moreover, by studying the spectral lines emitted
by these galaxies he noted that they showed red shifts, and because of his underlying philosophical convictions, concluded that
all galaxies were moving away from our own Galaxy, the Milky
Way. Hubble also observed increasing red shifts for galaxies at
increasing distances from the sun. This was the conclusion because
the fainter a galaxy (and therefore presumably, the further away),
the bigger the red shift in its spectrum (therefore, presumably,
the faster it must be moving away from the earth) and this was
so no matter in which direction one looked. It thus appeared as if
the entire universe was dilating away from an expansion center,
which, to all appearances, was the earth itself. If the universe is
expanding, then it must have been smaller in the past, and so the
Big Bang theory was born. The astronomical observations that fit
in with the Big Bang theory of an initial explosion, an expansion,
and subsequent formation of all the matter in the universe are:
a) Almost all galaxies show red shift
b) There exists a background radiation (a presumed remnant of the
initial explosion) with a temperature of about 3 K, the so-called
microwave background radiation (MBR)
c) There is an observed cosmic abundance of hydrogen, helium,
lithium and beryllium in the universe.

66

2 - Cosmology and the Earth



As noted earlier, the Big Bang theory is not only based on
these empirical observations, but is intertwined with philosophical
assumptions and there are numerous eminent scientists that do not
agree with the interpretation of the data at hand. Let us examine the
various components of the theory and the interpretations of the data.

The Philosophical Assumptions:



As mentioned earlier, the two basic principles that lie at the
heart of the 'Big Bang Theory' are General Relativity and the Cosmological Principle.
Relativity: Before the modern cosmological worldview became to
be generally accepted, the commonly accepted Western view was
that the earth played a central part in the creation story, and it was
even accepted that the earth was the center around which all other
heavenly bodies revolved. This Geocentric (earth-centered) view
was challenged by Copernicus, who proposed the Heliocentric view
that the earth moved around the sun. Today, it is believed that the
earth is a relatively insignificant planet, revolving around a relatively
insignificant star, the Sun, which in turn circles around an ordinary
galaxy, the Milky Way, that in turn circles around a relatively minor
cluster of galaxies called the Local Cluster, which in turn is like a
speck in the vastness of the universe. This is called the Mediocrity
Principle. The difference between a heliocentric theory and a geocentric theory is one of relative motion.

A number of experiments have been conducted in order to
measure the absolute motion of the earth through space. In 1881
Albert A. Michelson, together with his colleague Edward Morley,
designed and built an apparatus called an interferometer to measure
this motion.6 Since it was shown that light acted also as a wave,
it was assumed that, just like sound waves have to travel through

67

The Genesis Conflict


some form of material, so space must contain some form of material through which light traveled. Nobody knew what the medium
was, so they called it aether, and their experiment was designed
to measure the earths speed through this aether. They expected the
answer to be the rotation speed of the Earth at the latitude where
the experiment was conducted. The two scientists intended to turn
their instrument until they found a maximum fringe shift produced
by light traveling in two perpendicular directions. The position
of maximum shift would show in which direction the earth was
moving and the size of the fringe shift would show how fast it was
moving. Much to their surprise, the answer turned out to be zero.
No matter how the earth moved, the ocean (aether) it moved in
always moved with it so that the earth was constantly in still water.
What was true for the earth must also be true for every other body
in the universe and this seemed incredibly improbable.

In 1905, Albert Einstein faced up to the contradictions that
apparently followed from the experiment. He reformatted a theory
that had been proposed by Dutch Physicist Hendrick Lorentz, and
published his version of the Theory of Relativity which provided
a mathematical solution to the problem, thus divorcing it from the
physical observations, and therefore did not require an aether. The
equation e = mc2 was also predicted by relativity. Two assumptions
are inherent in the theory:
1. No matter how an observer is moving (uniformly), he will always
come to the same conclusions about the universe. In other words,
all frames of reference are absolutely equivalent.
2. No matter how an observer is moving (uniformly), he will always
measure the speed at which light reaches him as being the same,
a constant, c.
The Cosmological Principle: This principle, in its simplest form,
states that the Universe looks the same from every location within it.
In an expanding universe, in which the rate of expansion increases

68

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


linearly with distance, the universe should always look the same from
any location within it. Accepting this principle overcomes the appearance that everything is moving away from the earth as predicted
by the red shift. However, there is no way to test the validity of this
principle, because given the vastness of space, we cannot move to a
sufficiently distant location to check the validity of the assumption.
In fact, from all observations that are possible, the opposite seems
to be true. Wherever we have been in space, and wherever we have
looked, the principle seems to be violated. There is no uniformity,
but rather magnificent variety. Wherever we look within the solar
system - the galaxies, the super clusters, and the gas clouds - the
heavens speak of anything but a boring uniformity. There is an
inhomogeneous distribution of matter, which contradicts the very
essence of the principle. The fact that there are structures on everlarger scales than postulated by the Cosmological Principle does
not auger well for the triumph of the principle when extrapolated
to include the whole universe. If the principle is in trouble, then the
Big Bang is in trouble.

The view that the universe must be uniform is central to the
Big Bang theory, and Einstein and other scientists who sought to
apply the theory of general relativity to the universe assumed this to
be the case. This Cosmological Principle is on very shaky ground,
especially since modern technology, telescopes, and space exploration opens up substantially more of the universe than was known
in Einsteins day. The great chains of galaxies that curl around vast
regions of empty space called voids tell a different story. The
astrophysicists of today are not unaware of the quandary in which
this places them. As the professor of Astrophysics at Nottingham
University admits regarding the problem of a non uniform universe:
Were lost The foundations of the big bang
models would crumble away. Wed be left with no
explanation for the big bang, or galaxy formation, or
the distribution of galaxies in the universe. 7,8

69

The Genesis Conflict

The Physical Observations:


Red shift: The principle of red shift is not a complex one. A wave
emitted by a source, which is moving with respect to an observer,
will have a changed frequency when observed. This is called the
Doppler effect. For relative motion, where the distance between
the source and the receiver is increased, the waves will have longer
wavelengths, and the opposite is true if the distance is decreased.
The classic example is the sound of the siren emitted by an ambulance traveling toward or away from an observer. When traveling
toward the observer the waves are compressed and are shorter (high
pitch) than when the ambulance is traveling away from the observer
(low pitch). Astronomers examining the patterns of lines in the
spectra emitted by distant stars and galaxies noted that they were
slightly shifted toward the blue or more often toward the red part
of the spectrum and distant galaxies were usually red shifted This
implies that the stars with a blue shift are moving toward the earth
and those with a red shift are moving away from the earth. Hubble
was careful not to call these shifts Doppler shifts. He called them
apparent velocity-displacements, but nevertheless concluded that
the universe was expanding.

The series of assumptions that have to be incorporated in
the theory of an expanding universe gives apparent distances of
up to 10 billion light-years for the most distant objects. There is
however room for other interpretations of the red shift such as the
shift being derived from a solidly rotating cosmos. Tangential, not
just radial, velocities can produce red shifts, but there is no way of
measuring tangential velocities for distant galaxies.9 According to
Keith Wanser, who is professor of physics, California State University, Fullerton, other models for the formation of the universe offer
acceptable alternatives to the Big Bang theory. Alternative theories
have been proposed which involve white hole cosmology, a recent
creation of the earth, a bounded universe, an initial water mass, and
Einsteins theory of relativity. The earth is placed somewhere in

70

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


the center of the universe while long periods of time could have
elapsed in other portions of the universe thus allowing sufficient
time for starlight to have reached the earth. The theory also allows
for expansion and red shifts. Other creationist theories have also
been proposed which account for the background radiation. 10
Background Radiation: The Big Bang theory proposes that the
universe started with extremely high temperatures and cooled
as it expanded. When the temperature had decreased after some
300,000 years to 3000K, matter and radiation became decoupled.
In the early hot stages, matter and energy could freely change
places with each other because they were coupled. The high
radiation (photons) would then be free to hurtle into space.
However, since it is theorized that space itself is expanding, the
temperature of the photons of energy falls until they have the
frequency of microwaves. The background temperature of the
Universe dropped to a mere 3K and this radiation is called the
echo of the Big Bang or the 3K microwave background radiation
(MBR). Actual measurements, however show numerous inconsistencies in these assumptions, and the temperature speculations
are also problematic.

The high temperatures at the beginning would prevent
gas clouds and thus stars from forming. A cloud of gas at a high
temperature tends to fly apart, but the theory requires the gas to
condense into stars. The gravitational forces between the gas molecules thus need to be great enough to allow for such contraction.
Calculations show that unless the temperature is less than five
K, the thermal energy of the cloud will tend to make the cloud
expand and gravitational forces will be too low for contraction. In
present day clouds where it is conjectured that stars are forming,
the temperatures are far too high for this to take place, but the
during the Big Bang they would have been even higher. It thus
seems even more unlikely for them to have contracted in the past
than is the case today.

71

The Genesis Conflict


Initial elements: The Big Bang theory does not allow for any other
atomic elements to have originated from the explosion than hydrogen, helium, lithium and beryllium of which elements there is an
abundance in the universe. How did this matter originate? This is
one of the major problems with the Big Bang theory. It is speculated
that the Big Bang originated from a quantum fluctuation of the vacuum, but experimental data shows that when particles are brought
into existence from energy, something called the Baryon number
is conserved. This means that when these particles are produced,
they are produced in equal numbers of matter and anti-matter. For
every electron there is thus a positron and for every proton, there is
an antiproton. This would also have been the case in the Big Bang.
Such symmetry would have resulted in the complete annihilation
of both and the universe would have consisted of radiation only.
The universe, however, has a complete dominance of matter over
anti-matter, or else we would not be here.

Because of this problem, the GUT theories (Grand Unified
Theories) have been proposed by physicists, which attempt to solve
the problem mathematically, but violate Baryon number conservation. These theories in turn predict proton decay, which has not been
observed experimentally. Once again, we see how ad hoc theories
have to be proposed to prop up the standard model when the data
does not fit the predictions. No wonder John Maddox, editor of the
journal Nature, said in an article titled Down with the Big Bang:
In all respects save that of convenience, this view of
origin of the universe is thoroughly unsatisfactory.11
Writing in New Scientist, Margaret Wertheim quotes Andrej
Pacholczyk:
Much of contemporary cosmology deals with
things like inflation and the big bang that have not
been directly observed, and probably never will

72

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


be. Andrej Pacholczyk of the University of Arizona
Tucson views cosmology as non correspondence
science one based on almost pure speculation. 12

The Age of the Earth



A study of the numerous Biblical chronologies available
dates the earth to a maximum of 7,700 years with most chronologies
advocating an age of 6000 years. The Septuagint is the translation
of the Hebrew Pentateuch into Greek, made in Alexandria, Egypt
in the third century BC. It places the creation week at 5665 BC and
the flood at 3403 BC. The discrepancy between 6000 years or the
Septuagint 7700 years and the scientifically accepted age of some
4,560,000,000 years is vast by all standards. Given such vast ages,
the question arises as to how scientists calculate the age of the earth?
One method used we have already touched on - by applying the principle of uniformitarianism, it is believed that one can derive the age
of earths strata.

For example, it can be observed how quickly sediments accumulate in a shallow lake. Assuming that we find that the rate of
accumulation is 0.1 cm/year over our study period, then we could
use this figure to calculate the approximate age of a sedimentary geological feature, which we consider to have developed under similar
circumstances. A layer of sediment 10m thick could then have taken
10,000 years to form. Given periods of slow uniformitarian erosion,
which would have removed sediment, it is easy to see that geological
age can be considered vast indeed.

The conclusion reached in the above scenario is, however,
only correct if the uniformitarian principle applies. What if there
had been a catastrophic flood, that washed vast amounts of sediment
into our shallow lake within one day? As is all too apparent from the
media today, whole villages can be buried in sediment in an instant
after catastrophic floods. Our assumption that the sedimentary layer

73

The Genesis Conflict


took 10,000 years to develop might be based on logic, but it need not
necessarily be right. It could have formed rapidly. In fact, all models
of age determination using the uniformitarian principle suffer the same
restraints and can at best be used as guides. Other models besides
sedimentology include the rate of orogeny (mountain uplift), erosion
of continents, accumulation of volcanic ejecta, biological criteria
such as mutation rates and accumulated change over time, the earths
cooling rate, rate of build up of ocean salinity, and many more.

Interestingly, the more data is accumulated, the more the
various age assumptions come into conflict with each other. In
fact, recent arguments on rates of evolution have produced a storm
of scientific papers in the worlds top journals where scientists are
slashing millions if not hundreds of millions of years out of the
geological time frame in order to fit and accommodate findings on
the rate of evolutionary change. If it is acceptable in the scientific
fraternity to slash millions of years out of the geochronological
model, then surely it is an admittance that the time frames are not
cast in stone. No uniformitarian method can give consistent results,
and the development of radiometric dating techniques was seen as
solution to this dilemma.

Radiometric Dating

A radioactive element is capable of changing into a new
element by the emission of a charged particle. The parent isotope
is thus transformed into a daughter product. This process will continue until a stable element is produced. The rates of decay vary
from element to element and the rate is measured in half-lives. For
example, if an element has a half-life of 5730 years, as is the case
for carbon-14, then after 5730 years, only half the original amount
of carbon-14 will be left in any non-living carbon-containing object
after this time period. In order to determine the age of a substance,
it is vital that the amount of parent element and its daughter product
in the sample be known. The ratio of daughter to parent together
74

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


with the half-life criteria then enables one to calculate the age of the
sample. Of course, one can only determine the quantity of the parent
element in the present sample; the quantity of the parent element in
the past must be estimated. Knowing the decay rates and using the
assumption that these decay rates have remained constant over time,
the age of the material can then be determined. In other words, all
methods of radioactive dating rely on some a priori assumptions,
which may not necessarily be true. These are:
1) The rate of radioactive decay and half-lives has
remained constant over time. This assumption has
the backing of numerous scientific studies and is
relatively sound; however, conditions may have
been different in the past and could have influenced
the rate of decay or formation of radioactive
elements.
2) The assumption that the clock was set to zero
when the study material was formed. This requires
that only the parent isotope be initially present or
that the amount of daughter isotope present at the
beginning is known so that it can be subtracted.
3) The assumption that we are dealing with a closed
system. No loss of either parent or daughter elements
has occurred since the study material formed.
Let us briefly look at these three assumptions with reference to
specific examples.

The Rate of Decay: Let us consider carbon-14 dating as an example. Carbon-14 is formed when cosmic rays strike our atmosphere
and bombard atoms, thus releasing neutrons. When nitrogen in the
atmosphere captures these neutrons, the nitrogen is converted to

75

The Genesis Conflict


carbon-14, which reacts like normal carbon-12, but is radioactive.
When carbon-14 reacts with oxygen it forms carbon dioxide and
mixes with normal carbon dioxide in the atmosphere and the sea.

Plants utilize carbon dioxide during photosynthesis, and
the ratio of carbon-14 to carbon-12 is thus the same in the plant
as in the atmosphere. Animals that consume plants or the animals
that have consumed animals that consume the plants also reflect
this same ratio. This status quo is maintained as long as there is
a turnover of carbon in the organism or, stated otherwise, as long
as the organisms are alive. After death, this ratio will, however,
change, as the carbon-14 will decay and revert back to nitrogen.
This decay is of a random nature and after 5730 years, there
will only be half as much carbon-14 in the organism as before.
After a further 5730 years, only a quarter of the original amount
would remain.

Evolutionists have to assume that the rate of cosmic bombardment of the atmosphere has always remained constant (resulting in the rate of carbon-14 formation) and that the rate of decay has
remained constant. They thus assume that the equilibrium level has
remained constant. Scientists place great faith in this dating method,
and yet more than 50 % of radiocarbon dates from geological and
archaeological samples of northeastern North America have been
regarded as unacceptable by investigators. 13

Although a creationist could also not prove otherwise,
there are various reasons, which could be put forward as counter
arguments to the constancy of the scientific assumptions:
a) The constancy of cosmic ray bombardment
might be questioned. The current high rate of
entry might be a consequence of a disturbed postflood environment that altered the carbon-14 to
carbon-12 ratio. Pre-flood dates would thus have
to be discarded. This shielding could be achieved
by something as mundane as a higher atmospheric
water content.
76

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


b) An increase in the magnetic field of the earth
would have shielded the earth from cosmic rays.
Some scientists argue that the magnetic field of
the earth has declined over time.
c) Atmospheric carbon forms just 0.0005% of the
current carbon reservoir - 99.66% of the earths
carbon exists in limestone, 0.31% in oil and gas,
and 0.02% in coal. Carbon-14 comes from nitrogen
and is independent of the carbon-12 reservoir. If
even a small percentage of the limestone deposits
were still in the form of living marine organisms
at the time of the flood, then the small amount of
carbon-14 would have mixed with a much larger
carbon-12 reservoir, thus resulting in a drastically
reduced ratio. Specimens would then look much
older than they actually are.

Even if the rate of decay is constant, without knowledge
of the exact ratio of carbon-12 to carbon-14 in the initial sample,
the dating technique is subject to question. One of the assumptions made in employing the radiocarbon technique is that the
total biosphere is in equilibrium (infinite age condition) for C-14.
This assumption would of course not take into account a possible
catastrophic event, in the not so distant past, which could have
radically altered the C-14 condition and which in turn would mean
that equilibrium has not yet been reached.

It is generally assumed that decay rates for radioisotopes
have remained constant; however, there is evidence that the decay
of unstable quantum mechanical systems is non-exponential.14 It
is thus quite an extrapolation to assume that the decay of radioisotopes with high half lives is exponential, when experimental
data is only available for short lived isotopes with half-lives of
less than 100 years.15

77

The Genesis Conflict

Zero Reset: It is generally believed that when a volcano erupts, any


daughter particles produced by radioactive decay are separated from
the parent. Therefore, for example, any lead produced by previous
decay when the lava was still inside the earth is separated from uranium by movement of the lava flow. The atomic clock is thus set to
zero. Of course, one must also assume that once the lava is set, there
is no movement in or out of the rock. For a time the Potassium Argon
method was considered reliable until huge discrepancies were found
and dates were often highly inflated. Results are accepted or rejected
on the basis of whether they fit the expected age or not.16 The assumption that argon (which is a gas) is driven off when new formations
are formed, is not valid and one cannot be sure whether the clock
was set to zero. This point becomes clear when one considers that
numerous dates derived by this method give timescales that are too
old for even the evolutionary time scale. There is a gradient of argon
in the geological column, with more argon in the older rocks and
less in the younger rocks regardless of their potassium content, even
in minerals with no potassium. This creates an instant time scale,
which has little to do with actual geological age.17 The Rubidium
Strontium method was also considered reliable until it was found that
Strontium-87, on which the method depends, can be produced from
Rubidium-87 by the emission of an electron but can also be produced
from Strontium-86 by neutron capture. Since Strontium-87 is mobile
it is not possible to tell from which source the Strontium-87 in the
sample came from and the method in these grounds alone should be
considered unreliable as Brooks et al pointed out:
crystallization ages determined on basic igneous
rock by Rb-Sr whole rock technique can be greater
than the true age by many hundreds of millions of
years. This problem of inherited age is more serious
for younger rocks, and there are well-documented
instances of conflicts between stratigraphic age and
Rb-Sr age in the literature. 18

78

2 - Cosmology and the Earth



Uranium lead dating also shows major discrepancies. When
uranium decays to lead, eight helium atoms are produced for every
initial atom of U-238. Helium is a noble gas with little tendency
to react with other atoms and is very small. Huge quantities of
helium are, however, found in zircon crystals in magma, which
has consequences for the dating of the material since this implies
a time span of only a few thousand years even for formations considered to be a billion years old. Both the rate of helium diffusion
in a crystalline lattice and the rate of decay of uranium to lead can
be determined experimentally, but the two processes yield wildly
different ages for the same rocks.19

Many examples from literature show that the zero reset
assumption is not always valid. Volcanic ejecta of Mount Rangitoto (Auckland, New Zealand) was found to have a potassium-40
age of 485,000 years, yet trees buried within the volcanic material
dated with the carbon-14 method to be less than 300 years old.20
Recent flows from Mt. Ngauruhoe in New Zealand which occurred
between 1949 and 1954 were also dated as being of an upper age
of 3 million years. 21 Similarly, 10 year old rocks from the Mount
St. Helens eruption were also dated at being between 340,000 and
2.8 million years old.22

A further example from a lava flow off the coast of Hawaii
shows similar discrepancies. If dated with the carbon-14 method,
the flow appears to be less than 10 000 to 17 000 years old, but
dating with the potassium-argon method gives dates of 160 000
to 43 million years. A rock sample from Nigeria was dated at 95
million years by the potassium-argon method, 750 million years
by the uranium-helium method, and less than 30 million years by
the fission-track method.23

There are numerous examples in the literature which cast
doubt on the clock-reset hypothesis. If the clock is not set to zero
when a deposit forms, then there can be no starting point from
which to calculate the age of a deposit.

79

The Genesis Conflict


Closed System: No scientist can guarantee that any sample can
be considered a closed system unless it was isolated from its environment when it was formed. Elements can be transported into
a sample or leach out of a sample. Different elements also have
different solubilities. Again, scientists will reject ages that do not
conform to the expected and will argue that the clock was not reset
if the age is too old, or that isotopes were selectively removed if the
age turns out to be too young. In the study on the Hawaii lava flow
cited above, it was argued that entrapment of excessive amounts
of argon gas had made the samples appear older than they were.
Radiometric dating techniques are thus based on sound scientific
principles, but rely on so many basic assumptions that the Biblebelieving student need not have his faith shattered by data derived
from these techniques.

Having established that even radiometric dating has its
pitfalls, how much more questionable are the dates of geological
features that cannot be dated radiometrically. The long ages attributed to the geological column, for example, are pivotal to the theory
of evolution. Without these long ages, the supposed evolutionary
changes leading to the development of the earths complex life
forms could never have taken place, yet evidence is mounting that
the geological column and its entrapped fossil graveyards could
have had a catastrophic origin. Tens of thousands of sedimentary
layers, originally interpreted as having been deposited very slowly
in shallow seas, are now considered as having been formed in
minutes or hours.24 If this is the case, then the geological column
may not be as old as scientists believe.

The geological column with its palaeontological record is
the main body of evidence cited for the theory of evolution. The
order of the fossils is considered to be progressive and is cited as
irrefutable proof for the theory of evolution. Since the fossil bearing strata cannot be dated radiometrically, the only evidence for
the age of any particular layer is the presumed age of the fossils
therein. This assumption is based on circular reasoning since the

80

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


age of the fossils determines the age of the strata, which in turn
determines the age of the fossils. Nevertheless this is considered to
be a viable dating technique. This assumption is basic to the study
of fossil strata as Schindewolf already pointed out in 1957:
The only chronometric scale applicable in geological
history for the stratigraphic classification of rocks and
for dating geological events exactly is furnished by
the fossils. Owing to the irreversibility of evolution,
they offer an unambiguous time scale for relative
age determinations and for worldwide correlation
of rocks.25

This type of circular reasoning is not only brushed aside as
in the above quote, but is also openly acknowledged by the scientific
fraternity as can be seen in the following statement by Rourke in
an article published in the American Journal of Science:
The procession of life was never witnessed, it is
inferred. The vertical sequence of fossils is thought
to represent a process because the enclosing rocks
are interpreted as a process. The rocks do date
the fossils, but the fossils date the rocks more
accurately. Stratigraphy cannot avoid this kind
of reasoning, if it insists on using only temporal
concepts, because circularity is inherent in the
derivation of time scales.26
A study of the strata and the fossils from a catastrophic perspective
would thus drastically alter the time scales and allow for reinterpretation of the data and this could make the flood model as written in the
book of Genesis a contender which could be seriously considered.

81

The Genesis Conflict

Paleomagnetism

Paleomagnetic evidence seems to point to long ages and
needs to be briefly considered here. When molten rock from volcanic
ejecta cools, the magnetic particles in the lava align themselves according to the prevailing magnetic field as would iron filings around
a magnet. The magnetic field of the earth seems to have undergone
numerous reversals over geological time and if one argues that
thousands or even millions of years elapse between each reversal,
then this has time implications, which need to be examined.

In studying the earths magnetic phenomena, it needs to be
noted that magnetic forces are different from electrical forces, in
that the magnetic field does not tell us directly what the direction
of the magnetic force is on a moving charge at any given point as
in the case of an electric field. The earth contains many so called
ferromagnetic elements which can form minerals, and thus rocks
with magnetic properties. Sedimentary strata composed of material
eroded from rocks with magnetic elements can also show magnetic
inclinations, because as the particles settle out they can also orientate
themselves according to the prevailing magnetic field. The magnetization that we can observe in any rock sample is composed of the
primary magnetization that remains in the rock from its formation
(the natural remnant magnetization), but also that of more recent
secondary magnetization. The secondary magnetization can thus
provide a distorted picture of the ancient or original geomagnetic
field. Moreover, the rate of cooling of rocks can affect the magnetic
properties of the sample. In sediments, the grain size of particles in
that sediment as well as the direction of stream flow at the time of
deposition can also affect the sample.

Any study of the paleomagnetism of the earth must therefore
bear all these parameters in mind and it is not just a simple matter
of determining the direction of particle orientation in the strata to
determine whether there were magnetic reversals in the past.27 How
can one thus explain the 180o flips in the polarity which have given

82

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


rise to the concept that there have been many geomagnetic reversals
in the earth's history which are thought to have taken place randomly
every few million years? Again it is a question of perceptions molded
by one's paradigm. In the case of the observed paleomagnetic information, some investigators have proposed that major magnetic changes
can occur within months or days, and one has even suggested reversal
within a day.28 Considering that so many apparent proofs for long
ages (such as the rate of rock formation from sediments, the rate of
coal formation, petrifaction and mineralization) have been shattered
by the observation that these events can occur extremely rapidly,
even within days, then it becomes obvious that it is the paradigm
of the researcher which sways the argument in favor of one or the
other model.

The Geological Column in the Light of Genesis



For centuries, the Christian world accepted the Biblical story
of a flood. A change from this Diluvial interpretation only occurred
during the 19th Century as a result of ideas expounded by Lyell, Darwin, and others. The work of Charles Lyell particularly influenced
contemporary thinking regarding the origin of strata, and the concept
of the catastrophic flood was replaced by deposition governed by the
uniformitarian principles.

In recent times, a new Science of Diluvialism has emerged and
is making rapid strides. Many geological features are more consistent
with catastrophic formation than with slow formation over millions of
years. This new approach to the interpretation of some of the earths
features is, of course, contrary to uniformitarian thinking and was not
well accepted initially. When Harlen Bretz, who was professor of
Geology at the University of Chicago in 1923, advocated that some
of the features of the state of Washington were more consistent with a
catastrophic flood formation, they found his conclusion totally unacceptable. The debate raged for years, and it was only in 1965 that the

83

The Genesis Conflict


International Association for Quaternary Research organized a
field trip to visit the area and came to the same conclusions that
Bretz had propagated. The thinking had come full circle, and
catastrophism was once more an accepted model of landscape
development. In 1979, Bretz received the Penrose medal, the
United States most prestigious geological award.29

The Geological Column and Age Implications



The currently accepted model for the formation of the geological column is that expounded in the evolutionary paradigm.
According to this paradigm, each layer of the column represents
a period in the earths history comprising millions of years of
time. (See Figure 2.2) It is supposed that the first microorganisms
evolved between 2000 and 3000 million years ago, and that a
record of their existence can be found in the Precambrian rocks.
However, the oldest layer of the column that contains macrofossils is the Cambrium and is estimated to be some 600 million
years old.

Superimposed layers of this column are younger and
contain different fossils, but each layer was once considered to
represent the surface of the earth where life was enacted much as
it is today. Moreover, the Uniformitarian principle implies that
processes occurring today occurred in the past, including normal
erosion by water, wind and weathering processes. Evidence for
aerial exposure of the various layers of the column is, however,
lacking, and the flat contacts between layers belie the supposition
that they once represented the surface of the earth. If they had
represented the surface of the earth, then they should be subject
to the same erosional features that exist today on the surface of
the earth. Should they be subsequently covered by new cycles
of sedimentations, then the contacts would not be flat sheets but
irregular in shape. This anomaly has been noted in the literature:

84

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


A puzzling characteristic of the erathern boundaries
and of many other major biostratigraphic boundaries
is the general lack of physical evidence of sub aerial
exposure. Traces of deep leaching, scour, channeling
and residual gravels tend to be lacking, even if
the underlying rocks are cherty limestones. These
boundaries are paraconformities that are usually
identifiable only by palaeontological evidence.30
It is also noteworthy that the geological layers stretch over vast flat
areas which are totally unlike anything which exists today and which
imply vastly different circumstances than implied by the uniformitarian principle:
The search for present-day analogues of
paraconformities in limestone sequences
is complicated by the fact that most present
configurations (topography, chemistry, circulation,
climate) are strikingly unlike those that must have
prevailed when Paleozoic and Mesozoic limestone
seas spread over immense and incredibly flat areas
of the world.31

Geologists teach that millions of years are required for rock
formation and to form geological features, such as erosional features,
beaches and landscape development, stalactites and stalacmites, and
many other geological phenomena. The rapid formation of canyons
during modern catastrophic events and the appearance of new islands, such as Surtsey in the North Atlantic in recent years, belie
this standpoint, since apparently mature beaches appeared on that
island within months. Vast amounts of stalagmitic material can form
in months, as has been a common occurrence in old mineshafts and
other modern environments, and rapid rock formation, fossilization
and petrification are also well documented today.

85

The Genesis Conflict



The concept of a universal flood is not only reconcilable
with the geological features which we can observe today, but can
also explain some of the features which are virtually impossible
to reconcile with the standard model. The universality of the great
chalk deposits in the geological column and the distribution of marine deposits are just some the features which are hard to explain in
terms of uniformitarian principles. There is evidence for tumultuous
upheavals in the past that can only be explained by catastrophism.
Megabreccias (sedimentary deposits with huge angular boulders of
more than a meter in diameter) have forced some geologists at least
(the so called neocatastrophists) to consider forces of enormous
magnitude operating in the past.32

Marine Deposits and Ocean Sediments



Catastrophism, such as would have prevailed as a consequence
of the Biblical flood, can provide alternative models for many of these
anomalies. As noted in chapter 1, the Biblical description of the flood
provides information which suggests that not only rain, but also subterranean water and water from the pre-flood oceans was involved
in that event. This would suggest a major geological upheaval and
could explain many of the features which are apparent in the earths
topography today. If oceanic waters were also involved as implied
in the book of Amos and a number of passages in the Psalms, then
one would expect to find marine sediments on the continents in large
quantities. Standard geological interpretations would require these
deposits to have been formed in cycles of marine submersion of the
continents over time. Considering the vastness of these deposits, this
is a difficult scenario to envisage particularly since such deposits are
often associated with other fossils as well.

It is significant that we find only young sediments in the sea
and the ocean floor reveals no evidence of great age; the older layers such as the Paleozoic, for example, are missing. However, vast

86

2 - Cosmology and the Earth

Figure 2.2 - The Geological Column with Fossil Assemblage33

land deposits of marine material are found on our continents. These


could therefore have been formed by water and sediments from the
sea, being poured over the land as the Scriptures suggest, and this
could have been achieved by the raising (upwarping) of the sea bed.
Since great quantities of marine material are to be found on all the
continents, it is as if the contents of the oceans were simply dumped
on the land and the accompanying turbidites (underwater mud flows)

87

The Genesis Conflict


buried the animals to form the fossils, which we find in the strata
today. This event would have been followed by a series of major
upheavals as the topography of the surface was reformed, and the
net result would have been that surface material was washed back
into the sea as young sediments. Today we find a massive geological column on the land areas, but very little sediment beneath the
sea. Considering that at least three quarters of this planet is covered
by water, this is indeed remarkable.

The Earths continents are comprised of granitic-type rocks
that, being lighter, float on the heavier basalt and schists beneath. Covering the continents, there is an abundance of sediments containing
marine fossils, such as marine fish and numerous invertebrates,
such as corals, crinoids, and clams .The geologist J.S. Shelton
described this conundrum as follows:
Marine sedimentary rocks are far more common
and widespread on land today than all other kinds
of sedimentary rocks combined. This is one of those
simple facts that fairly cry out for explanation and
that lie at the heart of mans continuing effort to
understand more fully the changing geography of
the geologic past.34


What if the words of divine inspiration were true and
God did at some stage intervene in the affairs of men and destroy the antediluvian world with a flood, but man refused to
acknowledge it? Well then, even if the facts cry out for explanation, there would be no answer forthcoming.

The vastness and nature of the deposits suggest geological
events in the past, which must have been radically different from
any present day analogous events. It is, however, not incompatible
with a flood model to expect marine deposits on land if the ocean
floor was raised and the pre-flood continents depressed to allow
for this type of deposition. The paucity of marine sediments in

88

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


the ocean would then simply be the result of insufficient time since
the flood to produce such deposits. Seismic methods that were used
to determine the thickness of ocean sediments, which were once
considered to be up to 22 km thick, have revealed that the major
portion of the ocean floor has sedimentary layers less than 0.1 km
thick while a smaller fraction largely near the continental margins
has a thickness greater than 1 km. This gives an average depth of
only 0.4 km, of which half would be red clay and the other half
carbonate oozes consisting of coccolith and foraminiferal skeletons.
Given the rate at which erosional sediment flows into the oceans
today and the rate of production of the algal and unicellular organisms, which would produce the oozes, the Biblical time frame is
more than adequate to account for all the ocean sediments, particularly if one allows for greater sedimentation due to the catastrophic
displacement of sediments during the flood.35

In order to provide an explanation for the missing sediment,
there is a suggestion that the sediments are being absorbed under
the Tectonic plates, as the continents are moving apart. However,
the rates of subduction are several orders lower than the rates of
erosion thus not accounting for the missing sediments. Estimates
of sediments flowing into the oceans range from 8 64 billion tons
per year and subduction rates are only estimated to be 2.5 billion
tons per year.36 The immensely long time periods envisaged by the
scientific fraternity do not fit the observed rates of change even
under current circumstances, let alone catastrophic ones. In order to
account for the present position of the continents, very slow rates of
continental drift are postulated. Rates in the order of 2 cm per year
are generally accepted, however, at the rate at which sediment is
being washed from the continents into the sea, that crack between
continents could not have opened up, as the crack would have been
filled twoandonehalf times faster than it formed. Also, the rate at
which erosion is changing the continental coastal features makes it
unlikely that the continental fit could have been maintained as well
as it has. Even in historic times, coastal features have changed so

89

The Genesis Conflict


rapidly that, if extrapolated, they would remove or add thousands
of kilometers of coastal material in the supposed geological time
since the separation of the continents. The coastal features of the
white cliffs of Dover are a prime example, where limpets are whittling away the coastline at an extremely rapid rate of up to 2 m per
year in the case of the Suffolk coastal cliffs. In fact, over the last
800 years, the sea has claimed 1.6 km of land including the entire
medieval city of Dunwich of which the last of its twelve churches
toppled over the cliffs in 1919. It is conceivable, therefore, that
the continents separated very rapidly after the flood.

A Model for Catastrophic Formation of the Column



There are numerous geological features that bring into
question the standard view of geochronology and these have been
thoroughly reviewed by Ariel Roth.37 Evidence for rapid washouts
is widespread on earth and these can provide insights into the
geological past. One of the best areas of the world to view a section through the Paleozoic portion of the geological column is the
Grand Canyon. Here it can be seen that the various layers lie like
vast flat sheets one on top of each other, and each flat layer covers
thousands of square kilometers. If these layers represent periods
in the earths history, then, by implication, they must have formed
the surface of the earth at some stage, and one would expect to
find evidence for this in the form of river channels, valleys, and
erosional features between them, but these are lacking.

In the Grand Canyon series, rocks of the Ordovician and
Silurian periods are missing (this is known as an unconformity),
and standard geology accepts that their layers were removed from
the record by erosion. Since geologists have assumed vast ages for
the formation of the various layers found in the column, the layers
are obviously linked to time. If a layer were missing, this would
imply that the relevant time was missing, and this is, of course,

90

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


impossible in terms of the evolutionary model. They, therefore,
speculate that in strata where unconformities occur, these layers
must have been there in the past, but had been eroded away in those
areas before the subsequent overlying strata had been deposited.

The Ordovician layer in the Grand Canyon series, that was
supposedly eroded away, represents some 100 million years, which
in itself presents a further problem. Standard geological publications put current erosion rates at between 6 and 1900 cm per 1000
years. Most of the eroded material is carried away by rivers and
ends up as sediment in the oceans. Even at the lower figure of 6
cm per 1000 years, it would take a mere 10.2 million years for the
continents to be eroded down to sea level (the continents would
have eroded down to sealevel 340 times in the time period that they
supposedly existed). As Lindale put it in his article on the survival
of paleoforms:
Even if it is accepted that estimates of the
contemporary rate of degradation of the land
surface are several orders too high to provide an
accurate yardstick of erosion in the geological
past, there has surely been ample time for the very
ancient features preserved in the present landscape
to have been eradicated several times over. Yet
the silcreted land surface of central Australia has
survived perhaps 20 million years of weathering
and erosion under varied climatic conditions, as
has the laterite surface of the northern areas of the
continent. The laterite surface of the Gulf region
of South Australia is even more remarkable, for it
has persisted, through some 200 million years of
epigene attack...The survival of the paleoforms is in
some degree an embarrassment to all the commonly
accepted models of landscape development.38

91

The Genesis Conflict



A feature of the column, as represented in the Grand
Canyon series, is that it is graded coarse to fine - the lower portion consisting largely of residual gravels, followed by lime
and shale deposits.39 This cannot be easily reconciled with the
uniformitarian model, but is precisely what one would expect if
the various layers came into existence catastrophically. It seems
as if the Cambrian deposits worldwide can be ascribed to one
major sedimentological episode that caused graded beds. One
possible mechanism of formation is through turbidimetric deposition. Turbidites are underwater mudflows set off by catastrophic
events such as earthquakes, and would be expected in a diluvial
event as described in Genesis. The various layers of such mudflows have flat contact zones, and missing layers can be readily
explained without invoking periods of erosion. The quantity of
source material would determine the thickness and the area covered. The absence of a layer would simply mean that there was
not enough source material to cover the same areas as the under
and overlying strata (Fig. 2.3).

Figure 2.3

92

2 - Cosmology and the Earth



Turbidity currents could account for many of the layers
found in the geological column. The abundance of sedimentary
layers in the stratigraphic record speaks of extensive underwater
activity in the past. Such a phenomenon was fully documented
when, on November 18, 1929, a turbidity current was set off by an
earthquake that shook the New England coast. The speed of this
flow could be recorded as it broke a series of undersea telegraphic
cables. This flow covered some 200 miles in the first 59 minutes
and 500 miles in 13 hours 17 minutes. This means that the flow
was traveling at speeds in excess of 100 kilometers per hour, even
reaching speeds of 160 kilometers per hour. Obviously, any living
organisms in the way of the flow would have been instantly buried
and, being cut off from oxygen, would eventually fossilize. It is
obvious that a short chronology for the formation of the geological
column would destroy the very pillars on which the evolutionary
paradigm rests and the evidence needs to be carefully weighed.

Evidence for Plasticity of the Column During Deposition



The Catastrophic model predicts that there would have
been insufficient time between the deposition of the various layers
of the column for them to turn to rock. Evidence for simultaneous plasticity of layers and intermingling of layers would thus
be evidence for a short chronology. Conversely, the evolutionary paradigm would have to invoke heat and pressure in order
to explain plasticity of rock plates, but most of the sedimentary
layers do not show evidence of this. In fact, the folding of vast
sedimentary layers evident in mountain ranges and uplifted areas
suggest that the layers were soft when they were uplifted and
folded, since evidence for heat plasticity in the rocks is lacking.
Also, in the contact zones between layers, we find intermingling
of material. This can be in the form of load casts (top layer pressed
into the lower layer, compressing the lower layer without leaving
signs of breakage behind), turbidimetric flames (bottom layer
93

The Genesis Conflict


being whipped up into the layer above and solidifying together),
or simply intermingling of material in cracks. This again suggests that the various layers consisted of soft material when they
formed, thus allowing for this intermingling.

Clastic intrusions are further evidence for plasticity.
These are finger-like pillars of rock, and occur where some of the
underlying rock has been forced up into the overlying layer. If
the layers are soft at the time of formation and then subjected to
pressure through geological disturbances, an essentially circular
column of liquid mud can be squeezed through the overlying
areas. Roughly similar specific gravity could ensure that the
intrusion remains in the new position whilst the layers harden
together. If the upper layer is subsequently more readily eroded,
a pillar is left as a geological feature. Had the layers formed over

Figure 2.4 - Diagrammatic representation of a section through the pipe and dikebearing
strata in Kodachrome Basin. Legend for formations: Tr/Jn - Triassic-Jurassic Navajo; Jcj
- Jurassic Carmel, Judd Hollow; Jpt - Jurassic Page Sandstone, Thousand Pockets Tongue;
Jcp - Jurassic Carmel, Paria River Member; Jcw - Jurassic Carmel, Winsor Member;
Jcww - Jurassic Carmel, Wiggler Wash Member; Jeg - Jurassic Entrada, Gunsight Butte
Member; Jec - Jurassic Entrada, Cannonville Member; Jee - Jurassic Entrada, Escalante
Member; Jh - Jurassic Henrieville Formation; Kdt - Cretaceous Dakota-Tropic Formations
undifferentiated. (From Origins 19:44-48, 1992)

94

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


millions of years and the rocky plates been subjected to pressure, they
would have broken, but not formed pillars. Moreover, downwardmoving slumps are also found in areas with clastic intrusions and
significantly, in the vicinity of such, there is a general downwarping
of the surrounding rock strata, indicating that the material was soft
at the time of the disturbance.

Another feature often seen in rock strata is extensive folding. The flood model can explain this as contortion induced in soft
material during an earthquake or upheaval of a portion of the earth.
In areas of mountain uplift, extensive folding of the strata is often
apparent. The flood model can readily explain these phenomena.
When the post flood mountain ranges were being uplifted, the still
soft strata on top would be subject to sliding and folding, even
doubling over of layers thus inverting them. This is precisely what
is found in such areas. Inversion of strata is problematic in terms of
the standard model but expected in the catastrophic model. Orogeny
(mountain uplift) creates a further set of problems, because areas
of high relief are also areas of rapid erosion, which would tend to
remove the layers of the geological column.

Geologists suggest that mountains still exist today because
the uplift is constantly pushing the range up from below. Present day
average uplift of mountains is approximately 7.6 mm per year with the
Alps rising at about 1.5 mm per year and other ranges such as Andes
and Himalayas rising considerably faster. However, the rate of erosion
in some of these areas would suggest that the layers of the geological column comprising these mountains should have been eradicated
several times over. The fact that even the geologically so-called young
sediments together with old strata are still well represented creates a
serious problem, since one cannot use uplift as an argument to negate
the rate of erosion. This is circular reasoning. The mountain is being
eroded at a high rate from the top, but it is still there because it is being uplifted at a similar or higher rate than the erosion rate from the
bottom. If this is so, then the youngest geological layers should not
still be present; one cannot have ones cake and eat it too.

95

The Genesis Conflict

Desert Deposits in the Column



Some huge sandstone deposits, thousands of feet high, occur
in Zion Canyon and many other areas of the world. Standard geology
offers these as a problem to creationists, because they are supposed
to represent vast dunes accumulated during long periods of desert
conditions. If that is true, then they are a problem to a flood model.
These dunes show crossgraining supposedly due to wind deposition.
Closer examination shows that the grain size is larger than expected
from wind deposition, and further, the angle at which the deposits
were laid down, 20 30o, is the angle at which river sand is laid
down under water in river deltas. Desert sands are laid down at 30
40o. The very size of these dunes rules against wind deposition
although some of the visible erosion on their surface could be due
to wind. The Bible describes a heavy wind, which followed the
receding waters of the flood and helped to dry the surface of the
earth.

Evidence for Rapid Washout



The Catastrophic model would further predict that there
would be an abundance of evidence for catastrophic washouts.
This is indeed the case. The vast canyons, valleys, and hill-relics
of the world favor diluvial rather than uniformitarian formation.
Moreover, the extensive inland water systems and relic lakes such
as the great salt flats point to masses of water in the recent past.

Geologists have been forced to admit to catastrophic formation of some of the great landscape scars that occur on every
continent. The great Dry Falls of the Columbia River have only
recently been accepted as being of catastrophic origin, as have the
Goosenecks of the Colorado River. Fast erosion is known to give a
Vshaped channel, whereas slow erosion in a meandering riverbed
tends to induce undercutting on the outer circumference of a bend,
96

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


but deposition on the inner circumference. This feature is distinctly
visible in the goose necks showing that two different mechanisms
have contributed to the formation of the channel. The objection that
meandering rivers are slow moving is not substantiated. There is the
example of a huge canyon formed at Kanab Creek in a few hours
during a relatively recent flood, and this river is also a meander. The
Grand Canyon, however, is still believed to have had a slow origin
assigned to the erosive power of the same Colorado River.

The Grand Canyon is particularly problematic, in that the
canyon cuts through an uplifted area, and it is difficult to understand
how the river cut through the uplift rather than staying in the valley.
Several models have been proposed (antecedence model, superposition model, stream capture model, and the anteposition model), but
each of these is plagued by the problem that the river (or rivers),
cutting through the uplift, must themselves be raised to that level.
The catastrophic model, on the other hand, accounts for the canyon
through that uplift by proposing that the area of uplift was raised
rapidly during the post flood period. The uplifted area developed a
crack through which the floodwaters subsided in a massive runoff
thus washing out the canyon in a short period of time. It is generally argued by those advocating long ages, that the Grand Canyon
limestones are similar to those that form very slowly today, but this
is not the case. Grand Canyon limestones consist largely of calcite
whilst modern shallow water lime muds are comprised of argonite.
The crystal size of the canyon limestones is 4 microns or less as
opposed to the 20 microns of modern lime muds. Also the canyon
limestones contain fossils with a dominant orientation showing
deposition by flowing water. The fact that quartz sand grains are
also found in the canyon limestones indicates moving water with
high enough energy to transport the material. Moreover, canyon
limestones contain crinoid heads, which would have deteriorated
rapidly if they were not buried rapidly.40

On a smaller scale, canyons are washed out rapidly even
in our day. The canyons in Kanab Creek, and those formed after

97

The Genesis Conflict


the eruption of Mt. Alaska in 1912 and Mount St. Helens in 1981
were washed out in a matter of hours, yet the stratigraphic appearance of the formations was astoundingly similar to the features
which supposedly evolved over millions of years.41 Even without
catastrophes, canyon formation today is extremely rapid particularly in areas where man has practiced large scale tree felling.42
Modern rapid erosional features, such as dongas (erosion channels),
show landscapes in miniature which are very similar to the surface
topography of the earth. The receding waters leave behind them
water-formed hills and valleys which are shaped by the direction of stream flow. The material between the hills and valleys
is carried away by the floodwaters. The magnitude and flow rate of
the flood determines how much material can be carried away. For
example, if water flow increases fourfold, then 54 times as much
debris can be carried in the water. A hundredfold increase in flow
rate, however, means that 50 million times as much material can
be carried away.

In modern landscapes, we find the same features as those
produced by rapid washouts. Hills consist of layers of the geological column, and the continuity of the layers is interrupted by vast
valleys. The material between hills was either eroded away by
millions of years of erosion, or was carried away rapidly leaving
the hills as relics. Marvelous examples of this type of erosional
feature are found all over the world, but prime examples would
be Monument Valley in the USA, the Karoo in South Africa, and
Ayers Rock (Uluru) in Australia. Geologists believe that events
that shaped Ayers Rock took place over millions of years, but the
mixture of material composing the strata and evidence of massive
water forces again support a catastrophic formation.43 The shaping
of the various geological features found in the hill straddled basins
is also consistent with water erosion rather than wind erosion as is
generally believed today. As the intervening material would have
been soft, it is not difficult to understand how the material could
have been carried away catastrophically by the receding floodwaters.

98

2 - Cosmology and the Earth



Overall, a Catastrophic flood model for the formation of
the geological column, as well as for the formation of all the other
topographic features of the earth as a whole, can explain those
features which are difficult to explain using a uniformitarian model.

REFERENCES
Giorgio de Santillana, The Origins of Scientific Thought: From
Anaximander to Proculus 600 B.C.-300 A.D. (Chicago: University
of Chicago Press, 1961).

1.

Gerald Wheeler, The Two-Tailed Dinosaur: Why Science and Religion Conflict Over the Origin of Life (Nashville: Southern Publishing
Assn, 1975).

2.

Peter W. Birkeland and Edwin E. Larson, Putman's Geology (New


York: Oxford University Press, 1989): 28-29.
http://www.amazon.com/Putnams-Geology-Peter-W-Birkeland/
dp/0195055179#reader_0195055179
3.

Monroe W. Strickberger, Evolution, 2nd edition (London: Jones &


Bartlett, 1996).
4.

Mart de Groot, Cosmology and Genesis: The Road to Harmony and


the Need for Cosmological Alternatives, Origins 19(1) (1992): 8-32.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/19008.pdf
5.

A. A. Michelson and E.W. Morley, On the Relative Motion of the


Earth and the Luminiferous Ether, American Journal of Science 34
(1887): 333-345.
http://www.aip.org/history/gap/PDF/michelson.pdf

6.

Margaret Wertheim, God of the Quantum Vacuum, New Scientist


156(2102) (1997): 28-31.
7.

99

The Genesis Conflict


8.

New Scientist, (August 21, 1999): 23-26.

Ed Holroyd, In Six Days: Why 50 Scientists Choose to Believe


in Creation. Ed. John F. Ashton. (New Holland Publishers, 1999):
257-267.

9.

Keith H. Wanswer, In Six Days: Why 50 Scientists Choose to


Believe in Creation. Ed. John F. Ashton. (New Holland Publishers,
1999): 90-97.
10.

11.

John Maddox, Down with the Big Bang, Nature 340 (1989): 425.

Andrej Pacholoczyk, qtd. in Margaret Wertheim, God of the


Quantum Vacuum, New Scientist 156(2102) (1997): 28-31.
12.

J. Gordon Ogden III, The Use and Abuse of Radiocarbon Dating,


Annals of the New York Academy of Science 288 (1977): 167-173.

13.

S. R. Wilkinson et al., Experimental evidence for non-exponential


decay in quantum tunneling, Nature 387 (1997): 575-577.
14.

Keith H. Wanswer, In Six Days: Why 50 Scientists Choose to


Believe in Creation. Ed. John F. Ashton. (New Holland Publishers,
1999): 90-97.
15.

A. Hayatsu, K-Ar Isochron Age of the North Mountain Basalt,


Nova Scotia, Canadian Journal of Earth Sciences 16 (1979): 974.t
16.

P. Giem, In Six Days: Why 50 Scientists Choose to Believe in Creation. Ed. John F. Ashton. (New Holland Publishers, 1999): 45-49.
17.

C. Brooks, D. E. James, and S. R. Hart, Ancient Lithosophere:


Its Role in Young Continental Volcanism, Science 193 (1976): 1093.
18.

J. R. Baumgardner, In Six Days: Why 50 Scientists Choose to


Believe in Creation. Ed. John F. Ashton. (New Holland Publishers,
1999): 206-223.
19.

100

2 - Cosmology and the Earth


I. McDougall, A. A. Polach, and J. J. Stipp, Excess Radiogenic
Argon in Young Subaerial Basalts from the Auckland Volcanic Field,
New Zealand, Geochemica et Cosmochemica Acta 33 (1969):
1485-1520.
20.

Andrew Snelling, Radioactive Dating Failure: Recent New Zealand Lava Flows Yield Quotations of Millions of Years, Creation
Ex nihilo 22(1) (2000): 18-21.

21.

K. Swenson, Radio-dating in rubble, Creation ex nihilo 23 (3)


(2001): 23-25.
22.

D.E. Fisher, Excess Rare Gases in a Subaerial Basalt from Nigeria, Nature 232 (1971): 60-61.
23.

R. G. Walker, Mopping up the Turbidite Mess, in Evolving


Concepts in Sedimentology. Ed. R. N. Ginsburg (Baltimore: John
Hopkins University Press, 1973): 1-37.
24.

O. H. Schindewolf, Comments on Some Stratigraphic Terms,


American Journal of Science 255 (1957): 395.
25.

26.

J. E. ORourke, American Journal of Science 276 (1976): 47 & 53.

Ivan E. Rouse, Paleomagnetism, Origins 10(1) (1983): 18-36.


http://www.grisda.org/origins/10018.pdf
27.

Ariel A. Roth, Origins: Linking Science and Scripture (Review


and Herald Publishing Association, 1998).
http://books.google.ca/books?id=6XHnT85y7toC&printsec=frontc
over&dq=Origins,+Linking+Science+and+Scripture&hl=en&sa=X
&ei=N-_2UIL8Hoe9iwKriYCIBA&ved=0CDEQ6AEwAA
28.

29.

Ibid.

101

The Genesis Conflict


Norman D. Newell, Mass Extinction: Unique or Recurrent
Causes? in Catastrophes and Earth History: The New Uniformitarianism. Eds. William A. Berggren and John A. Van Couvering
(New Jersey: Princetown University Press, 1984): 125.

30.

Norman D. Newell, Paraconformities, in Essays in Paleontology and Stratigraphy. Eds. Curt Teichert and Ellis L. Yochelson.
(University of Kansas Press, 1967): 357.
31.

Arthur V. Chadwick, Megabreccias: Evidence for Catastrophism,


Origins 5(1) (1978): 39-45.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/05039.pdf

32.

W. H. Shea, The Antediluvians, Origins 18(1) (1991): 10-26.


http://www.grisda.org/origins/18010.htm

33.

John S. Shelton, Geology Illustrated (W.H. Freeman and Co.,


1966): 28.

34.

Ariel A. Roth, Origins: Linking Science and Scripture (Review


and Herald Publishing Association, 1998).
http://books.google.ca/books?id=6XHnT85y7toC&printsec=frontc
over&dq=Origins,+Linking+Science+and+Scripture&hl=en&sa=X
&ei=N-_2UIL8Hoe9iwKriYCIBA&ved=0CDEQ6AEwAA
35.

Ariel A. Roth, Origins: Linking Science and Scripture (Review


and Herald Publishing Association, 1998).
http://books.google.ca/books?id=6XHnT85y7toC&printsec=frontc
over&dq=Origins,+Linking+Science+and+Scripture&hl=en&sa=X
&ei=N-_2UIL8Hoe9iwKriYCIBA&ved=0CDEQ6AEwAA
36.

Ariel A. Roth, Some Questions about Geochronology, Origins


13(2) (1986): 64-85.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/13064.pdf
37.

102

38.

Lindale, American Journal of Science (276): 81-1976.

Harold G. Coffin, Robert H. Brown, and James R. Gibson, Origin


by Design (Review and Herald Publishing, 1983): 82-98.7

39.

Grand Canyon Limestone-Fast or Slow Deposits? Creation


17(3) (1995): 50-51.
http://creation.mobi/grand-canyon-limestonefast-or-slow-deposits

40.

Steven A. Austin, Rapid Erosion at Mount St. Helens, Origins


11(2) (1984): 90-98.
http://static.icr.org/i/pdf/technical/Rapid-Erosion-at-Mount-StHelens.pdf

41.

Rebecca Gibson, Canyon Creation, Creation 22(4) (2000):


46-48.
http://creation.com/canyon-creation

42.

Andrew Snelling, Uluru and Kata Tjuta: Testimony to the Flood,


Creation 20(2) (1998): 36-40.
http://creation.com/uluru-and-kata-tjuta-a-testimony-to-the-flood

43.

103

The Genesis Conflict

NOTES:

104

3
THE FOSSIL RECORD

From ancient times, people had noted the fossilized remains of animals that did not seem to resemble living species.
Moreover, seashells could be found in the strangest places, even
on the tops of the highest mountain ranges. The ancient Greeks
were aware of these fossilized remains of creatures, and Heredotus
(484-425 BC) suggested that they came about as a consequence
of changes in the positions of the sea and land. These changes
were even associated with considerable time periods, and Aristotle believed that they took place so slowly that they could not be
observed today.

Many theories regarding fossils have been propagated,
ranging from Lusi naturae jokes of nature to prehistoric animals
buried by catastrophic events (adherents of this view included Robert Hooke who discovered cells and Cuvier, the French comparative anatomist). Fossils were recognized as extinct species whose
place has been filled by the creatures living today. Bible-believing
scholars, who attributed the fossils to the destruction of animals
during the Noachian flood described in Genesis, also accepted the
catastrophic model. However, the gradual ascendancy of the idea
of long ages, together with the numerous questions raised by the
105

The Genesis Conflict


Biblical account led many to doubt the validity of the Scriptures.
Some of the questions that seemingly could not be accounted for
were: How did all the animals get into the ark? Why is there a
particular order in the fossil record? How did the animals get to the
various continents from the ark? Why do the animals represented
in the fossil record look so different from those present today?

These questions led to a search for naturalistic explanations for the fossil record and the origin of life in general. Before
Darwin published his Origin of Species, Jean-Baptiste Lamarck
(1744-1829) was one of the first of the new era of scientists to
propose that the geological discontinuities in the stratigraphic
record represented gradual changes in the environment and climate to which species were exposed and through their effects on
organisms these changes led to species being transformed. The
geologists, Hutton and Lyell, expanded this concept and Charles
Darwin added the biological arm, thus laying the foundation for
modern concepts on the origin of fossils. Indeed, the fossil record
is today considered to be the severest blow to all anti-evolutionary
ideas.

Ironically, the scientific views on the question of origins
have a tendency to go full circle. Whereas exponents of the theory
of evolution rejected catastrophism, many scientists are today
returning to catastrophism and even to the Biblical account of the
flood to explain many of the features of the geological column and
the fossil record. A major problem with this view, as scientists see
it, is the universality of the Biblical flood with its destruction of
all terrestrial life, which would put an end to any theory of naturalistic origins. However, it is not only the Bible that speaks about
a worldwide flood, but virtually every society on every continent
has the story of a worldwide flood in its folklore.1 Moreover, there
is evidence that indicates that there was a universal total covering
of the earth by water - compelling evidence that cannot readily
be ignored. This includes:
1) Massive fossil graveyards with evidence of
plants and animals being washed into position.
106

3 - The Fossil Record


2) Huge sedimentary deposits (nearly three quarters
of the earths exposed surface is covered with
sedimentary rock deposits).
3) The chalk deposits of the world are universal.
Chalk is formed from the skeletons of marine
unicellular protozoans and algae, and can only settle
out of relatively shallow water. In deep oceans, the
calcium carbonate shells dissolve on the way down
to the ocean floor. The chalk deposits are thus an
indication of worldwide coverage of a relatively
shallow sea. Chalk deposits of the same age are
found in many areas of North America, Australia,
Europe, Asia, and Africa, and all of these deposits are
resting on the same type of glauconitic sandstone.2
For these factors to be so universal, the same
conditions must have existed universally.
4) The vast coal and oil fields of the world are further
evidence of a vast flood catastrophe. No process
occurring today can even remotely approach the
magnitude of the catastrophe necessary to account
for such a vast scale of universal burial of plants and
other organic material.

Order in the Fossil Record



The three eras of geological time (Paleozoic, Mesozoic,
and Cenozoic) are characterized by different fossil assemblages
(Refer to Figure 2.2). Before these eras, there was the Precambrian,
which is not regarded as an era and contains fossils of blue-green
algae and some fungi. The Paleozoic Era is known for its abundant
marine life ranging from brachiopods and trilobites to sharks and

107

The Genesis Conflict


bony fishes in the Devonian, as well as amphibians and reptiles
in the Carboniferous. This era is also known for its extensive coal
beds, consisting largely of extinct plants such as giant horsetails,
ferns, some seedless plants, and club mosses. The Mesozoic era is
divided into three periods, the Triassic, Jurassic, and Cretaceous,
and is known for its dinosaurs and many other reptiles. At the
close of this era, we have the extensive chalk deposits, which we
have discussed earlier. It is not surprising then that the close of
this era is associated with massive extinctions. In a catastrophic
flood model, this era would be associated with the close of the
flood period prior to the re-emergence of the continents from the
waters which covered the earth. The plants of the Mesozoic era
comprise cycads, conifers, and deciduous trees many of which
still exist today. In the Cenozoic era, we find largely the fossils
of mammals and birds, and Cenozoic plants are essentially similar
to the species that exist today.

The question arises as to why there is this particular order
in the fossil record which is interpreted as a progressive advance
from simple to complex organisms? The type of fossil found in
the various layers changes as one ascends the geological column,
from invertebrates, fish, amphibians and reptiles, to the mammals
and birds in the uppermost strata. This order in the fossil record is
one of the prime evidences used by scientists to establish evolution as a fact. However, the sequence is not from simple organisms to complex organisms (there is no such thing as a simple
organism in biological terms), but rather from marine sessile to
pelagic (free-swimming) to terrestrial life forms. The fact then is,
that there is no such thing as a simple undifferentiated animal in
the fossil record that may be cited as proof for the development
of organisms from simple to complex. George Gaylord Simpson,
the famous proponent of the evolution theory, already witnessed
to this fact when he stated in his book The Meaning of Evolution:
It has been suggested that all animals are now specialized and that the generalized forms on which
108

3 - The Fossil Record


major evolutionary developments depend are absent. In fact, all animals have always been more or
less specialized and a really generalized living form
is merely a myth or an abstraction.3


The earliest organisms in the fossil record were thus
complex organisms and there is no evidence for the progressive
advance required by the theory of evolution. Yes, there were many
organisms such as trilobites and ammonites that existed in the past
that do not exist today, but this does not make them primitive.
They were just as complex as anything living today. In fact, the
fossil record shows a past wealth of organisms which is staggering.
Surprisingly, most of the organisms of the past were much larger
and impressive than present-day animals even, where they belong
to the same groups of animals. In fact, in this regard, the fossil
record shows evidence for devolution rather than evolution.

There are many reasons beside progressive development
which could be cited for the order in the sequence of fossils.
The sequence from sessile to free-swimming to terrestrial is
indicative of ecological zones being destroyed progressively as
can be illustrated by a simple example. If a bulldozer rapidly
covered a duck pond with soil, then the organisms in the pond
would be buried in sequence. The bottom dwelling worms and
snails would be at the bottom, the fish somewhat higher, and the
ducks on top. The sequence represents the ecological zones in
which the animals lived and definitely not the order in which they
evolved. The same holds true for the fossil record. Indeed, we
find assemblages of fossils e.g. radiolarians and foraminiferans in
the same sequence in the fossil record as they occur in a present
day ecological zonation.4 The ability to float or not would also
produce zonation. Mammals and birds float due to bloating or
trapped air in feathers and hair and are thus to be found in higher
strata. Coal layers reflect this same phenomenon. The Paleozoic
coal seams consist largely of non-floating plant species whereas

109

The Genesis Conflict


those found in higher strata consist of floating species. No model
provides all the answers, but the flood model can provide a very
satisfactory explanation for the series found in the fossil record.

Explosive Evolution

The bulk of the fossil record is found in a series of layers commencing with the Cambrian. The Cambrian is associated
with an explosive occurrence of various diverse fossil forms. The
sudden and almost simultaneous appearance of fossils, from even
different phyla, has been termed the Cambrian explosion. PreCambrian fossils are largely limited to microorganisms, and where
macrofossils occur, they are normally at contact zones with the
Cambrian and difficult to ascribe to one or the other layer.

If evolution were true, one would expect a progressive
advance from simple to complex in the fossil record, but amazingly one finds that even the so called higher life forms such as the
chordates appear right in the beginning. In an article entitled The
Big Bang of Animal Evolution, Jeffrey S. Levinton, professor in
ecology and evolution at the State University of New York states:
The Cambrian explosion was characterized by the
sudden and roughly simultaneous appearance of
many diverse animal forms almost 600 million
years ago. No other period in the history of animal
life can match this remarkable burst of evolutionary
creativity.5

He goes on to say that evolutionary lawns rather than trees
appear to be the norm. An evolutionary tree normally shows a
common ancestor with branches leading to organisms that develop
later in time. In a lawn, all the branches are parallel which means
there is no so-called common ancestor. Levinton concludes:

110

3 - The Fossil Record


Those stories point to a serious problem with all
arguments about evolution that rely on taxonomic
classification. Some of the fossils that suggest the
existence of unique classes are very poor scraps
from the geological table.

The fact that all the major phyla appear simultaneously
in the fossil record is a strong argument for creation rather than
evolution. Even Charles Darwin admitted this in the first edition
of the Origin of Species. He writes regarding this issue:
The case at present must remain inexplicable and
may be truly urged as a valid argument against
the views here entertained.6

These facts have urged Neo-Darwinists such as Stephen
J. Gould to reconsider Darwins idea of gradualism (the slow
development of one form out of another over time) and replaced
it with the concept of evolution through punctuated equilibrium
(periods of equilibrium followed by rapid (punctuated) changes).
Whatever one wishes to term it, the fact remains that organisms
appear suddenly which is in harmony with the creation account.
Punctuated equilibrium has many hurdles to cross, particularly in
the sphere of genetics, where it must be explained how so many
useful mutations could come about so rapidly or be employed
usefully in an integrated fashion without there being prior design.
The idea that all major phyla could appear at once seems to be
stretching it to say the least.

Current concepts require vast time periods, measured in
millions of years, to accommodate changes from one life form to
another. Standard geology, therefore, supposes vast time periods
for each of the geological layers to account for this period of
time. Historically, the time periods became longer as evidence

111

The Genesis Conflict


for the complexity of evolutionary change became greater. It is
interesting that new evidence of the very rapid appearance of
life on earth, and the absence of evidence for change over long
periods of time, have forced scientists in the opposite direction,
and they are just as willing to slash vast ages out of the geological
column, as they were to insert them. 7

The problem is so vast that it almost seems as if scientists
are becoming desperate to find a solution to the problem. They are
even talking of Evolving at Supersonic Speed. A group of researchers from M.I.T. and Harvard found it necessary to recalibrate the
geological clock by chopping the time for the Cambrian in half and
then cramming the evolutionary events into the first third, prompting
Gould to state:
Fast is now a lot faster than we thought, and thats
extraordinarily interesting. 8

Gould states that full diversity was reached in the Cambrian explosion, and this admittance is only one step away from
special creation. Indeed creationists do just a little more chopping
to the time scale. A recent discovery of even a vertebrate from the
Cambrian shows beyond doubt that full diversity was reached in
the Cambrian Explosion, and this further complicates the issue for
naturalistic evolution over millions of years.9 If full diversity was
there from the beginning, then that sounds like special creation.

Evolutionary Sequences
Gould states that:
The family trees that adorn our text books are
based on inference, however reasonable, not the
evidence of the fossils.10

112

3 - The Fossil Record



This means that the evolutionary sequences are morphological sequences and do not necessarily reflect the sequence in
the palaeontological record. The sequences are logical according
to the paradigm or mindset of the researcher, but they are not necessarily right. If a taxonomist were given the task of determining
the evolutionary development of a series of dog skulls (given the
scenario that he did not know how the various dog races came
into existence and that the scientist had never seen living dogs),
then he or she would logically group them from small to large and
also group the flat-nosed ones on one branch of the evolutionary
tree and the long-nosed ones on the opposite branch with a common ancestor somewhere at the base of the tree. This would be
perfectly logical, but it would not be right, since dogs all belong
to one species and the variation between them is as a result of the
built-in variation in the original gene pool. The dog was not bred
from the smallest to the largest, but these reflect the extremes of
the genetic variation within the gene pool. The dogs were in fact
bred from the center outwards with wild canids as a starting point.
The palaeontologist suffers similar constraints as our hypothetical
researcher. He or she is also confronted with the bones of animals
often from the same strata and asked to arrange them without having seen the living specimens and not knowing their origin.

Given the nature of the fossil record, many species would
have been contemporaneous which means that they lived at the
same time. Scientists accept that a species may evolve and then
continue to exist unchanged whilst other species may have evolved
out of this species (or similar species), the coelacanth being a case
in point. However, the other possibility is that the coelacanth and
other so-called living fossils such as Solenodon, a shrew-like
mammal that disappeared from the fossil record some apparent
thirty five million years ago, the tuatara lizard from New Zealand
of which there is not a trace in the fossil record since the Mesozoic,
and Lingula, the marine creature that was to have become extinct
some five hundred million years ago are just what they represent,
creatures that were there from the beginning and still exist today.
113

The Genesis Conflict


In fact, unchanged (except for size) scores of insects and invertebrates in general and hosts of plants have unchanged records
from their first appearance in the fossil record to the present. The
perfect preservation of many soft bodied animals such as jellyfish
and the superb preservation of insects and crustaceans show that
even down to the finest detail the fossil forms resemble the living
creatures of today.

The fact that they appear and remain unchanged could thus
be an indication of design, but this is generally too simple a solution
for those seeking a naturalistic answer to origins and so, given the
contemporaneous nature of many species, scientists are compelled
to piece together the evolutionary puzzle from what is available to
them. The fossils are then arranged in sequences consistent with their
morphology and the paradigm of the researcher. Using modern biochemical techniques, it is now possible to test these fossil sequences
using DNA comparisons between species. Interestingly, this often
confuses the issue even more, because vastly different creatures on
the morphological level often turn out more related than morphologically similar creatures. Also the sequence of development is brought
into question by such determinations. For example, cartilaginous
fishes, such as sharks, are considered to be more primitive than the
bony fishes, but comparison of the complete mitochondrial DNA
sequence of the spiny dogfish indicates that it falls between the
teleosts and non-teleost bony fishes on the phylogenetic tree. This
implies that cartilaginous fish have lost the swim bladder and the
bony skeleton and may thus not be as primitive as supposed, but
rather regressed. 11

A study of the major living groups of fishes and their supposed ancestry shows that their ancestral lines do in fact not link up
to form a tree, but can be traced back in parallel lines (evolutionary
lawns), often unchanged except for size, without any links to other
life forms. Intermediaries are also missing and links are thus based
on speculation, not the evidence of the fossils The same holds true
for amphibians, reptiles, birds, and mammals. Their lineages are

114

115

250

Permian

450

400

350

Camrian

550

Ordovician 500

Silurian

Devonian

Carboniferous

300

200

150

100

50

Triassic

Jurassic

Cretaceous

Tertiary

Present

Ostracoderms
Shell-skinned

Agnathans
Lamprey

Acanthodians
(spiny fishes)

Placoderms
(armored fishes)

Chondrichthyes
Shark
Osteichthyes
(ray-finned fishes)
Bass

Osteichthyes
(lobe-finned fishes)
Coelacanth
Amphibians
Frog

Figure 3.1 - Evolution of the Fishes. Note that the lines for each present-day species are parallel. These animals have existed from the earliest times that
fishes appear in the fossil record. The branches leading to a hypothetical ancester are inferred.

Time (in millions of years)

Quaternary
(to Present)

3 - The Fossil Record

116

150

100

50

350

300

250

200
Carboniferous

Permian

Triassic

Jurassic

Cretaceous

Tertiary

Present

Lizards

Early reptiles

Turtles
Snakes
Tuataras

Birds

Theapsids

Dinosaurs

Pelycosaurs

Thecodonts

Crocodiles

Mammals

Figure 3.2 - Reptilian Relationships. Again the lines are parallel. Each group can be traced back in the fossil record to an abrupt beginning.
The connecting lines are once again hypothetical.

Time (in millions of years)

Quaternary
(to Present)

The Genesis Conflict

3 - The Fossil Record


traced in parallel lines in the fossil record and hypothetical evolutionary trees are thus based on inference (See Figures 3.1 and 3.2).

Intermediaries

Intermediaries in these supposed evolutionary lines are
absent, although creatures such as Archaeopteryx and the mammallike reptiles are cited as evidence for links between reptiles and
birds and reptiles and mammals. The mammal-like reptiles suffer
from the same problem as the other sequences, since again they
are based on morphological sequences as in the case of our dog
scenario. Logical sequences can be presented, but this does not
necessarily make them right. Arranging these creatures according
to skull morphology suffers the same constraints as arranging the
dogs on the hypothetical tree according to their skull morphology.
In a sense, there is thus an element of circular reasoning, since one
is using a morphological sequence to back a second morphological
sequence that is also based on inference. As the theory of evolution
requires links, however, scientists are obliged to fill in these gaps
with hypothetical intermediaries, and these morphological sequences
are used for just this purpose when in fact they can at best remain
hypothetical missing links.

Archaeopteryx, for example, was found two years after
Darwin published his Origin of Species. This fossil has reptilian
and bird features, which are not unique to either group, but there is
a measure of controversy regarding the fossil, since some consider
it an artifact or even a hoax.12 Generally, the fossil record does thus
not provide the expected intermediaries that are required to fill the
gaps in the record. As the erstwhile Professors of Zoology at Harvard
University, A.S. Romer and George Gaylord Simpson, admit:
Links are missing just where we most fervently
desire them, and it is all too probable that many
links will continue to be missing.41

117

The Genesis Conflict


forefoot
grazing

Pleistocene
and Recent

tooth

Hippidion

Equus

forefoot

Stylohipparion

forefoot

Pliocene

tooth
Nannipus
tooth
Pliohippus

Hippanon

Miocene

Epoch

forefoot

tooth

Archaeohippus
Anchitherium

tooth
Mesohippus
forefoot
forefoot

Eocene

Paleotheres
tooth
Hyracotherium (Eohippus)

Figure 3.3 - Evolution of the Horse. This is a typical morphological sequence.

118

browsing

Oligocene

Merychippus

3 - The Fossil Record


It remains true, as every palaeontologist knows,
that most new species, genera and families and
that nearly all new categories above the level of
families - appear in the record suddenly, and are not
led up to by known gradual, completely continuous
transitional sequences. 42
Even Dr. Colin Patterson, senior palaeontologist at the British
Museum of Natural History admitted in a letter written in 1979, in
answer to a question regarding the absence of intermediary fossils
in his published materials:
I fully agree with your comments on the lack of
direct illustrations of evolutionary transitions in
my book. If I knew of any fossil or living, I
certainly would have included them. You suggest
that an artist should be asked to visualize such
transformations but where would he get the
information from? I could not honestly provide it,
and if I were to leave it to artistic license, would
that not mislead the reader?

Evolution of the Horse



Probably the most famous example cited in support of the
gradual change of species over time is the evolution of the horse. This
exhibit is placed in virtually all textbooks dealing with evolution and
it receives pride of place in the museums of the world (Figure 3.3).

Once again, we are dealing with a morphological sequence,
worked out by O.C. Marsh13, of contemporaneous creatures arranged from small to large. There is no evidence linking them in a
continuous chain of transitional forms and controversy exists as to
finer transitions such as the reduction of the number of toes as we

119

The Genesis Conflict


move from Eohippus (which was previously called Hyracotherium
and resembles the rock hyrax) to the various intermediaries to
Equus, the modern horse. Eohippus was discovered in 1841 in clay
around London. It did not even resemble a horse, and it had sharp
as well as multiple back teeth as in hoofed animals. Of course, being a morphological sequence these different fossils are found in
the same strata, sometimes right next to each other. Marsh already
knew that some modern horses have additional toes, which makes
them similar to the extinct Protohippus.14 Moreover, the various
species used in the horse lineage have variations in the number
of ribs (they vary from 15 to 19 and Equus has 18) and lumbar
vertebrae (vary from 6 to 8), which would require genetic reversals
contrary to the evolutionary model which states that evolution
cannot be reversed. Variation in horse size is not an indication
of evolution, since we have large variations in the size of living
breeds today. The largest horse living today is the Clydesdale and
the smallest is the Flabella which is only 43 centimeters (17 inches)
tall and both, of course, belong to the same species.

In my own experience when lecturing on the question of
evolution and creation, I have been amazed that palaeontologists
are fully aware of these details, and in one lecture given at a prominent South African University, one of the leading palaeontologists
frankly admitted that: No one believes that anymore. Why is
it then that the exhibits remain in the museums when no one believes that anymore? The speculative evolution of the horse is thus
acknowledged by the scientists themselves15, and even Simpson
admitted that:
The most famous of all equid (horse) trends,
gradual reduction of the side toes, is flatly
fictitious.16

120

3 - The Fossil Record

Marine Mammals

Marine mammals are an enigma, since they show such
perfect adaptations to a marine existence in both their anatomy
and their physiology. Marine mammals are supposedly derived
from eutherian land mammals, which secondarily reinvaded the
sea and evolved to their present state in the short period (even
in evolutionary terms) available since the dawn of mammals. In
order to achieve the remarkable capacity to swim and dive as they
do, some fascinating physiological changes had to take place. In
the case of whales and porpoises, the hind limbs had to disappear
and the posterior portions of the animals had to be transformed
into a fin together with the associated muscular design capable of
producing the forces necessary for the type of explosive swimming for which these creatures are known. Evidence for such an
evolutionary development is lacking in the fossil record, although
such profound changes should surely have left their mark in the
stratigraphic record.

There have been attempts to explain the origin of whales
from the fossil record, but most fossils show that they looked just
like present-day whales. Variations in the position of the respiratory opening are used to show evolutionary progression, but these
progressions are again based on morphological sequences and not
on any sequence of the fossils and they therefore at best reflect
normal variation. Evolutionists, however, tend to use three fossil
creatures as evidence for whale evolution, these being Pakicetus,
Ambulocetus, and Basilosaurus. Of these, Pakicetus has been
reconstructed as a walking whale from a few fragments of jaw
and skull. The creature was a land mammal, it was found buried
with land mammals and there is no evidence to link it with whales
except in the mindset of the scientists. Ambulocetus is a creature
known from some skull and limb fragments, which is again used
as an intermediary, but since true whales already existed together
with this creature, we are again dealing with morphological se-

121

The Genesis Conflict


quences, not the evidence of the fossils. Moreover, no hip was
found with this creature, making the entire conjecture as to its
lineage even more speculative. Basilosaurus is an odd serpentine
creature, which has little to do with whale evolution and as some
scientists freely admit, they could not possibly have been ancestral
to modern whales.17

Seals, sea lions and walruses present just as great an evolutionary enigma since they also make a sudden appearance in the
fossil record. All these animals are grouped under the name pinepeds (fin-footed) and are divided into three groups, the Phocidae,
Otariidae and Odobenidae. The Phocidae are the so-called true
seals, the Otariidae are the eared seals, and the Odobenidae are
the walruses. Fossil seals appear suddenly in the fossil record and
look very much like those living today.18 In fact, the similarities
are so great, that monk seals are considered by some to be living
fossils because of their unchanged status.19 The common features
shared by the three groups has led to some interesting debates as
to the ancestry of these animals, with some scientists suggesting
different ancestors ranging from bear-like to otter-like creatures,
but there is no evidence for such a convergent evolution and there
is no fossil evidence to back it up.20, 21

Catastrophism and the Fossil Record



Evidence for catastrophism is very widespread in the fossil record, and the mere fact that most fossils are embedded in
deposits laid down by water thus having had to have been buried
rapidly, indicates catastrophic formation. Geologists have long
recognized that:
If covered by moist sediment, weathering is
prevented. For these reasons quick burial is
perhaps the most important condition favoring
fossilization.. Water borne sediments are so much
widely distributed than all other agents of burial that
they include the great majority of fossils. 22
122

3 - The Fossil Record



Some fossils show immaculate preservation of detail and
these creatures must have been buried instantly to prevent decay.
The state of preservation can thus be an indication of how long
the animals were exposed to the elements before they were buried, and in a flood scenario, it is envisaged that some creatures
would have remained uncovered longer than others. In fossil fish
for example, we find perfectly preserved specimens, specimens
without heads, with and without scales, and sometimes just the
bones or pieces of specimens. During putrefaction, the scales
and the heads of fish drop off quite rapidly, and so it is evident
that some were buried instantly and some floated for some time
before burial. There are four major types of fossils depending on
the method of preservation. These are molds and casts, comprising
footprints and molds that have been filled in with rock-forming
material, petrified fossils or fossils turned to stone by replacement
of the tissue with the elements of the surrounding strata, carbonized fossils, such as coal, and, lastly, unchanged fossils such as
animals trapped in amber or the preserved parts of animals trapped
in tar pits. Seashells and tooth and bone fragments also belong
to the latter group.

Fossil Footprints

The study of fossil footprints and other fossilized evidence
of animal behavior is called ichnology and the animals that made
the footprints are classified by giving them genus and species
names and they are referred to as ichnospecies. These tracks in
stone can tell us something about the conditions under which the
tracks were made and can provide useful insights regarding the
nature of the strata at the time that the tracks were laid down.
Interesting questions would be whether the strata was wet or dry
during the formation of the tracks, in which direction did the
tracks usually lead and is there correlation between actual body
fossils and the tracks that these animals made.
123

The Genesis Conflict



In the Grand Canyon series, as in other areas of the world,
there are parts of the stratigraphic record which scientists ascribe
to periods of aridity and are thus supposed to be desert deposits.
The Coconino Sandstone is one such deposit in the Grand Canyon
series and it consists of fine-grained quartz sand and is up to 1000
feet thick in some areas. It is also crossbedded which is common
of either desert or underwater dunes. The sandstone layer also
contains tracks made by vertebrates and invertebrates and most
of them tend to have been made whilst the animals were moving
uphill in terms of the crossbeded layers. This is, in fact, one of the
features of most of the trackways and warrants an explanation.
Moreover, a desert period in what creationists would consider to
be flood deposits would also be problematic. The issue of desert
deposition has received some new attention from scientists, and
on closer examination, it has been found that underwater deposition is a more likely model to account for their features because
they are more in line with depositions that have been studied in
shallow marine sediments than those that could be formed under
desert conditions. These authors state:23, 24, 25
Since 1903, most of the Navajo sands were
assumed to represent ancient wind dunes formed
on a vast Sahara-like desert; this became a ruling
hypothesis. The Navajo problem originated
years ago when geologists could conceive of large
amplitude cross stratification as originating only
in wind-formed dunes; no other modern processes
that could form it had been studied. This highlights
the major shortcomings of reasoning by analogy,
namely the limitation at a given time of known
possible analogues. Today, knowledge of modern
shallow marine sedimentation has broadened the
spectrum of counterparts and analogues. Insight
gained into remarkably large underwater dunes

124

3 - The Fossil Record


found in very shallow shelf areas provides as
attractive a comparison for much of the Navajo
sands as for lower Paleozoic quartz sandstones.23
Inasmuch as geologists are forced to interpret
ancient sediments chiefly by analogies with modern
phenomena, interpretations are severely biased if
all possible modern analogues are not known; such
was the case when the Navajo was first studied.24

Studies of the actual footprints in the Coconino Sandstone
and comparisons with footprints made by animals in laboratory
conditions on various substrates showed that the tracks in the sandstone must have been made in wet sand consistent with underwater
formation and that the animals made similar tracks when walking
upgrade.25 There are two possibilities here. Either the animals do
not leave adequate tracks when going downhill, or they were going uphill for a reason. Laboratory experiments show that animals
leave equally good tracks when going downhill as when going
uphill, and so the only other logical conclusion is that the animals
were going uphill because they were perhaps trying to escape rising
water levels. This is consistent with the evidence, and also fits the
catastrophic flood model.

Collating data of fossil footprints (from about 800 published papers) and the actual presence of the body fossils of the
creatures that could have made these tracks in the same strata has
also yielded some surprising results. One would expect that strata
containing footprints would also contain the fossils of the animals
that could have made them, but this is not always the case.26 The
distribution of bird and mammal footprints correlate well with the
distribution of body fossils, but amphibian and reptile footprints
correlate poorly with body fossils. Amphibian footprints are rare
after the early Permian and reptile footprints, with the exception
of dinosaur footprints, are most abundant in late Triassic and early

125

The Genesis Conflict


Jurassic rocks. The only Cretaceous reptile footprints identified in
the literature are about a dozen types of dinosaur footprints. Now
in contrast, the amphibian and reptile body fossils are the most
abundant in the Cretaceous and the Tertiary where corresponding
footprints are rare or nonexistent. This does not seem to make sense
if the geological column represents strata accumulated over millions
of years, since one would expect the actual creatures to abound in
the same time period (strata) where their footprints are recorded.
However, if the strata were deposited catastrophically and do not
represent millions of years of time, then a logical explanation can
be found for this anomaly.

Mammals and birds would not readily make underwater
footprints since they tend to float in deep water, and the larger
mammals and the birds could have sought high ground during the
initial flood events. During the early flood events, large numbers of
amphibians and reptiles would have been moving about and thus
producing footprints, which would have been preserved by being
covered by rapid deposition mud flows. Later in the flood very few
live reptiles and amphibians would produce footprints, except for
the larger creatures such as the dinosaurs. During the Cretaceous,
when the only footprints preserved were those of a few dinosaurs,
there would have been many amphibian and reptile bodies that were
being buried by the catastrophic formation of these strata, and this
would account for the abundance of body fossils of these creatures
that are found in these layers. Footprints of bird tracks have been
found in deposits in Nova Scotia, but since these are carboniferous
deposits, they are presumed to have been made by other creatures,
since birds should not have been around yet. If the same prints
had been found higher in the column, then they would have been
classified as bird prints. Similar tracks have also been found in
Permian deposits.26

Generally speaking then, the footprints in stone support the
catastrophic model better than the conventional model of long ages.

126

3 - The Fossil Record

Dinosaurs in Mud

Since fossilization requires very specific, complex conditions, the vastness of the fossil record does not support the idea of
uniformitarianism. Indeed when one considers the giant dinosaur
fossils, then the question arises What buried these creatures
rapidly? Dinosaurs are sometimes found in relatively large
numbers and mostly they are washed into position with many
of them showing distinct stream orientation. Scientists explain
this by stating that these creatures lived in the flood plains and
were periodically overcome. However, these fossil beds often
stretch over thousands of square kilometers, which would not
be consistent with such a scenario. Moreover, some dinosaurs
have been found imbedded in marine deposits, suggesting that
they were washed out to sea. Recently, a specimen of Scelidosaurus with excellent preservation of even skin tissue was found
in Great Britain in marine deposits together with algal spores
and bivalves.27

Dinosaurs were of course reptiles (giant lizards), and their
lineage cannot be determined from the fossil record. However,
they have received such media attention because of their size and
presumed ferociousness that they have captured the attention of
young and old. Far from proving evolution, they are in fact one of
the stumbling blocks, since animals of such remarkable diversity
in size and form must have had a recognizable lineage. The heaviest dinosaur on record is the estimated 100-ton Argentinosaurus,
but it was not the largest, as some sauropod specimens have been
found that could have been 50 meters long and standing 14 meters
high. Large numbers of dinosaur eggs, apparently from these large
creatures, have also been found in Argentina, and these are being
interpreted as dinosaur nurseries, but again these well preserved
eggs were buried rapidly in silt from a flood.28 Chiappe, one of
the team leaders and principle author of the paper published in
the journal Nature had this to say regarding the eggs:

127

The Genesis Conflict


Scientists found so many embryonic remains that
it appears catastrophe struck the nesting ground,
keeping many eggs from hatching Floods may
have penetrated the porous shells and drowned
the embryos. 29



There are some that say that dinosaurs are not extinct, but
live on in the birds of today. The evolution of birds is traced to
dinosaurs, but there are major problems with this supposition. The
feathered dinosaur Archaeopteryx resembles a small coelurosaurian dinosaur Compsognathus and the only distinction linking it
to birds is its feathers, which have been disputed in the literature
as previously noted. Other than the disputed feather link, there
are other problems, which negate dinosaur lineage for birds. Birds
lack the embryonic thumb that dinosaurs had, suggesting that it
is almost impossible for them to be related.30 Moreover, it is
impossible to envisage how the simple sac-like lung of dinosaurs
could have evolved into the highly complex avian lung with its
through-flow system and countercurrent oxygen exchange. A
team led by John Ruben, from Oregon State University, analysed
outlines of Sinosauropteryx (a so-called feathered dinosaur) and
concluded that its "bellowlike lungs could not have evolved into
the high-performance lungs of modern birds". 31

There is no denying that floods and fossils seem inseparable, but an erstwhile world destroyed by a flood would destroy
the very foundations of the evolutionary theory, which sees fossils
as evidence of phylogeny. However, more and more evidence is
coming to light which threatens the very foundations of uniformitarianism. One of the finest modern-day detective stories regarding
catastrophism in the fossil record is to be found in the story of the
petrified forests in Yellowstone National Park and other petrified
forests around the world.

128

3 - The Fossil Record

Petrified, Fossilized Trees and their Age Implications



The general distribution and vertical stratification of the
petrified trees in the Yellowstone National Park are presumed to
represent a series of up to 40 successive forests, one on top of the
other, whose combined age was estimated as being well in excess
of timerestraints imposed by a flood model. It was believed that
each successive forest was covered by volcanic ash in sequential
eruptions, only to be replaced in the course of time by new forests.
It was argued that this evidence could not support a young age for
the current topography of these forests. Dr. Harold Coffin carried
out a detailed investigation of these petrified forests and discovered
that in spite of the long age paradigms accepted in the scientific
community, these forests actually support the catastrophic model.32

As many of the trees are standing upright in an apparent
position of growth, it was accepted that they were the remains of
an actual forest. Moreover, the strata in which each forest layer
is situated are uniformly flat and totally unlike any modern forest
which, if it were covered by volcanic ash, would show trees growing on slopes and other uneven topography. Closer examination
reveals that the petrified trees have no bark, no side branches, and
the rootstocks are ripped off. This is inconsistent with trees being
covered with ash while in a position of growth, since the roots
would be undisturbed if the tree was still in position of growth.
Moreover, covering the trees with ash would certainly leave the
branches at least in the vicinity of the trees that were covered.

There are not only upright trees in these strata, but many
horizontal trees are also found. In places, the vertical separation is
actually very small - the new layer lying just above the stumps of
the older layer. Close examination of the strata reveals typical evidence of turbidite action and sorting of layers, which tend to show
reverse grading with the coarser material on top. This is consistent
with material which has been deposited by water-induced slides
and slumps, and does not support deposition of dry volcanic ash.

129

The Genesis Conflict


Petrified Tree Area

Mt. Norris

Vertcle Trees

Vertical

Horizontal

Level 3

19

16
Level 4

24
All 7
levels

Fossil Forest
Horizontal

Vertical

37
Level sub-1

6
8

Level 1

19

Level 2

43

Figure 3.4 - Orientation of vertical and horizontal petrified trees in the Petrified Tree, Mt. Norris, and Fossil Forest areas, Yellowstone National Park.For levels with five or less measureable
trees, each tree is represented by a line. Numerals beside rose graphs represent sample size.8

130

3 - The Fossil Record


The organic layers, which previously were considered to represent
the compacted forest floors, are also water sorted, which belies a
mere forest situation. Analyses of tree orientation show that both
horizontal and vertical trees are orientated in distinct directions.
By comparison, the orientation of fallen trees in standing forests
in Oregon, deciduous forests in Michigan and redwood forests in
California show a lack of orientation (figures 3.4 and 3.5).

A solution to these anomalies came when, in 1980, Mount
St. Helens erupted. The March 30 eruption melted the glacial ice,
precipitating a flood on the south side of the mountain. Along
with cold volcanic ash, the rushing water carried a large number
of trees down the side of the mountain. These trees of varying
sizes were stripped of their side branches, bark, and roots. The
logs were buried in the volcanic ash with a predominant stream
orientation. This is similar to the orientation of the petrified trees
on the slopes of Mount Horniday in Yellowstone National Park.

On May 18, Mount St. Helens erupted again, with an accompanying earthquake. Tremendous pressure within the mountain
was released after a rockslide, and the top 400 meters of the mountain were blown off in a catastrophic explosion. A force equivalent
to 500 Hiroshima atomic bombs was unleashed. The destruction of
the forest was total, with the trees literally blasted out of the ground.
Debris falling in the lakes surrounding the mountain, caused tidal
waves which washed uprooted trees into newly formed and existing
lakes. In Spirit Lake, a study was done, and it was found that those
logs that had root stumps rapidly righted themselves assuming a
vertical position. A sonar scan of the bottom of the lake revealed
19,500 upright trees on the bottom of the lake.33 If one applies
this scenario to the situation prevailing in Yellowstone National
Park, one can readily account for the existing situation on the
basis of the catastrophic model.

More than one eruptive cycle would cause numerous
turbidity currents and account for the numerous layers superpositioned over each other. Moreover, studies on the chemical
composition of the volcanic deposits show that they were from
131

The Genesis Conflict

Fir Forest
Oregon
78

Deciduous Forest
Michigan
60

Redwood Forest
California
67
Figure 3.5 - Orientation of prostrate trees in living forests from three diverse locations. 8

eruptive events occurring simultaneously over a short period of


time. This can be ascertained because the relationship between
chemical components in volcanic ejecta is constant only for
single eruptive cycles. Studies on lava flows in Hawaii show
that eruptive events separated by more than three months can
be distinguished on the basis of the magma composition. The
time implications for the formation of the petrified forests are
thus consistent with a short chronology. Further evidence for
catastrophism can be found in the fossil trees that are embedded
in more than one geological layer simultaneously - a situation
which is impossible if uniformitarian principles are applied.
132

3 - The Fossil Record



How long would it take for wood to petrify? It has always
been a tenet of evolutionary thinking that stone formation and
processes such as petrification must have taken place over millions of years. However, as we have seen in the previous chapter, these processes can take place rapidly. Instant petrification
has been achieved artificially and under natural circumstances.
By impregnating wood with solutions high in minerals such as
silicon and aluminium, instant petrification has been achieved and
even patented.34,

Writing in the Australian Lapidary Magazine, Piggot
recounts a story of natural rapid petrification of a piece of wood
from a tree that had been chopped down 70 years ago, with axe
marks still on it, that had been buried and dug up again petrified.
The story also reports on petrified fence posts with drill holes and
wires still attached.35 Given the right circumstance, it would thus
not take long for petrification to take place. Moreover, floodwaters
together with volcanic ash would provide the perfect mineral soup
for the processes to take place.

Floodwaters Covered the Earth



A catastrophe of the awesome magnitude proposed by the
Biblical flood model would have totally restructured the post-flood
world. According to Scripture, the whole world was submerged under water, and the restructuring of the earth to produce the present
topography must therefore be a post-flood phenomenon. Evidence
for total submersion of the continents is widespread on earth. Water
deposition is a feature of the geological column, but one layer in
particular, the Cretaceous layer, points to a transition between the
pre- and post- catastrophic events postulated in this model.

The Cretaceous layer comprises of chalk deposits consisting
largely of calcium carbonate derived from vast deposits of coccolith
(algal) shells and other microorganisms with calcium carbonate
skeletons. In view of its universal distribution, the Cretaceous layer
133

The Genesis Conflict


is evidence of a worldwide shallow sea covering the continents.
The calcium carbonate skeletons of certain algae and Foraminifera
would only settle out in large quantities if the seas were shallow
and conditions favored algal blooms. Such disturbed ecological
conditions would have prevailed in the immediate postflood era.

The Cretaceous layer varies in thickness, a condition that
could have been brought about by currents, or by differences in the
time that the various areas were submerged under water. In the area
of the white cliffs of Dover, the deposits are substantial, possibly
indicating that these areas were submerged for a long period. This
type of deposition does not occur today, as the calcium carbonate
skeletons would dissolve in the deep oceanic waters presently
existing. Although no present day scenario can parallel that of the
deluge model, there are, however, some events occurring today
which can shed some light on what might have happened in the
past. The present disturbed ecology has resulted in some extraordinary algal blooms in waters rich in inorganic salts, derived from
agricultural endeavors or other chemical industries. One such area
is the Mediterranean, where masses of effluent and chemicals
provide environments conducive to massive algal blooms.

The postflood waters would have been rich in minerals and
decaying organic materials, and in such circumstances, the algal
blooms which produced the chalk layers could have been deposited
in a very short time. Continental uplift would then have resulted in
the drainage of water, recycling of sedimentary deposits and subsequent burial of the chalk layer, plant debris, and decayed animal
remains. Further evidence supporting this model can be found in
the Tertiary deposits which are packed with fossils creating fossil
graveyards with numerous species dumped together. Strata with
pieces of broken mammalian bones are also not uncommon in
Cenozoic deposits, a condition that is difficult to explain using the
standard evolutionary paradigm. Furthermore, streamorientation
of fossils is evident in the Tertiary which shows that deposition of
these fossils was not only produced by water, but that the deposition
was also catastrophic.
134

3 - The Fossil Record



A catastrophe of this magnitude must surely have left its
mark in the stratigraphic record. Indeed, the later cretaceous is associated with huge scale extinction of numerous species including the
dinosaurs. An analysis of the genera that survived this great extinction at the end of the cretaceous shows that, besides the complete
extinction of the dinosaurs, more than 50% of marine organisms
also died in the destruction. In fact, the post cretaceous world is
a shadow of what it was prior to this time period. The ammonites
and belemnites suffered complete destruction, of all the swimming
reptiles, only three survived. In fact, only 30% of all swimming
marine organisms survived, whereas the survival rate of the freshwater organisms (97% survival) was much higher (see Table 3.1)

Marine organisms are adapted to stable conditions, and a
large-scale upheaval of the marine environment can be expected
to lead to large-scale destruction. Numerous fossil beds of redistributed corals and mollusks account for massive destruction of the
once stable marine environment. It is therefore not surprising that
only approximately half of the bottom dwelling marine organisms
survived this event. In the light of this destruction and the largescale KT extinctions, it is not surprising that scientists have spent
so much time debating the reasons for this phenomenon. Among
the hypotheses suggested to account for extinction on such a massive scale are intense volcanic activity, epidemics of disease, large
scale greenhouse effects with a rise in CO2 levels leading to the
death of dinosaur embryos, changes in plant composition, change
in ocean salinity, high ultraviolet radiation, dust clouds caused by
collisions with comets or asteroids, and ionizing radiation from
supernova explosions.

Most of these theories concentrate on the dinosaurs, but
fail to explain the large-scale destruction of all the other life forms.
Surprisingly, a worldwide destruction by water comprising large
scale upheaval of the ocean floor and submergence of the continents
is totally absent from all the scientific conjectures regarding this
era of extinction when all the evidence points precisely to such
an event. The chalk bed deposits of the cretaceous period ('Creta'
135

The Genesis Conflict

Before
Extinctions

After
Extinctions

Percentage
of Genera
After Extinctions

Freshwater organisms
Cartilaginous fishes
4
2
Bony fishes
11
7
Amphibians
9
10
Reptiles
12
16


36
35
97
Terrestrial organisms (including
freshwater organisms)
100
90
Higher plants
16
18
Snails
0
7
Bivalves
4
2
Cartilaginous fishes
11
7
Bony fishes
9
10
Amphibians
54
24
Reptiles
22
25
Mammals
226
183

81
28
10
Floating marine micro-organisms
43
4
Acritarchs
57
43
Coccoliths
10
10
Dinoflagellates
63
63
Diatoms
18
3
Radiolarians
79
40
Foraminifers
298
173
Ostracods


41
35

261
81
58
95
93
Bottom-dwelling marine organisms
87
31
Calcareous algae
337
204
Sponges
28
22
Foraminifers
300
150
Corals
399
193
Bryozoans
32
24
Brachiopods
69
52
Snails
100
30
Bivalves
190
69
Barnacles
37
28
Malacostracans
1976
1012
Sea lilies
Echinoids
34
0
Asteroids
10
7

4
0
51
70
50
Swimming marine organisms
185
39
Ammonites
29
3
Nautiloids
332
99
Belemnites
Carliaginous fishes
2868
1502

Table 3.1 - Table of the number of genera that lived before and after the cretaceous extinction. Note: The record for terrestrial organisms is limited to North America but is global for
marine organisms. Source: Russel, D.A. 1979 "The enigma of the extinction of the dinosaurs.
Ann. Rev. Earth. Planet Sci. 7:163-182

136

3 - The Fossil Record


is the Latin for 'chalk') are proof that everything was under water.
Sometimes it is difficult to see the forest for all the trees.

Surviving the Catastrophe



If one were to seek a reason for the extinction of many of the
great creatures that once roamed the earth, then one might conjecture
that the post-catastrophic world is not conducive to their survival.
Firstly, there is evidence for a massive increase in the salinity of the
oceans. As a comparative physiologist, I have always been fascinated
by the fact that marine fishes (both the cartilaginous fishes as well as
the bony fishes) are anatomically and physiologically adapted to a
fresh water environment. Their internal salt concentration is approximately one third of that of seawater and their kidneys are adapted for
the elimination of water (they retain glomeruli which would normally
form ultrafiltrates, but in the case of marine fish they have become
functionally aglomerular by permanent constriction of the afferent
glomerular artery), although this function is not required in seawater.
In fact, their low salt concentration causes them to lose water by
osmosis so that they cannot afford to lose water via the kidneys.
The cartilaginous fishes (sharks and rays) solve this problem by
retaining urea (a toxin) to raise their osmolarity to a level higher
than that of seawater so that they can gain water by osmosis,
whereas bony fishes desalinate the seawater by making use of salt
pumps in their gills. Obviously these organisms were adapted to
much lower salinities in the past and only survive because of their
ability to osmoregulate under these circumstances. The retention
of toxin by a cartilaginous fish is an indication of an emergency
solution to which they eventually adjusted. Only organisms that
could either conform to the new conditions or regulate their salt
content could survive and the more sensitive are now extinct.

One might question the possibility that marine and fresh
water organisms could have survived if the waters of the earth were
all dumped together during a global flood. The separation between
137

The Genesis Conflict


fresh and salt water would then only be re-established once the
continents had risen above the water level. Surprisingly, however,
large bodies of fresh and saline waters, or even large bodies of fresh
waters from different sources can coexist side by side without much
mingling along the contact zones. This is seen in the great Amazon
River, where two bodies of water run side by side for kilometers on
end with limited mingling at the contact zone. During the flood stage,
organisms adapted only to fresh water would thus have been able
to survive in large bodies of fresh water that would have remained
relatively distinct. Moreover, the marine life is enhanced where great
bodies of fresh water come into contact with the ocean, and many
species can only spawn in fresh or brackish water thus indicating that
these were the conditions to which they were earlier accustomed. Of
course, one would expect large-scale destruction of aquatic life in
areas where the water composition was rapidly and radically changed
due to hypersalination from underground aqueducts and through
catastrophic mingling of the water masses, and this is indeed what
we do find. The fact that so many marine organisms use rivers and
estuaries as their spawning grounds indicate that the best survival
salinities for these creatures must exist under these low saline conditions and that is why they will even migrate long distances to spawn
in such areas.

Regarding the land organisms, it is enlightening that there
are only two categories of organisms, in terms of their ability to
cope with the thermal environment, in existence today. Terrestrial
animals are either endothermic or ectothermic. Endothermic animals
(largely mammals and birds) control their body temperatures by
increasing their metabolic rates when environmental temperatures
drop, whereas ectothermic animals control their body temperatures
by selectively utilizing external sources such as solar radiation and
environmental heat fluxes. In the absence of solar radiation, the
body temperatures of these animals are the same as that of their
environment. We also speak of these categories as warm-blooded
and cold-blooded animals. In a world with climatic extremes, one
would have to belong to either one of these two categories to survive.
138

3 - The Fossil Record



There is evidence that the great reptiles of the past were
probably neither endotherms nor ectotherms, but somewhere in
between. The same probably holds true for many of the now extinct giant amphibians and mammal-like reptiles. Studies of bone
to marrow ratios show that the dinosaurs and other creatures were
thus in this intermediary condition and would thus require stable
environmental conditions. The plant life of the lower stratigraphic
record shows that the earth probably had a relatively warm climate
prior to the catastrophe, and the post-catastrophic climate was not
suitable for the survival of the paleoforms. Moreover, the largescale reduction in vegetation associated with the destruction means
that many food sources were no longer available and precludes survival of many of these animals. The paleontological record shows
that far greater varieties of plants and animals existed in the past
than are living today and that at both the plant and animal level,
we are thus deprived of numerous species that must have once
graced the planet. One could also expect that only non-specialist
feeders could survive the destruction of their preferred food source,
so that many of the great creatures of the past are no longer with
us because the planet does no longer provide their niche.

What Can Coral Reefs Teach Us?



Coral reefs and coral islands hold secrets which are worthy
of note. Firstly, there are time implications involved in view of the
supposed slow rate of coral growth. Secondly, they can also tell a
story with regard to the events that may have shaped our present
oceans and, by implication, the continents as well. Thirdly, fossil
reefs can present a challenge to the flood model since their presence
is seen to favor slow development over millions of years. Dr. Ariel
Roth of the Geoscience Research Institute in California has done
extensive research on coral reefs and has published a number of
papers which throw light on some of these baffling questions.36, 37

139

The Genesis Conflict


Coral reefs consist of a hard core built up by living organisms that
can resist the wave action of the oceans and the reef in general
represents one of the most complex marine ecological systems. A
reef can trap ocean sediments, and the total structure can thus be
quite complex, with part of the reef being constructed by the reef
organisms themselves and the rest filled in from other sources.

Fossil reefs in the stratigraphic record thus appear to suggest long periods of stability whilst these reefs grew during those
time periods in the earths history. Fossil reefs can serve as a good
trap for oil and they are thus of commercial interest as well. There
is, thus, much interest in these reefs and hundreds of fossil reefs
are reported throughout the geological column. The question
is, how did these fossil reefs form and were they built by reef
organisms in the same way as they are being constructed today?
If so, then they would seriously challenge the Biblical paradigm
of a destruction of the earth by the flood. The fossil reefs could,
however, also be allochthonous reefs (formed by transported sediments) and not necessarily be autochthonous reefs (reefs formed
by biological processes requiring a long time period). The fossil
reefs are generally different to present day reefs since they are
often much smaller (thicknesses ranging in the meter range) and
the organisms are also different. The interpretation as to whether
the corals in the fossil reefs grew there or were transported to their
present position catastrophically is similar to that encountered in
the study of the fossil trees in the petrified forests. The diversity
of organisms (organisms not associated with reefs) and their
orientation in the fossil reefs suggests an allochthonous origin,
which would be consistent with the catastrophic flood model just
as we saw in the case of the petrified forests.

The great Permian reef complex, which is 700 kilometers
long and 200 kilometers wide, has long been considered a type
of ancient Great Barrier Reef. However, the lack of organisms,
which in living reefs construct the frame of the reef, suggests
that this reef does not represent a natural reef. Moreover the
sedimentary layers associated with the reef suggest a catastrophic
140

3 - The Fossil Record


origin. Other fossil reefs such as the Nubrigyn Algal Reefs are now
seen as massive debris flows that carried huge blocks of rock as
large as one kilometer across and dumped them in their present
position. The case for fossil reefs in position of growth is thus the
same as for the petrified forests - the reefs are destroyed remnants
of pre-flood reefs that were broken up and transported together
with other organisms and deposited in layers in the geological
column. They are thus recycled reefs and support the catastrophic
model. Moreover, they show that the ocean floor was subjected to
destructive forces as well and could have played a major role in
accounting for some of the features noted in the geological column. The floor of the ocean could have been raised by up-warping
during the flood, thus pouring the waters over the continents. The
reverse must have happened during the time when the waters were
drained off the land to form the present ocean basins. The question can now be raised - how long did this process take? And this
is where living coral reefs and dead coral islands provide some
interesting insights.

Living coral reefs are traditionally regarded as slow
growers, and they require certain conditions in order to grow.
The reefs are produced by a variety of organisms with corals and
coralline algae being the main contributors. They are also largely
restricted to warmer oceans and, being colonial animals, require
symbiotic organisms in order to flourish. Since many of these
organisms are algal plants, the reefs must also be in contact with
the light and can only grow if the light reaching the reef is sufficient to sustain these photosynthetic organisms. Once the coral
reef reaches the surface of the water, however, growth is retarded
because of the sensitivity of the organisms to ultraviolet radiation
and exposure to air. Maximum coral growth is thus achieved a few
meters below the surface of the water, but the coral cannot grow
from the bottom of the ocean up if the water is too deep (usually
50 meters) to allow for sufficient light to penetrate to that depth.
Estimates for the rate of coral growth have usually been derived

141

The Genesis Conflict


from surface studies where growth is not maximal. But high rates
have been recorded below the surface of the water, and a number
of ships have floundered in charted waters where unexpected reefs
had grown rapidly. Growth rates are usually considered to be in the
order of 0.8-26 mm/year, but maximum rates of coral growth of up
to 414 mm/year have been recorded. Studies also show that if water
temperatures are increased by just 5 oC, then growth rates double.

The challenge posed by this information is as follows: How
does one account for dead coral islands at the bottom of the oceans
in waters that are too deep for coral to grow, and how does one account for tall coral structures that stretch from the ocean floor to the
surface. The Great Barrier Reef is 2000 kilometers long and stretches
up to 320 kilometers offshore and it is 200 meters thick. This does
not pose any serious questions in terms of the time required to produce this reef. Drilling operations at Enewetak Atoll in the Western
Pacific, however, have shown this reef material to be 1405 meters
thick before reaching a basalt rock base. Applying the general rate of
coral growth to this reef, it can seem as if many thousands of years
would be required to reach this thickness. Using a growth rate of
414 mm/year, however, could account for this structure in less than
3400 years, which fits in well with a Biblical chronology. If ocean
temperatures were higher in the past than in the present, and this
seems likely, then the time required to reach this thickness would
be even less.

The dead corals in deep ocean waters must have been in contact with the light at some stage in order for them to have formed at all.
Moreover, the very deep corals, such as the Enewetak reef could not
have grown from the bottom up, since they would have been cut off
from light at those depths. The only other solution is that the ocean floor
was higher in the past and that it then dropped down to its present level.
The rate at which the ocean floor dropped down to its present position
must have been slow enough in some areas for coral to stay alive and
keep growing as in the case of the 1405 meter thick Enewetak coral reef.
On the other hand, it must have been fast enough in some areas for the
now submerged dead corals at the bottom of the Pacific to have died
142

3 - The Fossil Record


when cut off from the light. This places a totally different time frame
(in the order of thousands of years) on the great geological upheaval
that the earth must have experienced. The scientific world also accepts
up and down warping of the ocean floor to explain the obvious continental marine incursions, but their time frame is, of course, reckoned
in million of years rather than thousands of years. Corals thus provide
a model for what happened during and immediately after the flood.
The ocean floor was raised, and the waters poured over the land, and
this accounts for the massive marine deposits on the continents. After
the flood, the new ocean basin formed by down warping of the ocean
floor, which was rapid in some areas, and slow in others. This model is
further supported by the fact that all continents show ancient coastlines,
which were much further inland than the present ones.

The Post-Flood World



The postflood world must have been very wet, and it is
therefore not surprising to find numerous algal deposits with ferns,
reeds, reed fish and dragonfly nests in these deposits. Furthermore,
the numerous inland basins and relics of giant lakes imply very wet
and hazardous conditions. Todays Great Salt Lake in Utah, USA
is about one sixteenth of its original size, and only a fraction of its
original depth. In fact, it is estimated that the lake must have been
some 230 meters deep at one stage. Collapsed limestone caves
from this time period also contain fossils of bats, which date from
the postflood era. Interestingly, these creatures are identical to
presentday forms.

After the flood, recolonization of the continents would have
commenced, and this must have taken place quite rapidly. Moreover,
the continents must still have provided land bridges for the animals
to cross. There is also evidence that the conditions were considerably warmer than those of today, as indicated by the numerous
temperateadapted fossil plants and animals found in regions currently climatically unsuitable for their existence. Recolonization of
143

The Genesis Conflict


the new earth would have had to take place in such a way as to be
consistent with current concepts on ecological succession. It is to
be envisaged that the earth must have been relatively unstable in
the immediate post-flood era because of changes in the continents
and ocean basins which were still ongoing. Moreover, earthquakes
associated with the rise of the continents would have provided
further chances for regional catastrophic formations by the rapid
drainage of inland basins and later by the breaking up of glacial
barriers. There is evidence in the youngest geological layers of
succession, and even distribution patterns of animals suggest
colonization patterns consistent with a Biblical perspective. For
example, genetic studies have shown that species colonization
routes in Africa and the Americas occurred in a north-south direction, and in Asia from a west-east direction. (See Figure 5.12)

Once recolonization had largely been completed, ecological barriers caused by desertification, mountain uplift, or climatic
changes could have separated populations. An example here could
be the African and Indian elephant populations, which are probably relics of a larger population with its origin midway between
the two, a scenario to be expected if the story of Noahs ark has
any credence. Animals would have redistributed themselves quite
rapidly, but in view of his great generation length, man would have
been the last organism to spread across the new world. Even in
spite of man's long generation time, the time frame for the human
population to have grown to present levels is more than adequate
to explain current human population levels. In fact, there must
have been a number of additional epidemics besides the known
ones to explain the low level of the current human population.
Growth rates of only 0.5% per year (more than 4 times lower than
present rates) would have been sufficient to produce the present
human population since the time of the flood some 4500 years
ago according to the Scriptures.

Subsequent to the reoccupation of the post-catastrophic
world, the earth must have experienced a further cycle of catastrophism. Evidence for this can be seen in the vast volcanic
144

3 - The Fossil Record


deposits present in the youngest layers of the geological column.
Volcanism of this scale was probably unleashed when the supercontinent Pangaea split up to form the present-day continents.
It is estimated that 50 000 volcanoes (The midAtlantic Ridge and
The Pacific Ring of Fire) were active at this time. The volcanoes
spewed vast amounts of volcanic ash into the air, thus shielding
the sun and causing a rapid drop in temperature. Even relatively
minor presentday volcanoes influence global weather patterns
after eruption. The combination of warm oceans and sudden drop
in radiant energy is ideal for the formation of glaciers, as it can
provide the necessary sustainable precipitation to allow glacial
advance. This could have induced the Ice Age.

Studies at the Athabasca glacier and glacial bed F26
show that complete glaciation and deglaciation need not have
taken more than 600 years. Moreover, evidence for more than
one ice age is scant in the geological record, and most of the
assumed features in the geological column ascribed to ancient
ice ages could equally well have been caused by catastrophic
mudflows. The glaciers formed during the Ice Age would have
separated populations such as the woolly mammoth into a northern and southern population, but conditions must still have been
relatively warm in coastal areas, as evidenced by coexistence of
animals adapted to different climatic conditions (disharmonious
species distribution). An example would be hippopotami and
reindeer coexisting in England at that time, as evidenced from the
fossil record.

In Siberia, woolly mammoths are found in the ice in such
a state of preservation that the flesh is intact. They must therefore
have been buried and frozen instantly because such large animals
have large heat stores and would have rotted had they not been
frozen rapidly. Moreover, they are found in deposits known as
Muck. Muck is a geological mystery. It covers one-seventh of the
earths land surface, is in excess of 4000 feet thick in places and
surrounds the Arctic Ocean. It is difficult to explain where it came
from, since it occupies flat terrain with no surrounding mountains
145

The Genesis Conflict


from which the muck could have eroded. Oil prospectors have
even discovered frozen tree chunks in the muck, and submerged
tropical forests up to 1700 feet down have been recorded as well.
The muck, now frozen solid, contains the remains of thousands
of mammoths and other mammals and shows that they must have
succumbed rapidly to a calamity which involved freezing. Judging from plants and animals buried with them, their surroundings
must have been more temperate and moist in the past. The animals
also found in the muck are rhinoceroses, tigers, bison, horses,
antelope, fruit trees, and temperate species of grasses, as well as
burrowing animals, such as voles, that could not have burrowed
in rock-hard permafrost. It therefore seems logical to propose that
the muck originated from flood deposits (particularly since they
contain submerged forests) and that the freezing of these animals
occurred during the Ice Age events some time after the flood. This
timing would allow for population numbers to have reached the
levels necessary to account for the numbers associated with the
Mammoth remains that have been found or estimated.

Generally, the mammals of the Cenozoic layers are
depicted as bizarre and very different to the animals existing
today. Common illustrations are those of the sabre-toothed tiger,
giant land sloths, and the woolly mammoth. A feature of these
animals is their size and diversity. Of all the sabre-toothed tigers
removed from the tar pits at Rancho La Brea, the long-toothed
variety represents an extreme of the range. Obviously, in a postcatastrophic world with low population densities, the potential
for variation would have been great until increase in population
density increased the selective pressures and weeded out the extremes of the range. The supposition that these large mammals
existed very long ago and must have represented ancient ancestral
forms of modern mammals is not consistent with the facts, since
pelts of these animals are still found in caves where skeletons of
these creatures have been found. In South America, pelts have
been found of giant sloths indicating a very recent existence.
Today we know that reduction in size need not take millions of
146

3 - The Fossil Record


years, but can be achieved rapidly by increases in competition or
changes in climate. Animals on islands frequently undergo largescale reduction in size within the space of a few generations. The
potential for rapid change must therefore exist in their gene pool.

Human Evolution

Human evolution is a contentious subject and is governed
more by the opinions of the researchers than by the facts reflected
in the fossil record. Contentions amongst researchers have led to
acrimonious accusations which throw little light on the actual
phenomena contended. David Pilbeam, from Yale and Harvard
summed the situation up as follows:
I have come to believe that many of the
statements we make about the hows and whys
of human evolution say as much about us, the
paleoanthropologists and the larger society
in which we live, as about anything that
really happened.38

The fossils, upon which human lineages are based, are
relatively scarce, and one wonders why so few human fossils
have been found. Humans are gregarious, and the bulk of the
population would have tended to live close together. Legends
concerning pre-flood civilizations and master races abound in
folklores around the world, and the legend of the lost continent
of Atlantis is one that to this day is generally held in high esteem
even in occult circles. These sources believe that Atlantis represents the antediluvian world and that this world disappeared
under the sea. Be that as it may, the possibility thus exists that
the bulk of human fossils could now be buried in sediments at
the bottom of the ocean.

147

The Genesis Conflict


The evidence for mans evolution is extremely scant,
and the main role players are Australopithecines,
which are small to medium sized ape-like
creatures, which some researchers believe to have
walked upright. Remains of these creatures have
been found in eastern and southern Africa and the
famous Lucy belongs to this group. Then there are
the so-called archaic Homo sapiens, which include
forms such as the Neanderthals. It is noteworthy
that all the forms on which human evolution is
based were contemporaneous, which means that
they lived at the same time. In fact, all the primates
existed at the same time, and the evolutionary
tree is once again a morphological sequence
pieced together by the scientists according to their
perceptions. Australopithecines thus existed side
by side with humans and are thus regarded as a side
branch from which information can be inferred but
that could not have been on the ancestral line of
modern humans.

As more information becomes available, more and more
intermediary forms are removed from the family tree. Australopithecus, as the name suggests, was an ape, but supposedly walked
upright. This conclusion is based on footprints in stone that were
discovered at Laetoli in Tanzania, which were supposedly made
by Lucy-types. However, Lucy-types had curled toes and the
same knuckle walking wrist anatomy as chimpanzees and gorillas.39 Everything about australopithecines points to the stooped
gait of a rolling knuckle-walking chimp-like creature. CAT scans
of their inner ear canals (which reflect posture), and their long
curved fingers and toes also show that they did not walk upright.
The evolutionist Dr. Russel Tuttle of the University of Chicago
studied the footprints made by a tribe of people in Peru who walk
148

3 - The Fossil Record


barefoot. Based on casts that were made from their footprints,
he concluded that the Laetoli prints are in fact identical to those
made by humans who habitually walk barefoot. Considering that
humans and australopithecines lived at the same time, the most
logical conclusion would then seem to be that humans made
the prints. Some elements in the literature even suggest that the
variation between the three forms (Australopithicus afarensis, A.
africanus, A. robustus) is no greater than the normal intraspecific
variation experienced in modern ape species.

Lucy is another intermediary under fire, and recent statements in the journal New Scientist suggest that she resembled the
pygmy chimp. The debate that raged between Johanson and Leaky
concerning the suitability of either of these fossils as an intermediary between man and the ape ancestors underlines the uncertainty
and scantiness of the information on which bold scientific suppositions are based. Evidence for Lucys intermediary status is
extremely fragmentary and cannot stand up to serious scientific
scrutiny. Indeed, there is no evidence that these creatures were
anything other than apes. The evidence for Lucys intermediary
status is based on arm to leg length ratios that are supposedly
midway between those of apes and man, but in the light of the
fragmentary nature of the bones available for study, such a ratio
cannot even be determined. The hip is apelike but is claimed to
be distorted when there is no undistorted hip to compare it with,
so on the basis of the evidence it must be an ape hip. The knee
of the Lucy fossil, which is also used to substantiate an upright
gait, was not even found together with Lucy.

Neanderthal man is also shrouded in controversy, but
these fossils show no other evidence than that of Neanderthal
being fully human, with a larger brain capacity even than modern man. Homo erectus and Neanderthals are basically the same
but the Neanderthal fossils show evidence of bone deformity
produced by rickets, which could be the result of conditions that
prevailed in the post-flood Ice Age. Of course, the time frames
on which all these speculations are based are also not in accord149

The Genesis Conflict


ance with the catastrophic model, but then there has been such
a huge disparity of dating attempts on the hominid fossils that a
discussion on the issue is not even warranted, particularly since
the dating techniques are open to question.

Interestingly, there has been an ongoing debate as to the
origin of man. Did man originate in Africa or Asia? Protagonists
of the two viewpoints have been at loggerheads since the first
fossils of so-called human ancestors were discovered on the two
continents. In recent times, the theory that man evolved in Africa
held sway, but recent evidence again supported the view that man
evolved in Asia. The compromise viewpoint that man appeared
almost simultaneously in both regions is even more surprising.
Again it can be argued that the data is consistent with a distribution
from an area midway between the two disputed regions, making
the story of Noahs ark even more plausible.

In his book Bones of Contention: controversies in the
search for human origins,40 Roger Lewin, research news editor
of the journal Science at the time, sums up the main issues of
contention in the saga of human origins. He sites competition
amongst researchers and their passions as some of the reasons for
the confusion in the field of hominid evolution. The main controversies in his report revolve around: 1) the Taung child found
in South Africa and originally rejected but now accepted as an
intermediary ancestor in mans evolution; 2) the Piltdown Hoax
where a human skull and an Orangutans jaw were doctored to
lend credence to the naturalistic origin of man and which was
unchallenged for almost four decades; 3) Nebraska man who
was based on a tooth which turned out to be a pigs tooth; 4) the
distortions towards primitiveness in the original description of
Neanderthals; 5) the battle over the dethroning of Ramapithecus
from the level of human ancestor to a relative of the orangutan;
6) the heated controversy over the dating of the volcanic layer
associated with the hominid fossils in East Africa; 7) the controversy between Richard Leakey and Donald Johanson over the

150

3 - The Fossil Record


position of the newer australopithecine finds; 8) the conflicts about
what constituted the force that brought about human evolutionary
change (was it predation, hunting, or cooperation). Lewins own
feelings are revealed in the following statement:
In the physical realm, any theory of human
evolution must explain how it was that an apelike
ancestor, equipped with powerful jaws and long,
daggerlike canine teeth and able to run at speed
on four limbs, became transformed into a slow,
bipedal animal whose natural means of defense
were at best puny. Add to this the power of
intellect, speech, and morality, upon which we
stand raised as upon a mountain top as Huxley
put it, and one has the complete challenge to
evolutionary theory.

REFERENCES
Herbert Spencer Robinson and Knox Wilson, Myths and Legends
of All Nations (New York: Bantam Books, 1950).
1.

Derek Victor Ager, The Nature of the Stratigraphic Record, 2nd


ed. (London MacMillan Press Ltd., 1983).

2.

George Gaylord Simpson, The Meaning of Evolution: A Study of


the History of Life and of its Significance for Man (New Haven: Yale
University Press, 1949): 326.
3.

Tammy Tosk, Foraminferas in the Fossil Record: Implications


for an Ecological Zonation Model, Origins 15 (1) (1988): 8-18.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/15008.pdf

4.

Jeffrey S. Levinton, The Big Bang of Animal Evolution, Scientific


American (November 1992).
5.

151

The Genesis Conflict


Charles Darwin, The Origin of Species, (New York: Heritage Press,
1963).6. Darwin, Charles (1963) The Origin of Species, Heritage
Press (reprint), New York
6.

S. Bowring from M.I.T. and Harvards Knoll in Time Magazine


(December 1995).
7.

8.

Time Magazine (December 4, 1995).

D. G. Shu et al., Lower Cambrian Vertebrates from South China,


Nature 402 (1999): 42-46.
http://www.efiko.org/material/Lower%20Cambrian%20Vertebrates%20from%20South%20China%20D-G.%20Shu.pdf

9.

Stephen Jay Gould, Return of Hopeful Monsters, Natural History 86 (June/July): 22-30.
http://www.andrew.cmu.edu/user/jksadegh/A%20Good%20Atheist%20Secularist%20Skeptical%20Book%20Collection/Gould_
The_Return_of_Hopeful_Monsters_sec.pdf

10.

Ann-Sofie Rasmussen and Ulfur Arnason, Phylogenetic Studies


of Complete Mitochondrial DNA Molecules Place Cartilaginous
Fishes Within the Tree of Bony Fishes, Journal of Molecular
Evolution 48(1) (1999): 118-123.

11.

R. S. Watkins, et al., Archaeopteryx A photographic study,


British Journal of Photography (March 18, 1985) and the two subsequent issues.
12.

Alfred Sherwood Romer, Genetics, Palaeontology and Evolution (Atheneum, 1963).

13.

George Gaylord Simpson, The Major Features of Evolution


(Touchstone, 1967).
14.

15.

O. C. Marsh, American Journal of Science (1879).

152

3 - The Fossil Record


O. C. Marsh, Recent Polydactyle Horses, American Journal of
Science 43 (1892): 339-355.
http://marsh.dinodb.com/marsh/Marsh%201892%20-%20Recent%20polydactyle%20horses.pdfYork and London; Columbia
University Press, p. 263.
16.

Dr. Niles Eldrege, curator at the American Museum of Natural


History, qtd. in Luther Sunderland, Darwins Enigma: Fossils and
Other Problems, 4th ed. (Santee: Master Books, 1988): 78.
http://www.creationism.org/books/sunderland/DarwinsEnigma/
17.

George Gaylord Simpson, The Major Features of Evolution (New


York: Columbia University Press, 1963): 263.
18.

B. J. Stahl, Vertebrate History: Problems in Evolution (New York,


Mc.Graw-Hill, 1974): 489.
19.

D. Miller, Seals and Sea Lions (Stillwater, MN: Voyageur Press,


1998): 7.
20.

Hawaiian Monk Seal. >http://www.kilaueapoint.org/education/


naturefocus/hnf13/index.html>Hawaii Nature Focus, No. 13.
21.

John J. Flynn, Ancestry of sea mammals, Nature 334(6181)


(1988): 383-384.
22.

Andre R. Wyss, Evidence from Flipper Structure for a Single


Origin of Pinnipeds, Nature 334(6181)(1988): 427-428.
23.

C.O. Dunbar, Historical Geology (New York: John Wiley and


Sons Inc., 1957).
24.

R. H. Dott and R. L. Batten, Evolution of the Earth (New York:


Mc.Graw-Hill, 1971): 359.
25.

K . O . S t a n l e y, W. M . J o r d a n , a n d R . H . D o t t ,
New Hypothesis of Early Jurassic Paleography and Sediment

26.

153

The Genesis Conflict


Dispersal for Western United States, American Association of
Petroleum Geologists Bulletin 55 (1971): 10-19.
Leonard R. Brand, Footprints in the Grand Canyon, Origins
5(2) (1978): 64-82.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/05064.pdf25. Brand, L. 1978. Footprints in the Grand Canyon. Origins, 5(2):64-82.

27.

R. H. Dott, and R. L. Batten, Evolution of the Earth (New York:


Mc.Graw-Hill, 1971): 359.
28.

K . O . S t a n l e y, W. M . J o r d a n , a n d R . H . D o t t ,
New Hypothesis of Early Jurassic Paleography and Sediment
Dispersal for Western United States, American Association of
Petroleum Geologists Bulletin 55 (1971): 10-19.
29.

Leonard R. Brand, Footprints in the Grand Canyon, Origins


5(2) (1978): 64-82. http://www.grisda.org/origins/05064.pdf
30.

Leonard R. Brand and James Florence, Stratigraphic Distribution of Vertebrate Fossil Footprints Compared with Body Fossils,
Origins, 9(2): 67-74. http://www.grisda.org/origins/09067.pdf
31.

32.

Ibid.

D. M. Martill, D. J. Batten and D. K. Loydell, A New Specimen


of the Thyreophram Dinosaur cf. Scelidosaurus with Soft Tissue
Preservation, Palaeontology 43 (2000): 549-559.
33.

Luis M. Chiappe et al., Sauropod Dinosaur Embryos from the


Late Cretaceous of Patagonia, Nature 396(6708) (1998): 258-61.

34.

>http://www.canoe.com/CNEWSScienceArchive/981117_dinosaurs.html> May 25, 2000.


35.

36.

A. C. Burke and A. Feduccia, Developmental Patterns and the

154

3 - The Fossil Record


Identification of Homologies in the Avian Hand, Science 278 (5338)
(1997): 666-8, with a perspective by R. Hinchliffe, The Forward
March of the Bird-Dinosaurs Halted? (596-97).
Quoted in Ann Gibbons, Lung fossils suggest dinos breathed in
cold blood, Science 278(5341) (1997): 1229-1230. Rubens paper
was published in the same issue, Lung ventilation in Theropod
Dinosaurs and Early Birds, 1267-1270.
37.

Harold G. Coffin, Orientation of Trees in Yellowstone Petrified


Forests, Journal of Paleontology 50(3) (1976) :539-543.
38.

39.

Time Magazine (December 4, 1995).

Harold G. Coffin, Erect Floating Stumps in Spirit Lake, Washington, Geology 11 (1983): 298-299.
40.

41.

Time Magazine (December 4, 1995).

P. McCafferty, Instant Petrified Wood? Popular Science (October


1992): 56-57.
42

43.

Roy Piggott, The Australian Lapidary Magazine (January 1970): 9.

Ariel A. Roth, Fossil Reefs and Time, Origins 22(2) (1995):


86-104.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/22086.pdf
44.

Ariel A. Roth, Coral Reef Growth, Origins 6(2) (1995): 88-95.


http://www.grisda.org/origins/06088.pdf
45.

46.

D. Pilbeam, Rethinking Human Origins, Discovery 13(1): 2-10.

Mark Collard and Leslie C. Aiello, Human Evolution: From


Forelimbs to Two Legs, Nature 404(6776) (2000): 339-340 and
Brian G. Richmond and David S. Strait, Evidence that Humans
47.

155

The Genesis Conflict


Evolved from a Knuckle-Walking Ancestor, Nature 404(6776)
(2000): 382-385.
Roger Lewin, Bones of Contention: Controversies in the Search
for Human Origins (New York: Simon and Schuster, 1987): 312313.

48.

156

EVIDENCE IN STONE
For the invisible things of Him from the creation of the
world are clearly seen, being understood by the things
that are made, even His eternal power and Godhead; so
that they are without excuse: Romans 1:20

4.1a

Figure 4.1a) The morphological evolution of the universe as proposed


in the standard scientific theory of origins from the Big Bang to the
evolution of life.

157

The Genesis Conflict

4.1b

4.1c

4.1d

158

4.1b & 4.1c Spiral galaxies which illustrate


that matter and systems
are organized in the
universe and not evenly
distributed throughout
the universe as predicted by the cosmological principle which
is the basic philosophy
on which the Big Bang
theory rests.

4.1d-4.1f The Pleiades


and the Orion constellation and nebula. The
Pleiades is a bound
cluster, meaning that
the stars are bound in
their position by the
high forces of gravity
prevalent in the system.
Orion on the other hand
contains systems which
are flying apart rapidly.
Amazingly, this very
condition is described
in Job 38:31.

4 - Evidence in Stone
4.1e

4.1f

Figure 4.2a The Grand Canyon. Each layer supposedly represents


a period of time in the history of the earth when that particular layer
was the surface of the earth. However, there is no evidence for erosion between layers as can be seen by the flat contacts between layers.
Between some of these layers unconformities exist, which means that
layers are missing and, according to standard geological interpretation,
that means that there is time missing (up to 100 million years between
some of the layers). Geologists claim that these missing layers were
eroded away before subsequent layers were deposited, yet there is no
evidence of this erosion.
4.2a

159

The Genesis Conflict

4.2b

4.2b Three layers of strata


in the Cederberg in South
Africa; note that the top
layer is subject to erosion
and that there is no evidence for long periods of
erosion in the underlying
two layers. This implies
that they were deposited
rapidly and not slowly as
suggested by the evolutionary paradigm.
4.2c-4.2e If layers of stra4.2c

ta were deposited rapidly,


then this would suggest
that they were still soft
when uplifted to form continents. During continent and
mountain uplift, these layers
would fold because they had
not yet turned to rock. The
folding we see here can be
seen in the Alps 4.2c and in
the Swartberg range 4.2d &
4.2e in South Africa.

160

4 - Evidence in Stone

4.2d

4.2e

4.2f-4.2g These two


photos from the
Grand Canyon series show a load
4.2f
cast and a flame between two layers of
strata. In the first of
these, material from
the upper layer is
pushed into the underlying layer, and
in the second, material from the bottom
layer is whipped
into the top layer.

161

The Genesis Conflict


4.2g

This suggests that


both the layers
were soft at the
time of formation and is also
strong evidence
of catastrophic
deposition.

Figure 4 . 3 a - c
Clastic intrusions from Kodachrome basin,
USA (see figure
2.4). These pillars
of stone were thrust up through the underlying strata and are evidence
that all the layers must have been soft mud of liquid consistency as
would be expected in flood deposits.
4.3a

4.3b

162

4 - Evidence in Stone
4.3c

In 4.3c, mingling between the


layers can be seen which is further confirmation of soft layers.

4.3d-4.3e Turbidites from Texas, USA and New Zealand. These massive deposits were laid down rapidly and later uplifted.
4.3d

163

The Genesis Conflict


4.3e

The material is graded


course to fine as can
be seen in 4.3e, showing that these deposits
were laid down rapidly under water as
the heavier stones and
pebbles will settle out
4.4a

first followed by the lighter sands


and muds.
Figure 4.4a 4.4b A mountain on
pillars. Town Hall Formation,
Cederberg in South Africa. The most
likely explanation is that rapidly
flowing receding water undercut
the massive deposits, as they were
uplifted after the flood. The strata
must have been soft and the water
must have drained into the newly

4.4b

forming basin before the


entire structure collapsed,
leaving it standing on pillars. The tunnel formation
also shows the direction of
stream flow. Further amaz-

164

4 - Evidence in Stone
ing evidence of rapid washout
by rapidly receding water in
the area is seen in 4.4c 4.4d
where the base of the strata
has been washed out leaving
the layers resting on narrow
points of rock.

4.4d

4.4c

4.4e-4.4f show giant cracks with


collapsed or tilted pillars known as
Wolf Cracks which also testify of
rapid washout.
4.4f

4.4e

165

The Genesis Conflict


4.5a

Figure 4.5a - 4.5b Bryce


Canyon, evidence of giant
washout.

4.5c - 4.5e Navaho twins,


Monument Valley and erosion
relics in the USA which all
indicate rapid erosion of the
strata between these relics.
4.5b

4.5c

166

4 - Evidence in Stone
4.5d

4.5e

A model in miniature
for the formation of
such features can be
seen in 4.5f where soil
erosion from rainstorms
has carved the landscape in similar fashion.
4.5f

167

The Genesis Conflict


4.5g

4.5g The Three Sisters


in the Karroo, South
Africa,

4.5h

4.5h
Ayers Rock in
Australia,
4.5i

and the boulder relics of Zimbabwe 4.5i


can also be ascribed to flood relics rather
than relics caused by millions of years
of erosion.

168

4 - Evidence in Stone

4.6a

Figure 4.6a-4.6d
The Goosenecks in
the Colorado River
and the Fish River
Canyon in Namibia
show evidence of
rapid washout in
view of the V-shape.
The great canyons
of the world testify
of catastrophic formation rather than
millions of years of
slow erosion. Rapid
canyon formations
and strata developments such as these
have been witnessed
in recent times as
can be seen in the
catastrophic canyon
and the strata which
resulted from
the eruption of Mt.
St. Helens
in the USA
4.6c-4.6d.

4.6b

4.6c

169

The Genesis Conflict


4.6d

Previously, such features would have been


considered to have formed over very long
periods of time.

Figure 4.7a-4.7b Malachite crystals


which were formed rapidly. These authentic semi-precious stones were bought
from dealers in the Congo who obviously
found a way of growing them rapidly in
the malachite mines by allowing the seepage to crystallize on copper wires. Note the copper wires in the broken
fingers of the crystals. Formations of crystals, stone or fossils can thus be
very rapid and does not require millions of years. Reports of fossilization
and rapid rock formation are well known, with fossil hats having formed
in mines and ships bells and bottles being encased in solid rock.1.
4.7a

4.7b

170

4 - Evidence in Stone
Figure 4.8a Fossil
ammonites buried in
a mass grave. Only
catastrophic burial can
account for such largescale burial.

4.8a

4.8b Fossil sea urchins,


starfish and sea lilies
all buried together in
a mass grave (British
Museum of Natural
History). The description given to this display states that these
creatures were buried
very rapidly retaining
their spines.

4.8b

4.8c-4.8d perfectly preserved fossil fish showing rapid burial to prevent decay. The school
of fish is on display in
the British Museum of
4.8c

Natural History where


the explanation given
states that these fish
were trapped in a lake
that dried out. However, no modern counterpart exists since the fish
would then decay or be
eaten by scavengers.

171

The Genesis Conflict


A far more likely explanation
is that they were buried alive
rapidly by mudflows during
the flood.

4.8d

Figure 4.9a A coal seam.


Coal formation can readily
be explained by catastrophic
deposition of vast quantities
of plant material during a
flood. Present day processes
similar to coal production

include peat formation from plant 4.9a


material in marshy
areas. It is estimated that some 0.66.1 meters of peat
would be required
for the production
of 0.3 meters of
coal. This would
mean that it would
take on average 91
meters of peat to
produce a 9.1-meter coal seam, but only a few peat bogs, marshes or
swamps in the world reach even 30 meters let alone 91 meters. Uniformitarian principles cannot explain the vast coal deposits in the world which
rather seem to bare stark evidence for flood deposition. Moreover, there is
the problem that Spirobis, a marine spiral tubeworm (which only occurs
in sea water and never occurs in peat bogs) is often associated with coal
deposits. This fits perfectly with the flood model but to explain it by way
of the conventional model is highly problematic. Some scientists have
proposed that Spirobis must have then been a fresh water organism in
the past, but this is not consistent with the data and still requires burial
of the material in water. Also it does not provide an explanation for its
presence in so-called peat derived coal deposits.

172

4 - Evidence in Stone

4.9b

4.9b Petrified upright tree


in Yellowstone Park, USA.
These trees have long been
used as an example of stable
periods of growth, since they
appear to be in a position of
growth. However, they are
now known to have been
washed into position by catastrophic floods since they are
orientated in the direction of
stream flow as can be seen in

4.9c

4.9c where the


horizontal trees
all face into the
mountain;

173

The Genesis Conflict


4.9d-4.9e show that
the upright trees have
no root systems, no
branches and can stretch
through various layers
of strata (see explanation in Chapter 3);

4.9d

4.9f-4.9i show similar


circumstances produced
in the Mount St. Helen's
eruptions. Trees ripped
out by catastrophic
floods were orientated in the direction of stream flow. They had their
roots ripped off, had no branches nor bark since they were stripped
in the rolling and bash4.9f

4.9g
4.9e

ing actions experienced


during transport in the
flood waters. Trees that
gathered in the lakes after
the second eruption rapidly floated upright and

174

4 - Evidence in Stone
4.9h
4.9j

4.9i

provide a model for the catastrophic deposition of the


petrified forests of the world.
4.9j A petrified tree from the Petrified Forest in Namibia where the
trees show similar features and are also stream orientated. These
petrified forests were long used as an argument against any catastrophic flood model, but the currents status overwhelmingly supports
flood deposition.
4.10a

Figure 4.10a Brontosaurus

4.10b Triceratops

175

4.10b

The Genesis Conflict


4.10d

4.10c)

4.10c Albertosaurus 4.10d Tyrannosaurus (all from the British Museum


of Natural History). Dinosaurs are extinct reptiles and they are mostly
depicted as ferocious killers. In fact, most dinosaurs (including Brontosaurus and Triceratops) were probably plant eaters and some were as
small as a duck (Compsognathus). Albertosaurus is the smaller relative
of Tyrannosaurus and they are usually depicted as vicious meat eaters
on the strength of their teeth. Shredding teeth are not necessarily an
indication of meat eating, just as many animals today have teeth which
would put them in the category of meat eaters, yet their main diet
consists of plants (bears, including Panda bears). Albertosaurus and
Tyrannosaurus had weakly rooted teeth which would have been good for
shredding tough vegetation but not much good for tearing and ripping
out flesh. They also had short arms, which could not reach the mouth
and were probably quite useless for catching prey. Evidence also points
to inagility in these cumbersome animals so that they would not be very
adept in catching prey. Dinosaurs need not have lived millions of years
ago. In fact, some of the fossil finds show so much original material
such as actual bone and even organic remains that it seems unlikely
that long ages are involved. Dinosaurs are often found in positions of
stream orientation and so the evidence points to burial in mud during a
catastrophic flood. Dinosaurs are also not the only creatures that became
extinct during the KT transition, but numerous marine and terrestrial
animals including all mammal-like reptiles, giant amphibians and all
flying reptiles shared this fate. It is possible that these large reptilian
and amphibian creatures (as evidenced by bone to marrow ratios) had
a metabolic capacity which would place them midway between ecto-

176

4 - Evidence in Stone
therms (cold blooded) and endotherms (warm blooded). This would
mean that they would have to live in stable climatic regions. The post
flood world with its extremes in temperature and climate would thus
not be the most suitable for their survival.
Figure 4.11a The White Cliffs of
Dover consist of the carboniferous
4.11a
skeletons of marine organisms and
show that this region was under
water. Chalk strata identical to the
White Cliffs of Dover can be found
all over the world including France,
Germany, Scandinavia, Poland,
Bulgaria, Russia, USA (Texas, Arkansas, Mississippi and Alabama),
Australia, and Africa. Moreover, the
deposits are of the same age and are
all situated on top of the same type
of glauconitic sandstone. Surely this
must indicate that all these continents were submerged at the same
time, which is exactly what the Bible claims. These chalk deposits are
thick in some places and thin in others, indicating that all areas were
not submerged for the same length of time. Upon the raising of the
continents and the down warping of the ocean floor, the waters drained
from the emerging continents and recycled much of the sedimentary
material, burying plant and animal remains in the process. Since Mammals and birds float in water due to bloating, one would expect fossil
remains of these creatures
in the top Cenozoic layers, 4.11b
which in fact there are.

4.11b Diagrammatic section of the Beartooth and


Big Horn Mountains and
Bighorn Basin.

177

The Genesis Conflict


4.11c

4.11c Beartooth Butte in Wyoming, consisting of an isolated block of


Paleozoic sediments on uplifted Precambrian igneous rocks. It consists of
the same type of strata as found in the Grand Canyon (Cambrian, Ordovician, and Devonian with Silurian missing).

Beartooth Butte is a remnant of the vast sheets of strata that
must have covered the area, but is now uplifted 20,000 feet above the
Precambrian layers at the bottom of the basin. In diagram c, it can be
seen that the Mesozoic and Paleozoic sediments in the basin are tilted
up against the mountain ranges and they must have folded in this fashion
when the mountains rose. The sediments that were originally on top of the
uplifted area are eroded away and now fill the basin and this helps us to
determine how the events occurred. The Cretaceous is the last layer still
to be tilted up the side of the mountain, and must have thus been on top
when the uplift occurred. The subsequent layers comprising the Cenozoic
(Paleocene, Eocene, and Oligocene) are flat and werethus deposited after
the uplift. The lower layers were thus deposited during the flood and the top
layers were deposited when the continents and mountains rose. The fact that
the lower layers are all bent up along the mountains also implies that they were
all soft when they were bent up, or else they would have shattered and not been
178

4 - Evidence in Stone
bent up. Of course, this implies that they were formed approximately at
the same time thus not allowing for millions of years to form rock nor
allowing for them to belong to vastly different ages. If the Cenozoic
layers were thus deposited during the re-emergence of the continents,
then these sediments would cover and bury the remains of the floating
plant and animal remains that must have been present at the time, if the
universal flood model is correct. Indeed, this is exactly what is found in
the Cenozoic layers. Vast fossil graveyards are found in these deposits
with all kinds of animals collected into vast assemblages, which defy any
uniformitarian model
4.11.d
of fossil formation.
These layers are
also associated with
mammalian bone
pieces as if masses
of disintegrated bodies had been churned,
broken and buried
4.11d - 4.11f.
4 . 11 d s h o w s a n
amazing fossil displayed in the British
Museum of Natural
History, and the description of the fossil
is equally astounding. It reads:
Mammal graveyard; the fossilized remains of an
antelope, gazelle, horse, and carnivore are preserved
in this slab. The fossils are surrounded by flood-plain
deposits, suggesting that the animals were swept
together by torrential floods. There is no weathering
and little damage to the fossils, so they must have
been buried quickly.

179

The Genesis Conflict


In 4.11e and 4.11f, a vast
fossil graveyard and a
chunk of Cenozoic rock
can be seen which is
packed with mammalian bone chips. Such
deposits are consistent
with the catastrophic
flood model, but are totally inconsistent with a
uniformitarian model.

4.11e

4.11f

Figure 4.12a-4.12f La
Brea Tar Pits in California
with fossils of the giant
sloth, saber tooth tiger,
giant mammoth, giant
wolf and giant bison which
were found in these tar
pits. All these creatures apparently lived millions of
years ago, but skeletons of
giant sloths have been discovered in caves in South America with their
pelts still intact (incidentally, giant kangaroos have also been found in
caves in Australia with their pelts still intact which shows that they could
not have existed millions of years ago in spite of the slow weathering
4.12a

4.12b

180

4 - Evidence in Stone
4.12c
4.12d

4.12e

4.12f

under these cave conditions). The fact that all these creatures are larger
than their modern counterparts is contrary to evolutionary thinking.
Evolution proposes development from simple to complex and from
small to large, not the other way round. In fact, one of the amazing
features of the fossil record in general is the large size of the animals
represented in the fossil record. The fossil saber tooth tiger with its
long teeth is also not the only variety of tooth size found in the tar
pits, but represents an extreme of the range that includes small to large
teeth. This is consistent with a world in which competition was still
low. But once population numbers increased, then selection would
favor an intermediate tooth size with the extremes of the range being
cut off by stabilizing selection.

The tar pits themselves are also evidence of vast deposits of
buried organic material, which turned to tar in much the same way

181

The Genesis Conflict


that oil deposits are formed. If these deposits are millions of years old,
then why are they still producing gas bubbles (as can be seen in a), which
were produced from the decay process? The gas in fields such as these
would long have dissipated through the porous rocks and cracks in the
strata had they been millions of years old.
4.13a

Figure 4.13a Mid Atlantic Ridge,


showing evidence for continental drift. Since land animals are
distributed on all continents, then
these animals must have been able
to cross land bridges after the flood.
The continents show almost perfect
fit, particularly if the puzzle uses
the continental shelf rather than the
areas of the continents, which are
above water. The question is not
whether drift took place, but how
and when. The Mid Atlantic Ridge
shows huge volcanoes as are also
present around the Pacific Rim. A
possible explanation is that huge
meteors struck the earth post flood
and ripped the newly established
continents apart causing massive
volcanic action.

This could explain why there is so


much evidence of recent large-scale volcanism on the earth as can be seen
in 4.13b Sheets of volcanic material in Washington State, USA.. Meteoric
impacts and materials seem to be in evidence only at the PrecambriumCambrium boundary, and then they occur again on the surface of the earth
as impact craters 4.13c Arizona meteor crater., but other than this there is
no evidence of meteoric impacts in the geological column. The Iridium
layer associated by some as evidence of asteroid impact, which led to
the demise of the dinosaurs, could also be from volcanism as iridium is
also found in such materials. Astronomers believe that meteors are be-

182

4 - Evidence in Stone
4.13b

ing swept out of space by the gravitational forces of stars and planets,
and that there should have been more meteors in the past than now.
However, with all the large-scale mining operation, particularly coal
mining, there should have been evidence of this, but meteors are not
found in these operations. The large surface impact craters, such as the
Arizona Crater and craters in Namibia and Siberia indicate recent large
scale impact which could have provided the means of breaking up the
continent, with massive outpouring of volcanic material and drift of
the continents resulting from these impacts.

The separation of
continents could not have
4.13c
been as long ago as science
postulates, since current rates
of continent erosion indicate
that the continents should
have eroded away several
times over (if standard geochronology is applied) since
the continental drift started.

183

The Genesis Conflict


In 4.13d Coast
of Southern Australia, the massive erosion on
the edges of the
continents is illustrated in this
photograph of the
Australian coastline. The fact that
the continental
puzzle still fits,
points to short
rather than long
chronology.

The result of such large-scale volcanism would have a profound
effect on the climate, since volcanic dust would have caused a massive drop
in global environmental temperatures (as caused on a small scale by modern
eruptions) and this could account for the ice ages. There is evidence that
the ice age could have been short and intense. Glaciations could have
occurred due to high precipitation and due to evaporation from relatively
4.13d

4.13e

184

4 - Evidence in Stone
warm post
flood oceans 4.13f
and sudden
intense cold
due to volcanic ash
shielding the
sun. Studies
at glaciers
around the
world 4.13e
- 4.13f
Athabasca
glacier and
markers of
glacial recession - show that glacial recession is much more rapid than originally
thought and the time required for an Ice Age could be reckoned in
centuries rather than thousands of years. Also, evidence for more than
one ice age is scant, particularly since the evidence cited for other time
periods in the geological column could be due to massive debris flows
rather than glacial deposits.2.
4.13g - 4.13h Woolly Mammoth trapped in Siberian ice and cave drawings of such creatures.

Sudden freezing 4.13g
and rapid burial could
also explain the demise
of the mammoths that
have been found trapped
in ice in Siberia 4.13g 4.13h. There are three
curious problems associated with these mammoths; firstly, northern
Siberia today is cold
and dry, so how could

185

The Genesis Conflict


thousands, if
4.13h
not millions,
of mammoths
and many other
animals have
survived under these conditions, and
how did they
feed themselves? Their
surroundings
must have been
more temperate and moist
as testified by
the plant material and other animals buried near these creatures. In the
case of the mammoth, these include rhinoceroses, tigers, bison, horses,
antelope, fruit trees, and there are also frozen remains of burrowing
animals, such as voles, which could not have burrowed in permafrost.
Larvae of the warble fly identical to those found in tropical elephants
today, have been found in a frozen mammoth intestines, and this indicates
a temperate climate.

Second, the well-preserved animals must have been completely
frozen almost instantly, or else internal tissues would have decomposed.
Since mammoths had such large bodies, they also acted as reservoirs of
heat, and freezing temperatures must have been extremely low to account
for the perfect state of preservation of some of these creatures. In some
cases, the meat of these mammoths discovered in recent times was still
edible and was fed to dogs and even humans ate thereof. Finally, they
must have been buried rapidly to protect them from predators, so burial
could not have occurred if the ground were frozen as it is today. The
climate must have changed rapidly to account for these features and
the rapid Ice Age model provides a plausible alternative to the long Ice
Age proposed by the scientific fraternity. The fact that cave drawings of
Woolly Mammoths have been found is a further blow to the standard
evolutionary paradigm, which would rather have these large creatures
separated in time from the emergence of man.

186

4 - Evidence in Stone
4.14a
4.14b

Figure 4.14a - 4.14d Primates are considered to have evolved from primate
ancestors such as the tree shrew to
modern non human primates and hominids. Non human primates and man are
thus end products of this evolutionary
scenario, and are related to each other
but did not evolve from each other. The
ancestors are the missing links somewhere in the past. Fossils which are used to piece together the origin of
man, such as the Australopithecines, of which the famous Lucy 4.14b
and skull 1470 of the Kenya Museum 4.14c are examples, were also
from creatures that were already
4.14c
contemporaneous with man and
could thus not have been ancestral.
The picture that is pieced together
is thus based on a morphological
sequence where fossil remains
of contemporaneously existing
creatures are grouped into what is
considered a possible evolutionary
development and is not based on
sequential fossil assemblages.

187

The Genesis Conflict


4.14d

In 4.14d the primates are seen to be contemporaneous (living at the


same time) and the roots to common ancestors are based on speculation
only. Moreover, each of the fossils placed in the sequence are either
100% ape or 100% man and intermediaries are based on a series of
assumptions, which are not verifiable by the fossils.

REFERENCES
1.

Creation Ex Nihilo 17(3) (1995) & 20(2) (1998).

M. R. Rampino, Ancient Glacial Deposits are Ejecta of Large


Impacts: the Ice Age Paradox Explained. EOS, Transactions of the
American Geological Union 74(43) (1992): 99.

2.

188

THE ORIGIN OF LIFE


AND
VARIABILITY

One of the great hurdles facing evolutionary biologists is the
transition from non-life to life. Nobel laureate, Max Delbruck, wrote:
There has been an immense conceptual gap between
all present-day life and no life.the how of the
transition of the earth from no life to life is perhaps
the fundamental question of biology.1

Nevertheless, the naturalistic origin of life from non-living
material is a cornerstone of the modern evolutionary paradigm. Indeed,
from their perspective it has to be, since the great majority of scientists
consider Biblical interpretations of origins as non-scientific today.

The Scientific View of Origins



If life was to evolve from the non-living, then organic molecules had to evolve from inorganic matter and the building blocks

189

The Genesis Conflict


of life would then somehow have formed the first cell. In the 1920s,
Oparin, a Russian biochemist, and Haldane, an English geneticist,
independently suggested that the primitive atmosphere was reducing,
and that organic molecules formed in such an atmosphere might be
the key to answering this question of origins. In 1953, Stanley Miller
actually tested this hypothesis by putting together a glass apparatus
(Figure 5.1) in which he passed sparks through a simulated primitive
reducing atmosphere. When isolated, among the 35 different compounds identified, 9 were amino acids, the building blocks of proteins.2
Tungsten electrodes
(connected to Tesla coil)

Spark discharge
5-litre flask

Stopcocks for
withdrawing
samples during
run

Gaseous mixture
(CH4 + NH3 + H2 + H2O)
Water out
Condenser
Cold water in

Boiling water

Aqueous medium containing


organic compounds

Figure 5.1: The apparatus used by Miller to demonstrate the formation of organic compounds
under simulated primitive earth conditions.


Numerous experiments have since been carried out in many
laboratories around the world under varied simulated conditions in
which 19 of the 20 amino acids, the 5 nitrogenous bases necessary for
nucleic acid formation, and a number of sugars have been produced.
These experiments are considered irrefutable proof of the origin of

190

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


organic molecules by naturalistic processes. These molecules are then
considered to have accumulated in the primitive ocean, forming an
organic soup. To arrange these simple compounds into more complex
structures, requires polymerization, which Sidney Fox proposed
could have developed around the rim of equators where heating
and evaporation could create the necessary conditions for these
reactions. He demonstrated that a mixture of amino acids heated at
200o C for up to 7 hours formed protein-like structures, which he
termed protenoids, which show weak catalytic activity and when
cool form microspheres resembling primitive cells. These experiments may collectively seem to lend credence to the evolutionary
paradigm of origins, but in reality they suffer serious deficiencies.

Probability and Naturalistic Origin of Life


The Reducing Atmosphere


In order for organic molecules to accumulate, all scientists
agree that the primitive atmosphere must have been devoid of any
oxygen. This had to be the case, since oxygen would react with any
organic compound formed in such a primitive atmosphere and oxidize them thus converting them to carbon dioxide and formic acid.
The assumption is thus that the primitive atmosphere was devoid of
oxygen since oxygen would only be produced once photosynthetic
organisms had evolved after millions of years of biochemical evolution. The earths original atmosphere must then have been derived
from volcanic gases. The atmosphere postulated by Miller, however,
does not resemble volcanic gases, since even they are oxidizing even
if molecular oxygen is absent from such gases. Volcanic gasses are
rich in carbon dioxide and water and also contain some nitrogen,
hydrogen sulfide, and sulfur dioxide. Gas mixtures such as these
yield ammonia, nitric acid or formaldehyde under experimental
conditions similar to those used by Miller.3,4

191

The Genesis Conflict



The 20% oxygen present in our current atmosphere is
supposed to have accumulated after photosynthetic organisms
evolved. However, without oxygen there would not have been a
shield of ozone to protect the earth from the sterilizing high-energy
ultraviolet rays that would have bombarded the earth. The ozone
layer prevents this bombardment and is thus necessary to preserve
life, so the question arises as to how the early organisms evolved
under these hostile conditions and how they managed to evolve
to the level of complexity inherent in even the most primitive
photosynthetic or any other living organism for that matter?

Since life requires water, the existence of water is vital
to the evolutionary process. However, if water was present (as it
must have been) then there was water vapor in the atmosphere.
This creates a further problem, since if water vapor was present in
the atmosphere then photo-dissociation of that water by ultraviolet
rays would have produced oxygen, and if oxygen was present
then the molecules of life would not have been able to form.
Even in our time, the photo dissociation of water takes place in
our upper atmosphere and the Apollo 16 mission showed that the
earth is surrounded by a gigantic hydrogen cloud extending 40
000 miles into space. This hydrogen is formed by the photo dissociation of water vapor.5 It is thus not only probable, but a fact,
that oxygen must always have been present in the atmosphere if
there was water and this precludes the accumulation of organic
molecules. It is a catch 22 situation, no water no life, with water
there will be oxygen in the atmosphere and the atmosphere will
not be reducing, therefore organic molecules would not form
and there would be no possibility of life. It has been calculated
that photo dissociation would account for 32 times the amount
currently found in our atmosphere and that a minimum of one
fourth of this atmospheric oxygen level must have been present
for more than 99% of the earths history.6

192

5 - Origin of Life and Variability

The Organic Molecules


In experiments simulating primitive conditions, the apparatus used to determine the production of organic molecules all make
use of a trap to remove the accumulated products from the sparks or
radiation used to produce them. In a primitive earth situation, it is
hard to envisage a trap, which could remove the compounds from
the conditions required to form them. Nevertheless, some form of
trap (or protective mechanism) would need to have existed, because
the same conditions that lead to the formation of the molecules also
lead to their destruction. Nevertheless, in spite of these constraints, it
is envisaged that organic molecules accumulated until the primitive
oceans were transformed into a veritable organic soup. Assuming
such organic molecule accumulation, some scientists estimate the
concentration of organic compounds in the soup to have been as
high as 0.001 Molar. However, if the destructive effect of ultraviolet
radiation on amino acids is taken into account, then the upper limit
could only have been one ten millionth Molar in the primitive ocean,
which also happens to be the actual concentration of amino acids in
the North Atlantic Ocean.

Yet another problem is that random biochemical reactions
outside of cells result in the production of equal proportions of optical
isomers of amino acids and sugars. Many organic molecules occur
in two forms, either left-handed (L form) or right-handed (D form).
Living organisms can use only L forms of amino acids and D forms
of sugars, but racemic mixtures produced under simulated primitive
earth conditions are 50:50 mixtures of L and D forms. In order to utilize
just one or the other of these forms (as required by living organisms),
there must have been A mechanism to select for just one of them,
and this is extremely unlikely. Thus it is not only improbable that the
molecules would be produced in the first place, it is also impossible
to select only the right ones even if they had formed.

Assuming that molecules of life did form, and that somehow
only the right racemic mixture was produced (which is contrary to
all logic and contrary to scientific evidence), then there would be yet

193

The Genesis Conflict

Figure 5.2: The structure of L and D forms of the amino acid alanine. The two molecules are not identical as they cannot be superimposed on each other.

a further hurdle to cross, because isolated organic molecules do


not constitute life. These molecules would have to polymerize to
form macromolecules such as proteins and nucleic acids and this
is a major hurdle in the absence of enzymes or catalysts that still
needed to evolve. If L and D forms were present, as would have
to be the case, then the problem becomes even more complicated,
for how would they polymerize selectively choosing only the L or
only the D (Figure 5.2) forms for proteins and sugars respectively?
In order to polymerize, one needs to split out water. In an aqueous
medium, this is however thermodynamically impossible. In order to
solve this problem, scientists point to the volcanic rim approach
of Sidney Fox who proposed that the heat of volcanoes heated and
periodically evaporated the soup; leading to the formation of the
protenoids discussed earlier.

The protenoids of Fox are, however, totally inappropriate
for life, not only because they contain both Land D amino acids,
but because of a further problem which arises from naturalistic

194

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


formation of organic molecules under simulated primitive conditions. Besides using only L amino acids, living organisms also only
use alpha-amino acids (which means that the amino group is always
attached to the first carbon after the carboxyl group- see figure 5.3).
Amino acids formed outside living organisms are however, a mixture
of alpha, beta, gamma and epsilon amino acids and Foxs protenoids
consist largely of the varieties of amino acids other than alpha-amino
acids and are therefore useless to living organisms. Moreover, all the
other properties attributed to these protenoids, such as the ability to
grow and to bud, are merely as a consequence of attractive forces and
the breaking up as a consequence of changes in heat or acidity and
have nothing to do with life or living organism. It is akin to playing
with balls of plasticine. The breaking up and recombining of the balls
is merely a physical process and cannot be compared with the complex
processes of cell division or compartmentalization. The challenges that
face the organic soup theory do not end here. The conditions required
for the production of the different varieties of molecules alone presents
insurmountable problems.

Molecular Problems

For amino acids to form, the primitive atmosphere must have
been rich in ammonia, yet ammonia is rapidly destroyed by ultraviolet
radiation, and if the primitive atmosphere was to contain no oxygen,
then there was no ozone layer and the ultra violet radiation levels
must have been extremely high. Some amino acids require heating
to over 1000o C (tyrosine and phenylalanine) to form spontaneously,
yet heating causes decomposition by irreversible decarboxylation.
In short, the reactions that form the amino acids also destroy them
in the absence of a trap. The pH requirements for protein formation
are also different from those of other molecules that require a more
alkaline medium.

Even if proteins could have formed, in order for them to be

195

The Genesis Conflict


of any value, they would have to contain not only the right type of
amino acids (L - alpha amino acids) but the sequence in which the
amino acids occurred would have to be right also in order for them to
form useful proteins. The probability of this occurring is extremely
remote as illustrated in the following Table:
The Total Number of Different Proteins Resulting
From Random Combinations of 20 Amino Acids7
Table 5.1
No. of
Amino Acids

10
100
250
1000

Description
Short Chain
Polypeptides
Typical
Cell Protein

Total No. of
Protein Chains
Possible

10 13
10130
10325
101301


If one considers that 1080 is considered to be the equivalent
of the number of particles in the universe (the sum total of all the
atomic particles in the entire universe) then these statistics are indeed
awe-inspiring. Should the formation of polymers have been random,
the existence of a single molecule of every possible sequence even if
we assume a chain consisting of only 12 different amino acids would
result in a mass of 10280 grams (which is more than could fit into the
universe). The chances of this happening are hopelessly remote, and
even if it did arise, what would have maintained it, and what would
have allowed it to replicate?

Some scientists argue that these statistics mean nothing, as the
facts show that life exists, therefore it must have happened. This certainly is one way of getting around the problem, but it certainly places
the theory in the realms of faith. One needs a lot of faith to believe
that it happened once, let alone millions of times over and over again.

196

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


Not even the organo-clay theory (The theory that primitive molecules could have accumulated on clays which would have afforded
them some protection and brought them into close proximity for
further reactions) can provide a solution for the dilemma, as this
merely provides a possible solution for how information can be
stored, and passed on, but does not say how it originated, and neither does it provide a solution for the polymerization or racemic
mixture dilemma.

Figure 5.3 - The structure of some of the basic organic molecules required by living organisms.

197

The Genesis Conflict

Nucleic Acid

The conditions required for the formation of nucleic acid
are different again to those of the other organic molecules required
for life. Condensing hydrogen cyanide in concentrated ammonia
(1-10M) yields adenine. If all the nitrogen in the atmosphere were
converted to ammonium cyanide and dissolved in the ocean, it
would not exceed 0.2M and the prebiotic conditions are thus severely restricted in accounting for the formation of nucleic acid.
It is true that purines and pirimidines have been formed under
simulated prebiotic conditions, but phosphorylation has never been
demonstrated. Moreover, condensation of ribose with adenine or
guanine yields unnatural nucleosides. The formation of nucleic
acid requires that nucleotides (a purine of pirimidine base linked
to ribose or deoxyribose and phosphate) be linked together to form
the large biopolymers called nucleic acids (figure 5.3)

Nucleic acids are made up of four different nucleotides
(thymine, cytosine, adenine and guanine are the bases that form part
of the nucleotides of DNA and uracil replaces thymine in RNA)
and the sequence of nucleotides carries the genetic information
which determines the structure of proteins and finally, through
these, the whole structure of the organism. This relationship
between proteins and nucleic acids raises a chicken and the egg
question: Which came first? The traditional view was that proteins
came first, but the discovery that ribonucleic acids had enzymatic
activity prompted the idea that perhaps enzymatically active RNAs
(ribozymes) came first, thus providing both the chicken and the egg.
The problems with this theory are numerous. Ribose is formed only
in very minor concentrations in prebiotic circumstances, and is very
rapidly destroyed. Moreover, where did all the cyanide come from to
produce the purines? As pointed out by Kosting, the source of cyanide
is a major problem in the RNA World hypothesis.7 Pirimidines are
for all practical purposes not formed in prebiotic conditions.

The question of sequence is another major problem, just

198

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


as in the case of proteins. In order to function in biological systems,
DNA and RNA must have the nucleotides arranged in a particular
sequence, and these sequences would have had to come about by
chance. The probabilities again are staggering as shown in Table 5.2.
The Total Number of Different Nucleic Acids
Resulting from Random Combinations of 4 Nucleotides8
No. of nucleotides
in the chain

Description

Total No. of Nucleic


Acid Chains Possible

77

Transfer - RNA

1046

1500

Ribosomal - RNA 16 S-unit

10903

3000

Ribosomal - RNA 23 S-unit

101806

6000

RNA of TM - virus

103613

30 000

Bacterial DNA

1018,100

Table 5.2


Once a molecule such as DNA has formed, the number of
chicken and egg scenarios increases. How did replication or transcription become possible? Enzymes are required to unravel the DNA
molecules, but where did these come from? If they came about by
chance, then how did the genes coding for their construction come
into existence - by chance also? This is an impossible situation, particularly since natural selection has no role to play here since chance
is the force operating at the genetic level. Genes supposedly came
about by chance. The level of faith required to accept this scenario
is staggering, but still the problems do not end there.

199

The Genesis Conflict



Since nucleic acids need to contain the correct information
for the construction of proteins, great care is taken to ensure that
errors do not creep in during their construction. The constructing
enzymes are known as polymerases, but a group of enzymes known
as editases are also involved in this process in that they correct any
errors that are made in the construction of the nucleic acids. These
enzymes act as proofreaders and they check the work of the polymerase enzymes and painstakingly correct any errors encountered.
This is not only profound, it is awe-inspiring and yet how did such
a complex system of checks and balances evolve? By chance?

This poses a major problem to the theory of naturalistic
origins. The formation of such complex systems of correction and
formation cannot be selected for but must develop by pure chance.
An error will only be revealed as an error once the message in DNA
has been transcribed into a protein. Correction takes place prior
to this process and thus cannot be selected for. Selection works at
the level of the phenotype and not the genotype. This issue will be
discussed in greater detail later, but in short it can be explained as
follows. A book containing errors cannot be corrected unless the
proofreader knows that there is an error. Of course it also requires
a proofreader who not only reads the book but who also corrects
it and this implies that this proofreader knows what he or she is
doing. Intelligent design is inherent in the process. If the book
however contains blueprints for the construction of an aeroplane,
for example, and the blueprint contains design errors, these will
only become apparent once the plane has been built and tested. The
book by itself cannot know that there is an error and the testing can
only take place once the plane has been built. The same applies to
the gene. How can the correction take place without the product
having been built or tested it therefore requires foreknowledge,
and this implies (or rather requires) design. Or else, chance and
chance alone must account for the complex systems of replication, transcription and proof reading of the polynucleotide strands.
Again, this requires a great deal of faith, - an awesome faith - in the
god of chance.
200

5 - Origin of Life and Variability



Even if we were to accede to the possibility of the necessary
molecules evolving, their mere existence is still a far cry from life
itself. These molecules would have to be placed in such a fortuitous
arrangement that life could arise spontaneously. In all the scientific
endeavors to this end, no one has ever succeeded in creating life, but
scientists argue that natural selection is the means whereby organization was brought about. This places natural selection on the level of
a god, since all the problems inherent in the system are eventually
ironed out by natural selection.

Natural Selection As a Creative Force



Natural selection in itself is not a scientific principle, as it is
based on circular reasoning. By natural selection, less fit organisms
are eliminated and fitter organisms survive to propagate the species.
Organisms thus survive the process because they are fitter, and one
concludes that they are fitter because they survive. Moreover, the
process operates by elimination not addition. In order for the fitter
to survive, there must have been a less fit that did not survive. In the
process, the less fit eventually becomes extinct and the better of the
two survives thus it is argued, that natural selection has improved
matters. But, natural selection does not create features, adaptations,
or even life, it merely selects for the feature that provides greater
survival value. The features themselves must still come into existence by random chance processes or by creation. Natural selection did thus not create anything. It just selected from what was
already there.

Because the mechanism of natural selection operates by eliminating the less fit (this is just the reverse side of the coin of selecting
the more fit), it must eventually lead to less and less diversity, unless
the random chance creation of features outstrips natural selection
in pace. This is an extremely unlikely scenario. The question therefore arises, how can a mechanism that creates less and less, create

201

The Genesis Conflict


more and more diversity? After all, this is what the evolutionary
paradigm requires, in order for more and more complex diverse life
forms to have evolved from a simple ancestor. If natural selection
is to take the place of God, then it is a god of elimination. In fact
Platnick (1977) already wondered if there is any difference in the
noted evolutionist Ernst Mayrs concept of an all-powerful natural
selection and that of an all-powerful Creator.9,10 Considering our
reasoning above, there is one difference that comes to mind, the
creator God produces, whereas natural selection eliminates. In
fact, left to itself natural selection will eventually succeed in ridding
the planet of life at the rate at which species are disappearing in
our time alone. In fact, a look at the palaeontological record will
reveal a far greater diversity of life in the past than in the present,
and as environmental pressures increase, more and more species
will become extinct. Natural selection appears to be doing a good
job at eliminating life forms and, if given a little bit more time,
might complete the job faster than we might wish.

If variation did not come about by natural selection, the
question arises, where did it come from? Before discussing this
vital question, we need to elaborate on the level at which natural
selection operates. As noted earlier, natural selection operates at
the level of the phenotype and not the level of the genotype. This is
a cardinal rule in evolution. Processes that produce changes in the
genes occur by chance through mutation, and only once the gene has
been transcribed and produced the phenotype can natural selection
come into play. Mathematical models show that the probability is
zero for selection operating at the level of the phenotype to bring
about changes when random mutations are performed at the level of
the genotype.11

Let us illustrate our previous analogy and expand it somewhat. If we now look at a book, which contains instructions on how
to build a number of model aeroplanes, how will I know which
one flies best? Well, I build the aeroplanes, test fly them and select
the one that flies best. The book with instructions is the genotype
and the actual aeroplanes are the phenotype (Figure 5.4a).
202

5 - Origin of Life and Variability

Figure5.4a

Genotype

Phenotype

Building only one aeroplane can tell me whether the plane can fly,
but selection requires at least two aeroplanes to be built. Selection
asks the question which one flies best (is the more fit), but building
only one aeroplane and finding it unfit to fly would still leave me
with nothing. Selection can only take place once the aeroplanes have
been built and can be tested. There have to be at least two variants
or else there is nothing to choose from (Figure 5.4b).
Figure 5.4b


Selection cannot take place at the level of the book (the genotype), as this only constitutes letters of the alphabet in a particular
sequence, which only becomes meaningful once they have been
translated into the aeroplane. A number of questions now arise:
1) If the book remained closed on the shelf, would I know which
aeroplane flies best?
2) How are the instructions translated into the product - the aeroplane?
3) Who wrote the book?

203

The Genesis Conflict



Let us start with the last question first. The book is the
genotype, so according to the evolutionary paradigm it came about
by chance and the variants on the original (more than one set of
blueprints for the aeroplane) also came about by chance through
mutations. This might sound ridiculous, but is precisely what the
theory of evolution proposes. Only, the genotype of even the simplest organisms is far more detailed and complex than our book. To
believe this thus requires a great deal of faith. The other possibility
is, of course, that an intelligent designer wrote the book.

Turning to the first question, the answer to this is obviously no. A mechanism must thus exist to unravel the instructions
in the book. This requires that the book be opened (the equivalent of enzyme systems that unravel the DNA molecules so that
transcription can commence). Does this tell me which aeroplane
flies best? No, they are still not built at this stage. Where did the
mechanism to unravel the DNA molecules (open the book) come
from? As natural selection will only come into play at the level of
the phenotype (the aeroplanes have to be there), once again our
only solution must be by chance or design.

Finally, we turn to the second question, how are the aeroplanes finally built? The answer obviously is, by an intelligent human or by robot assembly mechanisms designed by an intelligent
human. In the case of the cell, the complex robot assembly line
is the complex transcription process using RNA and ribosomes to
construct proteins. The proteins that are constructed are the equivalent of our aeroplanes (actually it is even more complex than that,
because the proteins can also be enzymes that can be used in the
construction of even more complex structures). So how did the
assembly process come into existence that built the final product
(the phenotype)? The answer must once again be chance or design.
DNA and RNA contain only the equivalent of letters of the alphabet, their validity cannot be tested until translated and transcribed.
To believe that these mechanisms come about by chance random
processes requires more than faith - it requires extraordinary faith.
Indeed, the handiwork of an intelligent designer is written all over
it. This also requires faith, but faith of a different kind. Given the
204

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


complexity of the systems of transcription and protein synthesis, once
again it cannot be under-emphasized that this requires an astounding amount of faith. It is the equivalent of believing that the Boeing
assembly line with all its complex machinery came into existence
after a fortuitous windstorm assembled it by chance.

The Origin of Higher Life Forms



If we move from the level of molecular evolution to the evolution of simple organisms and eventually to more and more complex
ones, the problems associated with the process do not become less,
no indeed they become even greater. Ernst Haeckel (1834 - 1919),
one of the great proponents for the evolutionary theory in Germany,
was one of the first scientists to propose a model for the development
of multicellular organisms from unicellular ancestors. He proposed
that the embryological development of animals today reflects the
past development in terms of its evolution. This concept is termed
the biogenetic law, which states the following:
Ontogeny [development of the individual] is a concise
and compressed recapitulation of phylogeny [the
ancestral sequence]... The organic individual repeats
during the rapid and short course of its individual
development, the most important of the form changes
which its ancestors traversed during the long and slow
course of their palaeontological evolution according
to the laws of heredity and adaptation.12

Haeckel proposed that organisms go through a series of stages
during their ontogeny (embryonic development) which resemble the
adult forms of phylogenetic ancestors. However, since the facts do not
always fit this proposal, the suggestion of von Baer that young stages

205

The Genesis Conflict


resemble young ancestral stages enjoys wider acceptance. Haeckels theory is largely discredited today on various morphological
grounds, but genetically it is also not tenable. Evolution is based
on genetic change through mutations over time and recapitulation
requires both retention of the ancestral features and change (having
ones cake and eating it). Just because homologies appear to exist
(homology refers to the similarity of biological features in different
species or groups because of their descent from a common ancestor)
does not mean that structures are indeed homologous. As Michael
Denton points out, homologous organs and structures may develop
by radically different embryogenic routes, and that the evolutionary basis of homology is perhaps even more severely damaged by
the discovery that apparently homologous structures are specified
by quite different genes in different species, and that they may even
develop by radically different embryological routes.13

Besides his biogentic law, Ernst Haeckel also proposed
a mechanism whereby unicellular organisms may have evolved
to form multicellular, and eventually multi-layered organisms.
This theory is known as the Gastraea Hypothesis. Today, the
Planula Hypothesis, a variant of the Gastraea Hypothesis, is more
popular, but the problems remain the same as for the Gastraea
Hypothesis of Ernst Haeckel (Figure 5.5). Using the embryology of metazoans as a model, Haeckel proposed that multicellular organisms evolved from hypothetical unicellular organisms,
which he called Cytaea. Eventually these cells remained attached
after cell division and a multicellular organism, which he termed
Moraea evolved. The Moraea gave rise to a jelly-filled hollow
ball of cells termed a Blastaea, which developed an indentation
on one side and thus gave rise to the Depaea. Through completion of the indentation, the Depaea gave rise to the Gastraea and
the Gastraea then underwent further differentiation in that a third
layer of cells developed between the original germ layers. It is
proposed that this layer, the mesoderm, arose through cellular migration from the outer ectoderm and inner endoderm, thus giving
rise to triploblastic organisms (animals with three layers) which
206

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


would then also have evolved bilateral symmetry after becoming
bottom dwellers. Associated with the change in structure there would
also have occurred cellular differentiation and specialization thus
giving rise to complex organisms where cells became arranged into
organ systems.

Cytaea

Moraea
Blas-

Depaea

Gastraea

Figure 5.5 - The Gastraea Hypothesis


For most of these proposed ancestral forms, analogous living
forms are presented as evidence for the viability of such organisms.
In a sense, we are thus once again working with a morphological
sequence where we use existing creatures (rather than contemporaneous fossils) to reconstruct the puzzle of their origins. Of course,
the puzzle is influenced by the philosophy of the scientists themselves. The cytaea could have resembled living protozoans of the
Class Mastigophora, the Moraea represents colonial protozoans such
as Pandorina, and the Blastaea in turn can be compared to colonial
protozoans such as Volvox. The evolution of subsequent stages
would have required some complex changes, and it is proposed
that the modes of feeding and locomotion of the ancestral types
would have affected further differentiation. The bottom dwelling
triploblastic animals (animals with three body layers ectoderm,
mesoderm and endoderm), which developed bilateral symmetry,
could be compared to present day flatworms.

The original single celled organism thus became multicellular,
then converted from a radially symmetrical simple clump of cells to
a radially symmetrical hollow ball of cells which developed cell specialization, became indented and even more specialized. This indented organism then developed a third layer of specialized cells between
the folds of the indented layers. The indentation then eventually went

207

The Genesis Conflict


right through the creature so that a primitive gut developed with a
front and rear entrance. The creature then developed bilateral symmetry and then all the complex organ systems developed which
we find in living animals. Subsequently, the methods of locomotion, such as complex jointed leg structures with either internal
or external skeletons developed and the intricate sophisticated
nervous systems evolved which could record all parameters, both
internal and external, using highly complex sense organs such as
eyes and myriads of sensory structures to monitor everything from
temperature to metabolic status to pressure and stature.

Not only was it necessary to monitor all of these parameters, the machinery to maintain and correct any imbalances had
to develop and they had to function in a coordinated fashion
with a level of cooperation which is beyond human understanding. Moreover, the information for all of these systems had to be
carefully recorded and encoded in a blueprint (the genes) so that
it could be replicated and passed on to future generations. These
codes needed to not only contain the information on the structures
themselves, but also needed the highly complex information on
how the embryonic development needed to progress and how
the structures would interact with each other in order to produce
the right product in the end. Even more mind boggling is the fact
that all of these systems had to be activated differentially, that is
they had to develop means to activate only one set of genes in
one type of cell and other sets of genes in other cells although
all had to be endowed with all the information for all the cells or
else they could not develop embryologicaly from a single cell. To
crown it all, there had to develop the capacity to reason, to store
unlimited amounts of information (the hardware of the brain can
never say disk full), to have a sense of virtue, appreciation for
beauty, to have emotions such as love, to have a creative spirit
and principles of morality. Surely, all creatures are wonderfully
and fearfully made.

On the basis of morphology and using simple living creatures existing today as a model, Haeckels theory seems to provide
208

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


a progression of how events may have proceeded during the evolution of multicellular organisms. At the genetic level, however, there
are insurmountable obstacles with regard to this model. In order to
survive as living cells, the early ancestral cells needed a genotype
(complement of genes) capable of producing all the relevant proteins
required to fulfill their physiological and structural needs. These early
cells would have had genes coding for all the essential enzymes required to maintain the physiological processes and genes coding for
all the necessary proteins involved in the structure or morphology of
the cells. Previously, we discussed the problems which would have
precluded the evolution of such a cell, but for the sake of this argument, we will assume that such a cell did in fact arise. Furthermore, it
is not too difficult to imagine that a situation could have arisen where
cells remained stuck together after cell division, thus resulting in
multicellular colonies with the cells embedded in a common matrix.
Genetic problems are encountered, however, when the evolution of
cell differentiation and eventual specialization are considered. If the
colony arose through cell division, then each of the original colonial
cells would have had the same genetic composition, coding for the
simplest of cells. The evolution of specialized cells requires that the
different cells also evolve different morphologies and specialized
structures dictated by their function. New and diverse morphological
and physiological features had to develop as the organisms became
more and more complex. The simple colonies would thus eventually
consist of more than one cell type. In order to ensure continuity, the
genetic changes would have to be transferable to subsequent generations, which in turn require a far more complex gene arrangement
than existed in the unicellular organism. All the variants would have
to be located in each cell, with the possibility for selective activation
of one or the other batteries of genes.

Assuming that the new genes somehow did evolve (by chance,
of course, since we are dealing with genotype), and the organism
was now endowed with different sets of genes governing the different morphological expressions, there would then be an even greater

209

The Genesis Conflict


obstacle to overcome, namely how to select between the options.
The genes of cells in particular situations would have one set of
genes activated, and cells in another situation would have different genes activated. Let us use a simple example where we
discuss only two different cells working together (of course higher
living organisms have thousands of different cell types working
in unison). In organisms living today, nerve cells must have a
set of genes activated which distinguish them morphologically
and physiologically from liver cells or muscle cells or any other
type of cell, which have different parts of the genome activated
although all these cells possess the full gene complement.

The differential activation of either the one battery of
genes or the other requires a complex system of controlling genes,
which would all have to come about by chance since natural selection can only operate at the level of the phenotype. The chances
of all the new genes and controlling genes coming into existence
by chance are so remote as to be nonexistent. The probability of
just one functional gene arising by random chance processes are
so remote as to be less than one in the number of particles in billions of universes (if there was such as thing). In fact, it is more
probable for an explosion in a woodpile to construct a functional
mansion by chance, than it is for just one such new gene to come
about by random chance processes. Moreover, one would have
to postulate the same scenario thousands of times over as cell
differentiation increased. Again, this requires a great deal of faith
and the evolutionary paradigm is thus based on faith and is in
fact a religion.

The complexity of the genetic requirements for just two
different cell types to coexist within an organism is awesome as
can be illustrated by the following example. If we look at the
relationship between a muscle cell and a nerve cell, then it is
obvious that there is a great deal of morphological and functional
difference between the two. This requires different gene complements to be activated in the two cell types (Figure 5.6a)

210

5 - Origin of Life and Variability

Figure 5.6a

Muscle cell

Nerve cell


Of course, these two cell types would have to cooperate with each
other in the living organism in order to be of any value to the organism.
Also one must remember, that at the level of the genotype, the processes
occur by chance and natural selection can only come into play once the
phenotype has been produced. We are not dealing with just a simple genetic
variant to achieve these goals. A host of new genes is required to allow just
these two cell types to coexist, let alone the thousands of cell types present
in complex multicellular organisms. For just these two cells the following
genes are required at minimum:
1) Two sets of structural genes coding for the two cell types. These include
all the specialized genes for the structure and function of the cells.
2) Promoter genes enabling the selective activation of either the one
or the other battery of genes. In nerve cells, only those genes of the
total genome will be activated which are required for nerve cells, and
in muscle cells only those that are required by muscle cells.
3) Genes, or DNA sequences which are sensitive to the environmental cues which will determine which of these two options need to be
activated, plus genes that produce the chemical
compounds (inducers) which will activate cell
differentiation.
4) Genes, which will govern the cooperation
between the two cell types. This is a very com- Linked Cells
Figure 5.6b
plex arrangement. The two cells will have to
link up morphologically (Figure 5.6b), in order
211

The Genesis Conflict


for the one to activate the other, and there would have to be receptors
that enable transfer of information from one to the other as well as
systems to recognize the nature of the impulse as well as systems
to set in motion a set of responses.
5) Genes to govern the embryology of the cell types and to ensure
that every sector of the body is integrated into the system.

Where did all these genes come from? The first simple
organism required none of these genes, since they did not contain
specialized cells but supposedly consisted of only one undifferentiated simple cell. As natural selection does not operate at the level of
the genotype, and cannot create anything anyway (only sort out that
which is already there), these genes had to come about by chance
or design. These are the only two options available and considering
the complexity of the system, design seems to be the only likely
option. The probability question also now becomes ludicrous; we
cannot think as small as an explosion assembling a mansion, we have
to imagine a nuclear explosion assembling a fully functional city
with all its operating systems such as electricity and water supplies,
pumps and generation and whatever it takes to have a functional
city, to come about by chance as a result of the explosion. Haeckels
Gastraea theory is thus based on a simple morphological sequence,
which looks good on paper, but genetically it is untenable.

The Origin of Variation



Without variation, evolution by natural selection would be
impossible. It is precisely the variation which Darwin observed in
the finches and other organisms on his voyage of the Beagle that led
to the concept of evolution by natural selection. In the time of Darwin, the Christian European concept of creation was that God had
created immutable unchangeable species. Each species was created

212

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


individually by God and could not change. In fact, the classification of
species utilized this concept to a large extent. Aristotle was one of the
first to attempt a logical system of classification. Using characteristics
such as structural complexity, behavior and development, he classified
about 500 organisms into 11 categories. He placed organisms into a
hierarchy of categories, each more inclusive than the one before - a
concept that has remained with us to the present day.

Carolus Linnaeus (1707 - 1778), the father of the modern
classification system, placed each organism into a series of hierarchically arranged categories based on its resemblance to other life
forms, and he also introduced the binomial nomenclature whereby
the scientific name of an organism is based on the genus and species.
Linnaeus still believed in the immutability of species, and classified
thousands of life forms into different species even on the grounds
of relatively minor variations between them. It was not till nearly
100 years later that Charles Darwin added a new dimension to the
categories created by Linnaeus and other taxonomists, which now
also reflected the evolutionary relatedness of organisms.

Figure 5.7 - Darwin's finches. The variation in form and behaviour was used by Darwin
to argue for the concept of evolution by natural selection.14

213

The Genesis Conflict



What Darwin saw in the finches was so different to the concept of immutability, that he felt he had no option but to reject this
concept. These finches were obviously related and must have shared
a common ancestor (Figure 5.7). This conflict led him to reject special
creation and develop the concept of evolution by natural selection.
It must be remembered that the science of genetics had not yet come
into existence and that Darwins conclusions were based on what he
saw in the phenotype.

If Darwin had known what we know today about the genotype, his conclusion might have been quite different. The genome
is endowed with a marvelous capacity to produce variation, and
all of these are governed by very complex mechanisms. Moreover,
mechanisms that induce variation at the level of the genotype are
not subject to natural selection, as natural selection only operates at
the level of the phenotype (Figure 5.8). (The two aeroplanes in our
previous example must first exist before we can select the one that
flies best).

Figure 5.8

Genotype

Phenotype


If the vast increase in genetic information from the unicellular
to the complex multicellular organisms had to come about through
chance mutations, the process would have required extraordinary
complex changes. Even assuming that there were gene duplications
to increase the number of genes, one would still have to have the
two duplicates mutate independently and advantageously in order
to bring about new functional genes. The integrating genes would,
however, still have to come about independently since they would
not have formed part of the original gene pool. So where did all the
214

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


variation in the gene pool come from? There are a number of mechanisms whereby variations in the gene pool are achieved, but none of
them are simple or haphazard and again require extremely complex
circumstances to be realized. The main mechanisms known today are:
1) Built in variation in the gene pool: For most character traits
present in organisms, more than one allele (one of several alternative forms of a particular gene) exists. The different genes must
have come about by chance alone, because we are dealing with
genotype. The genotype of an organism includes both latent and
patent genes. Only structural genes that have been activated are
expressed in the phenotype and a new gene must first be expressed
before natural selection comes into play. If the gene remains latent,
then that would be like our closed book that nobody reads and there
fore the information is not usable and will never create anything.

As far as alleles are concerned, expression is governed by a
complex system of dominance versus recessiveness. Furthermore,
the frequency of genetic expression can also alter the phenotype.
For example, if the gene coding for growth hormone is frequently
expressed, this can have a marked influence on the size of the organism. Variation in size does thus not necessarily require new genes,
just differential expression of the same genes. An example of built-in
variation in the gene pool can be seen in the various breeds of dogs
(Figure 5.9). The alleles must have been present in the wild dogs
and wolves from which the domestic dog was bred. These striking
differences were there in these animals but no one ever saw them
because they were not expressed in the wild type. How did they get
to be there? The answer is chance or design. If one chooses to believe
that chance provided the additional genes, then that is one's perfect
right, but one must realize that the chances are the same (for each
gene) as the explosion constructing a functional mansion.

By selecting from the built-in natural variation of the gene
pool, not only the various dog breeds, but all domestic races of farm
animals, such as domestic cattle as well as other animals such as

215

The Genesis Conflict

5.9b

5.9a

5.9c

Figure 5.9 - Variation in a) dog size, b) dog shape, c) dog ears

216

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


domesticated birds were produced. Great changes in physiology
and morphology are involved and, being a human selection over a
relatively short period of time, evolution is here certainly excluded.
Just on the morphological scale, differences in dog breeds (where no
one would argue that we are dealing with one species), are greater
than the differences in the genera of the family Canidae.15

From a creationist perspective, the vast initial gene pool
makes possible a vast range of adaptive morphologies and physiologies within a pre-existing gene pool. This general gene pool
is termed kind in the Bible. Adaptive radiation as observed by
evolutionists is thus nothing other than the end product of sorting
the gene pool by extraneous factors, such as differences in climate,
habitat, etc., or in the case of domestic animals by human selection
(and recently by gene manipulation). Gene patterns suited to the
environment are selected and change is rapid.

Genetic expression is also influenced by e.g. hormonal
modulation so as to bring about differences in structural expression by the genes in terms of size, and length of induction during
development. Moreover, differential hormonal modulation in
response to Zeitgebers (an environmental stimulus that initiates
a hormonal process) can alter the time and magnitude of response
thus effectively producing reproductively isolated communities
which would be regarded as different species by evolutionists but
are in effect merely extremes of genetic expression within an existing gene pool. Evolutionists recognize that changes in genotype
frequencies do occur which produce changes in gene distribution
as predicted by the Hardy-Weinberg law. They, however, explain
most changes as resulting from chance mutations and this requires
an enormous faith.

Even evolutionists admit that pre-adaptation must have
played a major role in enabling organisms to survive environmental changes. Pre-adaptation, however, requires pre-existing genes
capable of responding to environmental stimuli, which is precisely
what creationists claim. Where did these fully expressional genes
come from? Once again, chance or design are the only options.
217

The Genesis Conflict


2) Variation is increased by reproductive exchange: This statement is more than a mouthful in terms of its genetic implications.
Through sexual reproduction, genetic material is exchanged,
thus inducing genetic recombination. The significance of this is
obvious - the exchange of material increases the variation. This
holds particular advantages to populations and is considered
by evolutionists to be an innovation, which greatly enhances
the evolutionary process. Innovation is the understatement of
the millennium. The genetic, physiological, embryological and
morphological implications of the reproductive process are of
the most awe-inspiring wonders of the universe. To brush them
off as a chance innovation of nature displays extraordinary faith
in the god of chance. How would rocket scientists feel if you
walked up to them and asked them how it happened that the space
station and the shuttle fleet came into existence by chance? Of
course, we know how they came about. They were designed, and
we can duplicate them and operate them. The processes which
govern the reproductive process are even more complex and the
best minds in the world have barely scratched the surface of the
secrets they still embody. We know what sexual reproduction
achieves - it increases the variation. However, increased variation in the genotype is of no value until it is expressed in the
phenotype. The new varieties must be expressed in the offspring
before natural selection can feast on this increased variation. The
process that brings about the variation (sexual reproduction)
is not subject to selection; only the result thereof (the increased
variation in the offspring) is subject to selection.
The exchange of gametes (sex cells) requires a modified form of
cell division, which is the process of meiosis. During meiosis, the
number of chromosomes is halved, resulting in the gametes having
a haploid number of chromosomes. Sexual fusion of two gametes
then restores the diploid number of chromosomes. Variation in
the genome is greatly increased by two processes occurring during meiosis, these are independent assortment and crossing over.
Both these processes are extremely complex, but in themselves
218

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


are not subject to selection. They rearrange the genetic material
which results in new combinations of the material, but as this
reshuffling occurs at the level of the genotype, it is not subject to
natural selection until the new combinations have been expressed
in the phenotype. It is the same as reshuffling the information in
the book on aeroplanes will not tell us which aeroplane flies best
until the aeroplanes have been built.

i) Independent Assortment: Independent assortment is
achieved when chromosomes line up in homologous pairs and
move independently to the one pole or the other. The process is
governed by complex enzyme systems, which in turn must also
have come about by chance.

The possible variation that can be achieved by independent assortment depends on the number of chromosomes present.
In humans, there are 46 chromosomes, which would arrange
themselves in 23 homologous pairs. The variations that can be
achieved are thus: 223 x 223 = 80 trillion. (23 pairs of chromosomes
of which each chromosome could move in either of two directions). Once again, there are very complex processes and very
refined structural necessities that are required for this process to
proceed without a hitch. There is the lining up of the chromosomes and the formation and contraction of the spindle all of
which proceed like clockwork, and yet the result of this process
will only be seen once offspring has been produced. Then only
will natural selection be able to come into play; so the process
itself had to come about by chance or design.

ii) Crossing Over: This process leaves one breathless.
When homologous chromosomes are lined up during meiosis,
they can, in a very precise way, exchange genetic material. To
achieve this, a number of processes have to be completed, the
highlights of which can be summarized as follows:
a) Enzymes open the double helix of DNA in
219

The Genesis Conflict


the aligned chromosomes to permit intermolecular
base pairing.
b) One strand of each helix is cut at equivalent
positions.
c) The enzyme ligase joins them to form a half
chromatid chiasma (because only one strand of each
chromatid crosses over) resulting in a cross-shaped
molecule.
d) The cross-shaped molecule is cut in half by
an enzyme, leaving a break in one strand of each
recombinant.
e) The break is sealed by ligase.
f) Complex enzyme systems unwind and rewind the
molecules in extremely complex three-dimensional
fashion with stress relieving enzymes ensuring that
no breakages occur, which could lead to loss of
information.
g) Hundreds of these reaction occur simultaneously
and then the reconstituted chromosomes split
without having lost even a nucleotide in the process.
If even one nucleotide were transferred incorrectly,
then subsequent genes could become dysfunctional.
As one textbook on genetics describes it:
A normal crossover is really a miraculous process.
Somehow the genetic material from one parental
chromosome and the genetic material from the other
parental chromosome are cut up and pasted together
during each meiotic division, and this is done
with complete reciprocity. In other words, neither
chromosome gains or loses any genes in the process.
In fact, it is probably correct to say that neither
chromosome gains or loses even one nucleotide in

220

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


the exchange. How is this remarkable precision
attained?..... However, the process is complex
(especially in eukaryotes) and the genes controlling
it must be many.16
It might be safely said that the process is more complex than anything
man has ever designed, yet it would have had to come into existence
by chance if the evolutionary paradigm is accepted. Chance or design
are the options at this level and chance requires more faith than most
could muster.

If we consider the process of reproduction in even a simple
bacterium, where two sexes are not even an issue, we will see that
the process requires a level of complexity that is staggering. Large
numbers of enzymes are involved in the reproductive process of
even the simplest of organisms. In the bacterium Haemophilus influenzae, for instance, there are 87 genes that deal with the process
of DNA replication alone, besides all the other mechanisms that
are required for reproduction.17 Moreover, each gene must work in
unison with all the others in order to achieve successful replication,
which means that 87 steps must take place in the right sequence.
The probability of this happening by chance is 1 in 10170, a number
so huge that it is incomprehensible (considering that 1080 is the
considered number of particles in the entire universe).
3) Transposable elements increase the variation: Transposable
elements are sometimes called jumping genes. They consist of
segments of DNA, which can move from one position on a chromosome to another. As early as 1951, the Nobel Prize winner, Dr.
Barbara McClintock, proposed that genes are not fixed on chromosomes, but that they can move around on the chromosome. At first,
her findings were discarded because they contradicted the genetic
concept of the day. Today her discovery of what she calls transposable elements has an established place in science. Through transposable elements, we know that R factors can transmit antibiotic

221

The Genesis Conflict


resistance and increased variation. The genes move because they
are part of a small circular auxiliary genome called a plasmid,
which enters and leaves the main genome at a specific place where
there is a nucleotide sequence that is also present on the plasmid.
Other genes move within small fragments of the genome called
transposons. Together, transposons and plasmids produce genetic
recombinations.

Integration at a new position also transfers the gene to that
new position. The repositioning may be random, but occurs at
sequence-specific insertion points, which means that the process
is orderly. The splicing and repositioning is carried out by enzyme
systems and involves the transfer of complete information. The
mechanisms that carry out the transposition had to once again
come about by chance because the result of the transposition is
not subject to natural selection until it has been expressed in the
phenotype. The process is also precise and again, there are only
two options as to the origin of the mechanism - chance or design.
4) Variation is increased by the recombination of chromosomes:
Changes in chromosomal structure have been cited as important
contributing factors in providing variation and as a mechanism
for speciation. Changes in chromosomes can include changes in
chromosome number, arm number, translocation, deletions, duplications, inversions or even radical reorganization of the genome.
It is important to note that none of these create any new material;
they just rearrange or duplicate the existing material.

To summarize the mechanisms that produce variation, it
could be stated that all of them rely on existing genetic material,
none of them were subject to selection, and each of them had to come
about by chance or design. The known mechanisms are (Table 5.3):

222

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


Mechanisms Which Produce Variation in the Gene System
1) Built-in variation in the gene pool
2) Reproductive exchange
3) Independent assortment during meiosis
4) Crossing over during meiosis
5) Transposable elements
6) Recombination of chromosomes
Table 5.3


The faith required to believe that any one of these mechanisms, let alone all of them came about by chance is extraordinary.
If, however, they came about by design, then variation among
organisms and variation within organisms are hallmarks of creation. God did not then create immutable unchangeable species, but
created them with an enormous capacity for change. The question
is then no longer whether change can take place or not, but rather
how much change and where are the limits to this change. Well,
if we take the dog breeds as an example, then the capacity for
change is demonstrated to be enormous since on the issue of size
alone all sizes from the Chihuahua to the St. Bernhard are built
into that gene pool. A further question is how rapidly can the
change take place and what does it entail?

The modern classification system is largely based on
resemblances of species on the morphological level, and current biochemical approaches often contradict the morphological approach. Examples are inconsistencies between molecular and morphological data in the classification of mice,18
contradictions in molecular and morphological phylogenies
of rodents, rabbits and primates,19 and even conflicting classifications in whales. 20 Present-day reproductive isolating
223

The Genesis Conflict


mechanisms among species that prevent most species from crossbreeding are cited as mechanisms that have evolved over long
periods of time to maintain the integrity of a species. There are,
however, many ways in which these could develop rapidly by reshuffling the existing genome. The flexibility of the genome allows
for very rapid change, which has nothing to do with evolution, but
rather with the built-in capacity for variation.

One example of rapid reproductive isolation might illustrate the points above. About 100 years ago, bird biting mosquitoes
called Culex pipiens entered the tunnel system being dug for the
London Underground and rapidly changed from feeding on birds
to feeding on rats and human beings who worked the Underground.
In the short time since going underground, they are now incapable
of breeding with those living above ground and this has astounded
evolutionists who would have deemed longer periods necessary
for such isolation mechanisms to evolve. Dr. Jenny Graves of La
Trobe University in Melbourne, Australia said the following about
jumping genes that could induce reproductive isolation:
We thought it took millions of years of long-term
selection for a jumping gene to be activated. Weve
now shown that it can happen in five minutes after
fertilization.21

The Biblical concept of a kind must also be re-examined
in the light of the above data. A kind can obviously not be equated
with a species, but rather with that of a higher taxonomic level such
as the generic level and in some cases even the family level. In terms
of Darwins finches, Darwin was thus right when he postulated a
common ancestry. The mechanism of change was, however, neither
microevolution (in the sense of mutations within individual genes,
since these are harmful) nor macroevolution, but merely differential activation and reshuffling of the existing genome. No new material was added to the genome, as the capacity to produce variation
was more than ample to provide the material for all the finch vari224

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


ants, just like there was enough genetic variety in the wild type
canid to produce all the varieties of domestic dogs. The change
would seem to be what scientists would call microevolution, but
since it is based on selection and activation of existing genes it
does not involve real change at the genetic level. Perhaps we can
liken it to a piano; the keys on the piano are the genes, and the
sequence in which the keys are played (the genes activated and
expressed) provides the music (the variants). How many tunes
can be played on the piano? An unlimited number, and therefore
no two tunes need be the same. However, one is restricted to piano music (the kind), and if one should which to hear a different
kind of sound one would have to play another instrument such as
the violin. Now we can see why no two people need be exactly
the same or why there can be so many races. It is because of the
enormous capacity for variety that is built into the gene pool.

There are thus genetic mechanisms in place which can
produce unlimited variety, and the questions can now be asked:
how long did it take for present day animals to achieve their
current level of diversity, how many kinds were involved (or
from a creationist perspective - was there an ark and how many
kinds were needed to account for the variety of creatures that
grace the planet today), and how did they disperse themselves
over the planet?

Post Deluge Speciation and Redistribution



L. James Gibson of the Geoscience Research Institute
carried out an extensive literature review on some of these issues,
and fascinating possibilities exist to account for the varieties or
creatures that exist today.22 Briefly, the main mechanisms for
change and speciation can be summarized as follows:

225

The Genesis Conflict


1) Breed selection from existing built-in variation: Examples
would be the breeding of the various breeds of dogs, cats, domestic cattle, pigeons and poultry. Some naturally occurring
species show similar differences in clines (gradient of change in
population or species correlated with the direction or orientation
of some environmental feature, such as a river, mountain range,
north-south transect, altitude, etc.) such as the corn snake Elophe
that differs in color and scale number along a cline. Further examples of built in variation in general are variations in color, fur
thickness, body form and size, and seasonal variations.
2) Loss of genetic material: Loss of genetic material (or the deactivation of genetic expression) has led to so-called speciation.
Loss of flight is common in birds, particularly in island birds
where flight can be a distinct disadvantage, as the birds can be
blown out to sea in storms and not make land again. Often related
species retain the capacity to fly. Examples are the flightless rails
(marsh hens), flightless cormorant of the Galapagos Islands and
the flightless goose from Hawaii, loss of eyes in blind cavefish
and many cave dwelling insects. In fact, the loss of eyes in Hawaiian cave dwelling cockroaches points to exceptionally fast
transformation (a few months) in these insects when they start
to inhabit these newly formed caves. It is highly unlikely that the
genes for eyes have mutated or disappeared from the gene pool
in such a short time, and one could rather envisage the deactivation of the genes responsible for eye development under the
conditions prevalent in these caves. Since environmental cues
such as changes in light cycles and seasonal temperature changes
exert a direct influence on genes and can lead to gene activation
and deactivation, this route for bringing about rapid, even major
changes seems highly plausible.

In terms of the standard classification paradigm, loss of genetic material leads to new species or genera but not higher categories. Given our current understanding of the way in which the genome

226

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


works and how genes are activated and deactivated, it is doubtful
whether the genetic information is really lost in these species. Probably, it is just deactivated, as the circumstances do not require the
features in question. Mechanisms must obviously exist to deactivate
even structural genes coding for morphological features should
the need arise. These changes may be perceived as examples of
microevolution, but in real terms, they merely reflect quite standard
activities common to the genome. There is thus, for example, no
justification in classifying eyeless cave dwelling fish as new species
just because they look different. The cave dwelling eyeless and
river dwelling eyed forms of the Central American banded tetra
fish (Astyanax fasciatus) freely interbreed and produce viable
offspring and must thus be the same biological species.
3) Hybridization: Most hybrids are not viable because of loss
of fertility, particularly in mammals. Some taxa are, however,
prone to hybridization, and thus can lead to viable species in some
animals (for example, fish and insects) as well as in numerous
plants. Hybrids of cattle also occur (seven species of the genus
Bos hybridize) and Bos and the North American buffalo Bison
bison also hybridize. Hybrids have also been formed between
horses and zebras, camels and llamas, leopards and jaguars, lions
and tigers, dolphins and false killer whales (different genera),
different genera of snakes, and even hybrids between sheep and
goats have been achieved, although in the case of the latter, cell
linkages between embryos of the two species were implanted in
a surrogate mother to achieve the hybrid. There are various ways
in which genetic information can be reshuffled rapidly to produce
reproductive isolation, but since information is not necessarily
lost or gained in the reshuffling process, these isolated forms do
not represent new kinds but just related species of the same
kind that have now become reproductively isolated. In the past,
the different species within genera, and even possibly families,

227

The Genesis Conflict


could thus all have belonged to one kind.
4) Changes in chromosome structure and number: Chromosomes are classified on the basis of the position of the centromere
(condensed region on a chromosome where sister chromatids are
attached to each other after replication). When the centromere is
in the middle of a chromosome and the two arms are thus of equal
length, it is called a metacentric chromosome. If the centromere is
located at or near one end of the chromosome, it is called an acrocentric chromosome and any changes in chromosomal structure can
be detected by a special staining technique known as G - banding.

Rearrangement of the chromosomes may entail changes
in the number of chromosomes, number of chromosome arms, as
well as other changes produced by translocation (movement of
chromosome segment to another location), deletions, duplications,
inversions and drastic rearrangements. Sometimes, chromosomes
can fuse with each other to form much longer chromosomes or
they can split at the centromere to form two shorter chromosomes.
One such rearrangement is known as Robertsonian rearrangement
and is the result of either the fusion of two centromeres into one,
or the splitting of the centromere into two. A tandem fusion on
the other hand is a fusion of two chromosomes, in which one end
of a chromosome fuses with the end or the centromere of another
chromosome (see Figure 5.10). In all such recombinations, the
information is shuffled, but comparisons between chromosome
banding of the chromosomes of related species with different
chromosome structures show that the information is still the same.
It is just rearranged. Moreover, the types of rearrangements which
occur in different animals are quite group-specific, and one type
of rearrangement doesnt necessarily occur in another group.
Robertsonian Fusion: Roberstonian fusion changes the chromosome number, but not the arm number. When chromosomes line up
during meiosis 1, a metacentric chromosome lines up with two acrocentric chromosomes. Examples are: The house mouse Mus Musculis
which has 40 chromosomes. A population of mice from the Italian
Alps was found to have only 22 chromosomes. This population
228

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


t
p
c

Parts of a chromosome:
t = telomere;
c = centromere;
p = short arm;
q = long arm.
Robertsonian fusion in Mus musculus paschiavanus between two acrocentric chromosomes (12 and 14), producing a metacentric
chromosome.23
Tandem fusion between
chromosomes 4 and 9 of
the water buffalo. 24

Translocation in a human of a segment


of chromosme 5 onto chromosome
18. The portion between the lines has
been translocated from the large chromosome to the small chromsome.26

Pericentric inversion in
chromosmoe 4 of Peromyscus maniculatus. The portion between the lines has
been inverted.25

Paracentric inversion in chromosome


1 of Mus musculus.
The region between
the lines has been
inverted. 27, 28

Figure 5.10

differs slightly from the normal house mouse in morphology as


well and is classified as a different species Mus paschiavanus.
Other populations have been discovered with chromosome numbers
varying between 22 and 40 yet the number of chromosome arms is
the same, and banding studies reveal the genes to be homologous.
Obviously, in terms of their relationship, these different species
are all one group.
229

The Genesis Conflict


5.11a

Figure 5.11a-d shows


the similarities in stripes
and horns between various antelopes that have
the same tandem fusion.

Figure 5.11a - Eland

5.11b

Figure 5.11b - Nyala

5.11c

Figure 5.11c - Kudu

5.11d

c.)

Figure 5.11d - Bongo

230

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


Tandem Fusion: Tandem fusion changes arm number and chromosome number. Tandem fusions have been found in some antelope species where a sex chromosome fused with an autosome.
This is rare, and one can assume that the organisms probably had
a common forerunner. The antelope displaying this fusion range
in size from the eland (the largest of all the antelopes) to smaller
species such as the sitatunga and the bushbuck. They all share
common features, however, such as similar shapes of the horns
and stripes on the body which may be prominent, as in the case of
the bongo, or less prominent, as in the case of the eland. Species
with this type of fusion are: the eland, bongo, lesser and greater
kudu, bushbuck, sitatunga and nilgai (Indian antelope) where the
y-chromosome is fused to an autosome. Some of the ungulates
with a tandem fusion are shown in Figure 5.11.

Tandem fusions are found in Malaysian swamp buffalo
and Asian river buffalo. A further very interesting example of
this type of fusion is also found in the Asian deer. In the species
Muntiacus muntjac, the females have only 6 chromosomes and
the males have 7 chromosomes (this is the smallest chromosome
number in mammals). However, in a different species of the
group, Muntiacus reevesi, both the males and the females have
46 chromosomes. Banding studies show that the same genetic
material is present in both species. The chromosomes in M.
muntjac are just fused together to form very long chromosomes.
Once again, no new information is added, it is just reshuffled,
thus providing differential expressions and increased variety. Just
like many tunes can be played on the same piano, but the music
remains piano music.
Pericentric Inversions: These inversions provide changes in
arm number but not chromosome number. The number of arms
depends on the position of the centromere. If it is located at the
end, then there is one arm, and if in the middle, there are two
arms. The inversion can change acrocentric chromosomes to
metacentric chromosomes. The rodents Neotoma and Peromyscus
differ by this inversion.
231

The Genesis Conflict


Translocation: Translocations can lead to reduced fertility, or in
some cases in humans, Downs syndrome can occur where part of
chromosome 21 gets translocated to another autosome. In some
insects and plants that have meiotic drive, however, viable offspring
can be produced.
Paracentric Inversion: In this type of inversion, the centromere is
not included. This inversion is relatively uncommon, but has been
proposed for some species of bats, hares and apes.
Drastic Rearrangements: Under certain circumstances of severe
environmental stress, drastic rearrangements can produce greater
varieties, which could enhance survival. These changes can be
rapid when new adaptive zones are entered (canalization model).
Such rearrangements have been proposed for the mole rate Spalax

In summary, it can thus be said that the organismic genome
is endowed with an enormous capacity for variation. Under conditions of stress, or where organisms enter new adaptive zones or
experience low selective pressures, there are built-in mechanism for
creating rapid change and tremendous variations. The organisms
must have been endowed with this potential for change from the
beginning and were created at the same time. The fact that phyla appear suddenly in the phylogenetic record suggests that these groups
did not share a common ancestry, and the absence of ancestors in
the underlying strata is thus not due to an inadequate fossil record,
but rather indicates separate origins for the various groups. If all
these creatures formed part of the original kinds and were endowed
with unique gene pools, then one could perhaps expect elements of
common design, but the genomes would not form a continuum of
advanced genetic features from the lowest to highest, since all the
kinds would be unique, although each group would have inbuilt
potential for variety. Commonality of ancestry would thus not exist and neither would it be reflected in the fossil record and this is
exactly what the fossil record reveals (there are no common ancestors). In the genetic phylogenetic studies that have been conducted,
232

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


the search for a common ancestry of organisms is equally as
disappointing to the scientific community as is the evidence of the
fossil record. No wonder that some phylogeneticists have considered abandoning the search for the roots of the phylogenetic tree
in view of the vast genetic anomalies in the molecular phylogenies
of organisms. They argue that lateral gene transfer has confused
the situation beyond recognition,29 but perhaps they are looking
in the wrong place and are overlooking the one solution that is
not only consistent with the data, but with the Scriptures as well.

The fantastic array of mechanisms available to produce
change and variety would be particularly useful in a changing
environment or when stabilizing selective pressures would be low,
and after the deluge, precisely such a situation would have existed.
The new adaptive zones that were created provided the nurturing
ground for rapid adaptive radiation in the post flood period (using
built in genetic variety and potential) and competition for habitats
would also have been low initially, thus allowing for low stabilizing selection pressures. These circumstances could thus rapidly
induce changes in form and structure until such time as population
levels were stabilized. The large mammals with the extremes in
variation such as the woolly mammoths and sabre-tooth tigers are
just some examples. Moreover, given this tremendous potential
for change, and the obvious relationship between even species
with totally different chromosome numbers, a situation can be
envisaged where a relatively small number of 'kinds' can account
for large number of 'species' in a very short time. For those with
faith in the Biblical account of the ark, the problem of fitting the
animals into the ark would no longer seem as daunting. Not all
the species existing today would have had to enter the ark, but
only the representative kind of much higher categories than the
species level. For example the antelopes mentioned above would
only have needed to be represented by one of the variants, not all
those that are now classified as different species.

The canids of the world illustrate this point dramatically. Dogs
and wolves of the genus Canis have 78 chromosomes, while foxes
233

The Genesis Conflict


have a varied number of chromosomes ranging from 38-78 chromosomes. The uniformity of chromosome number in dogs and
wolves can be due to free interbreeding over a wide range, whereas
foxes live in small family groups and smaller territories, so that
new arrangements will persist. Although the chromosome numbers
in many species of canids may thus be lower than the 78 found in
wolves, the chromosomes of those species with smaller chromosome numbers are longer and chromosome banding shows that they
have the same basic genetic material. The longer chromosomes are
thus as a result of chromosome fusions which have thus changed
the chromosome number and reshuffled the information, but the
same genetic information still exists. If the kind is thus penned
at the level of the family Canidae, then the implications in terms
of the number of animals required to produce the present varieties
are not as daunting as many fear. The great variety of form and
structure found in all the wild canids, is no greater than the variety
which human selection has achieved in the domestic dog, and all
the members of the family could thus have belonged to the same
kind originally.

The potential for change certainly exists; nevertheless, there
are certain barriers which cannot be transgressed. There is plenty of
evidence that all canids originally must have belonged to one kind.
In Canada, there is a variation of size in coyotes from the west to
central Canada. The larger coyote of central Canada occasionally
interbreeds with the wolf, and the smaller coyote of the west freely
interbreeds with the other coyotes in the range. It is thus likely that
they all belonged to the same kind. The same holds true for even
the so-called unique canids such as the dingo from Australia that is
in danger of extinction, not because of competition, but because its
gene pool is being swallowed up by the domestic dog with which
it readily interbreeds.

Geneticists have manipulated the genome of the fruit fly
Drosophila to such an extent that some believe that all evolutionary events in the history of the earth do not exceed the amount of
manipulation to which fruit flies have been subjected. Nevertheless,
234

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


although bizarre forms have been created, the barrier, which constitutes fruit flies, has never been broken. Similarly, a great deal
of change from chromosomal rearrangements has probably taken
place since creation, and the time frame can be consistent with a
short chronology. It is, therefore, possible to envisage the changes,
which brought about the large number of species existing today to
have taken place rapidly. Indeed, numerous chromosome homologies have been identified in animals today, which are probably just
the result of chromosome fusions, as in the case of kangaroos, where
Robertsonian fusions can account for much of the variation between
the different species. Rearrangements can account for differences
in insectivores, bats, primates, marine mammals, rodents, rabbits
and hares, and ungulates.30

Similarities between genetic linkages do not, however,
always have to reflect close relationships; they could just reflect
similarities in design based on functional requirements. For example, genes for specific enzyme systems are often situated on
chromosomes with similar banding patterns in different species.31
Similarities can thus also be explained on the basis of function rather
than ancestry. In fact, similar linkage patterns between cats and
humans are almost as consistent as between humans and chimpanzees,32 and similarities in chromosomes of humans and apes could
also be explained on this basis. Interestingly, the human karyotype
seems to be closest to the primitive condition, which does not support an ancestral position of the apes.33

From a creationist perspective, redistribution of kinds must
have taken place from the ark along three distribution lines (figure 5.12)

James Gibson of the Geoscience Research Institute in
California carried out an extensive literature survey of mammalian
distribution patterns on the various continents and showed that many
mammalian species exhibit distribution patterns consistent with an
ark distribution. In order for this type of distribution to have taken
place, the various continental and geographic barriers that exist today
must be considered to be post-flood phenomena. Initial redistribution

235

Figure 5.12 - Potential post-catastrophic dispersial routes. The dotted lines represent former land areas now submerged.
(Source: L.J. Gibson - Geoscience Research Institute)

The Genesis Conflict

236

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


and population growth must thus have been rapid and the various
barriers must have arisen subsequent to these events. If we take the
two elephant populations in the world today as an example, then they
can be considered relics of a much wider distribution of elephants that
became separated by the deserts of North Africa and Arabia into the
African and Asian populations. It is also interesting that the distribution of mammals on earth is consistent with a north-south distribution
in Africa, and a west-east distribution in Asia. There is also genetic
evidence for migration across the Bering Strait, thus indicating that
this barrier did not hinder the earlier distribution of animals. The
antelope ground squirrel (Spermopilus undulatus) and the American
species (S. columbianus) are chromosomally identical, but separating them and living on both sides of the Bering Strait is another
species, S. parryi, which has a different chromosome number.

The Australian Problem



More difficult to explain is the problem of endemic families
of animals. Endemic families occur largely in a few distinct orders,
the marsupials, primates, and the rodents. The fact that most of the
endemic species occur in positions further from the ark position
(86% of endemic families occur on the southern continents or on islands, which may account for some of their strange features), points
to relatively early isolation. During the initial distribution from the
ark, small groups that became isolated form the main body due to
geographic barriers or other reasons would have exhibited a high potential for variation, given the challenges of the new environments,
together with low competition rates due to small population sizes.
The unique fauna of Australia, in this regard, presents a challenge to
the scientific fraternity. The accepted paradigm is, that the marsupial
populations of Australia represent a relic of the once primitive forerunners of placental mammals, but none of the Australian endemic
families have a fossil record outside of the Australian realm. In other

237

The Genesis Conflict


words, the unique forms of not only the living animals but also
of that of the immediate ancestors were already confined to the
Australian realm. Perhaps the answer lies elsewhere.

Why should a marsupial be considered primitive just
because of the way the young are born and raised? Why can it not
be considered adaptive? Placental mammals occur on continents
where seasonal migration is viable. Young are born in the favorable
season and are capable of independent movement from an early
age. This is very important to ungulates that require stable seasonal
food supplies and have to undergo long migrations between seasons.
The same cannot be said for Australia. The food position is far less
predictable, migration is not an option, and the unique reproductive
style might have been an early answer to the challenges of the
environment. The gene pool thus needed to be sufficiently varied
to allow for such developments.

Marsupial reproduction is not primitive (unless the
premature birth is considered primitive). The young of marsupials
receive the best protection whilst at the same time, the parent is
not as bound as in the case of placental animals, which have to
carry fetuses to full term. Marsupials are thus reproductively more
flexible and therefore capable of meeting extremes of environmental
circumstances. Surely a situation where two young being raised
simultaneously and receiving differential treatment according
to need (two types of milk from two different mammary glands
in the same mother) must be considered adaptive rather than
primitive, particularly since under conditions of environmental
stress, development can even be arrested. Moreover, why should
the injection of milk (as in the case of marsupials) be considered
primitive, and the suckling of milk (as in placentals) be considered
advanced? Are the two mechanisms not just two sides of the same
coin since both require complex structural and physiological
adaptations in order to be effective?

The particular challenges of the post-flood isolated island
communities may have indeed led to some novel organismic types, and
rather than reflecting primitive conditions, they could be demonstra238

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


ting the wonders of the superb adaptability of organisms and the
built-in capacity of the genome to produce and supply variation
when needed. No model of origins can supply all the answers,
particularly if our knowledge of many biochemical and genetic
mechanisms is still so incomplete. The creationist model does,
however, supply many plausible answers to some of the many
questions that plague us in terms of origins. There will be areas
where faith must supply the lack of knowledge, but the same is
true for the evolutionary paradigm. In the final analysis, both
paradigms thus require faith. The question that everyone must ask
himself is, which of the two requires more faith?

REFERENCES
Max Delbruck, Mind From Matter? (Palto Alto: Blackwell Scientific
Publications, 1986): 31.

1.

Stanley L. Miller, A Production of Amino Acids under Possible


Primitive Earth Conditions, Science 117(3046) (1953): 528-529.
http://www.abenteuer-universum.de/pdf/miller_1953.pdf

2.

J. B. Pollack and D.C. Black, Implications of the Gas


Compositional Measurements of Pioneer Venue for the Origin of
Planetary Atmospheres, Science 205 (1979): 56-59.
3.

J. P. Pinto, G. R. Gladstone and Y. L. Yung, Photochemical


Production of Formaldehyde in Earths Primitive Atmosphere,
Science 210 (1980): 183-185.

4.

George T. Javor, Origin of Life: A look at Late 20th Century


thinking, Origins 14 (1987): 7-20.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/14007.pdf

5.

R. T. Brinkman, Dissociation of Water and Avolution of Oxygen


in the Terrestrial Atmosphere, Journal of Geophysical Research 74
(1969): 5355-5368.

6.

239

The Genesis Conflict


James F. Kasting, Earths Early Atmosphere, Science 259(5097)
(1993): 920-926.
http://www.csun.edu/~hmc60533/CSUN_311/article_references/
Sc_Feb93_EarthEarlyAtmos.pdf

7.

John C. Walton, Organization and the Origin of Life, Origins 4


(1977): 16-35.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/04016.pdf

8.

Ernst Mayr, Evolution and the Diversity of Life: Selected Essays


(Cambridge, Belknap Press, 1976).

9.

N. I. Platnick, Review of: Evolution and the Diversity of Life:


Selected Essays, by Ernst Mayr, Systematic Zoology 26(2) (1977):
224-228.
10.

Marcel Schtzenberger, Algorithms and Neo-Darwinian Theory


in Mathematical Challenges to the Neo-Darwinian Interpretation of
Evolution. Eds. Paul S. Moorhead and Martin M. Kaplan (The Wistar
Institute Symposium Monograph No. 5, 1967): 73.

11.

12.

M. W. Strickberger, Evolution (Jones and Bartlett Publishers, 1996).

Michael Denton, Evolution: A Theory in Crisis (London: Burnett


Books, 1985): 149.
13.

Slightly modified from Biology by Karen Arms and Pamela A. Camp.


4th edition (New York: Saunders College Publishing, 1995): 365.
14.

R. K. Wayne, Cranial Morphology of Domestic and Wild Canids:


the Influence of Development on Morphological Change, Evolution
40 (1986): 243-261.

15.

David Suzuki, Anthony Griffiths and Richard Lewontin et al, An


Introduction to Genetic Analysis (San Francisco: W. H. Freeman and
Company, 2000): 690-701.
16.

240

5 - Origin of Life and Variability


R. D. Fleischmann, M. D. Adams et al., Whole Genome Sequencing
and Assembly of Haemophilus Influenzae Rd, Science 269(5223)
(1995): 496-512.

17.

P. Chevret, C. Denys, J. J. Jaeger, J. Michaux, and F. M. Catzeflis,


Molecular Evidence that the Spiny Mouse (Acomys) is More Closely
Related to Gerbils (Gerbillinae) than to True Mice (Murinae),
Proceedings of the National Academy of Sciences 90(8) (1993): 34333436.
18.

D. Gaur, Molecular Phylogeny and the Higher Classification of


Eutherian Mammals, Trends in Ecology and Evolution 8(4) (1993):
141-147.
19.

M. C. Milinkovitch, G. Orti and A. Meyer, Revised Phylogeny of


Whales Suggested by Mitochondrial Ribosomal DNA Sequences,
Nature 361(6410) (1993): 346-348.

20.

21.

Dr. Jenny Graves, La Trobe Bulletin (September 1998): 7-8.

L. James Gibson, Chromosomal Changes in Mammalian Speciation:


A Literature Review, Origins 11 (1984): 67-89.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/11067.pdf
22.

E. Capanna, M. Cristaldi, P. Petricone and M. Rizzoni, Identification


of Chromosomes Involved in the 9 Robertsonian Fusions of the
Apennine Mouse with a 22-Chromosome Laryotype, Experentia 31(3)
(1975): 294-296.
23.

T. A. Bongso and M. Hilmi, Chromosome Banding Homologies of


a Tandem Fusion in River, Swamp, and Crossbred Buffaloes (Bubalus
bubalis), Canadian Journal of Genetics and Cytology 24(6) (1982):
667-673. http://www.nrcresearchpress.com/doi/pdf/10.1139/g82-070
24.

L. K Dixon, B. A. Nelson and R. L. Priest, Chromosome Differences


in Peromyscus maniculatus Populations at Different Altitudes in
Colorado, Genetica 52 (1984): 63-68.

25.

241

The Genesis Conflict

J. Schultz-Shaeffer, Cytogenetics (New York: Springer-Verlag,


1980).
26.

Muriel T. Davisson and T. H. Roderick, Chromosomal Banding


Patterns of Two Paracentric Inversions in Mice, Cytogenetics and
Cell Genetics 12 (1973): 398-403.
27.

M. C. Milinkovitch, G. Orti and A. Meyer, Revised Phylogeny of


Whales Suggested by Mitochondrial Ribosomal DNA Sequences,
Nature 361(6410) (1993): 346-348.

28.

W. F. Doolittle, Phylogenetic Classification and the Universal


Tree, Science 284(5423) (1999): 2124-2129.
29.

L. James Gibson, A Creationist View of Chromosomal Banding


and Evolution, Origins 13 (1986): 9-35.
http://www.grisda.org/origins/13009.pdf
30.

P. A. Lalley and V.A. McKusick, Report of the Committee on


Comparative Mapping, Cytogenetics and Cell Genetics 40 (1-4)
(1985): 536-566.
31.

S. J. OBrien and W. G. Nash, Genetic Mapping in Mammals:


Chromosome Map of Domestic Cat, Science 216(4543) (1982):
257-265.
32.

J. J. Yunis, and O. Prakash, The Origin of Man: A Chromosomal


Pictorial Legacy, Science 215 (1982): 1525-1530.
http://www.rpgroup.caltech.edu/courses/PBoC%20GIST/files_2011/
articles/Science-1982-Yunis-1525-30.pdf
33.

242

NOTES:

243

The Genesis Conflict

244

CREATION
TO
RESTORATION
A Perfect World

It is written in the book of Genesis that God pronounced
everything that He had created to be good, indeed very good:
And God saw every thing that He had made, and,
behold, [it was] very good. And the evening and the
morning were the sixth day. Genesis 1:31

There could have been no disharmonious note in this new
creation, and according to the Scriptures, this creation was also not
subject to death. Man was created in the image of God, and he was
to be the ruler over everything that God had created.
And God said, Let Us make man in Our image, after
Our likeness: and let them have dominion over the
fish of the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and over
the cattle, and over all the earth, and over every
creeping thing that creepeth upon the earth. So God

245

The Genesis Conflict


created man in His [own] image, in the image of
God created He him; male and female created He
them. And God blessed them, and God said unto
them, Be fruitful, and multiply, and replenish the
earth, and subdue it: and have dominion over the
fish of the sea, and over the fowl of the air, and
over every living thing that moveth upon the earth.
Genesis 1:26-28

The creation of man was thus the crowning act of Gods
creation, and God endowed man with nobility and honor by granting
him dominion of the newly created world. Of all the creatures God
had created, man was different from all the other animals in that
he was created in the image of God. To man was granted the gift
of intellectual capacity, a creative spirit, and a sense of morality.
He was also created a free agent in that he was endowed with a
freedom of choice. The creation of man was to bring glory to God
throughout eternity.
I will say to the north, Give up; and to the south,
Keep not back: bring my sons from far, and my
daughters from the ends of the earth; [Even] every
one that is called by my name: for I have created
him for my glory, I have formed him; yea, I have
made him. Isaiah 43:6-7

These verses show that the children of men are called sons
and daughters of God (heavenly princes), and that they were created for the glory of God. Man was to reflect the glory of God and
to ever increase in knowledge and wisdom, and to ever reflect the
glory of God. In the book of Hebrews, Paul picks up the theme of
the creation of man and sheds some interesting light on this subject.
Thou madest him a little lower than the angels; thou

246

6 - Creation to Restoration
crownedst him with glory and honour, and didst
set him over the works of thy hands. Hebrews 2:7
The Greek word brachus (for a little) literally means for a little
while or short time and this implies that the full meaning of the
text is actually for a little while lower than the angels. Man was
thus to grow in stature, and in the restored world it would not be
the angels that would rule upon the earth restored, but restored
man would be granted the privilege of sitting with Christ in His
throne. This implies even greater glory, since Christ is the ruler of
the universe.
For unto the angels hath He not put in subjection
the world to come, whereof we speak. Hebrews 2:5
To him that overcometh will I grant to sit with Me
in My throne, even as I also overcame, and am set
down with My Father in His throne.
Revelation 3:21
Before being restored, there is, however, some overcoming to be
done, for man has forfeited his great privilege through sin, and has
lost that glory with which he was originally endowed.
For all have sinned, and come short of the glory of
God. Romans 3:23

The Scriptures teach that the change of status and the suffering which this planet and mankind have had to endure since the fall
of man would, however, be transformed back to the original through
the purchase of the blood of Christ. Through Christ and in Him, man
can overcome and be conquerors together with Him. What was lost
in Eden can and will be restored through Christ through justification
and sanctification to the glorification of those who accept the gift of

247

The Genesis Conflict


His purchase, and then only will the full potential of man be realized.
For I reckon that the sufferings of this present time
[are] not worthy [to be compared] with the glory
which shall be revealed in us. Romans 8:18
And that He might make known the riches of His
glory on the vessels of mercy, which He had afore
prepared unto glory. Romans 9:23
The earth is also to be restored to its original status and sin will be
eradicated from the universe.
For, behold, I create new heavens and a new earth:
and the former shall not be remembered, nor come
into mind. Isaiah 65:17
For as the new heavens and the new earth, which I
will make, shall remain before me, saith the Lord, so
shall your seed and your name remain. Isaiah 66:22
Nevertheless we, according to His promise, look
for new heavens and a new earth, wherein dwelleth
righteousness. 2 Peter 3:13

The Scriptures also teach that the whole creation is groaning whilst we wait for the restoration that has been promised. It
is at this point that the sons of God will be revealed and that the
bondage to corruption (death) will come to an end. Not only is man
suffering from the consequences of sin, but the entire creation is
also groaning under the burden of decay.
For the earnest expectation of the creature waiteth
for the manifestation of the sons of God. For the

248

6 - Creation to Restoration
creature was made subject to vanity, not willingly,
but by reason of him who hath subjected [the same]
in hope, because the creature itself also shall be
delivered from the bondage of corruption into the
glorious liberty of the children of God. For we know
that the whole creation groaneth and travaileth in
pain together until now. Romans 8:19-22

The Genesis account of the creation and the fall is the exact
opposite of the naturalistic view of origins. Genesis portrays a decline from perfection to degeneration and decay, and the naturalistic
approach propagates an advance from chaos to order and perfection.
Genesis gives explicit details as to the consequences of sin and fall,
all of which are denied by the naturalistic approach, and these details are, in fact, reversed and used as the very means to create the
advance from imperfection to perfection. Death is used to create
better-adapted forms, and the cycles of death, which are enacted on
the planet through prey and predator relationships, are the nurturing
ground for adaptive radiation. According to the Scriptures, however,
this was not so from the beginning and prey predator relationships originally never existed and will also not exist in the earth
made new.
The wolf also shall dwell with the lamb, and the
leopard shall lie down with the kid; and the calf and
the young lion and the fatling together; and a little
child shall lead them. And the cow and the bear shall
feed; their young ones shall lie down together, and the
lion shall eat straw like the ox. And the sucking child
shall play on the hole of the asp, and the weaned child
shall put his hand on the cockatrices den. They shall
not hurt nor destroy in all my holy mountain: for the
earth shall be full of the knowledge of the Lord, as
the waters cover the sea. Isaiah 11:6-9

249

The Genesis Conflict



These verses portray an order of things, which is totally
different to what we currently experience on the planet. Firstly,
there will be no carnivores and the current predators will thus
revert to vegetarian diets, and secondly, all harmful creatures
which sting or are venomous will revert to non harmful forms.
Moreover, even a child will be able to lead the now dangerous
predators, so all aggressiveness will be removed from the natures
of these animals and man will once more have total control over
the animal kingdom. This restoration is in line with what the book
of Genesis portrays about the beginning and about the original
diet of all the creatures on the planet.
And God said, Behold, I have given you every
herb bearing seed, which [is] upon the face of
all the earth, and every tree, in the which [is] the
fruit of a tree yielding seed; to you it shall be for
meat. And to every beast of the earth, and to every
fowl of the air, and to every thing that creepeth
upon the earth, wherein [there is] life, [I have
given] every green herb for meat: and it was so.
Genesis 1:29-30

According to this verse, all creatures were thus vegetarian,
and mans diet consisted of seeds and fruits and all animals ate the
plants of the fields. There could have been no harmful bacteria,
no parasites, in fact, no creatures with harmful effects at all. What
happened then to mar this perfection? The Scriptures teach that
sin entered in and that as a consequence, the order of nature was
radically changed. Without the sustaining power of God (for He
upholds all things), the second law of thermodynamics would
henceforth ensure that only by the sweat of one's brow could order
and harmony be obtained. Disorder, according to the Scriptures,
is the work of the enemy. According to the parable of the sower,
it was the enemy that sowed the bad seed among the good.

250

6 - Creation to Restoration

An Imperfect Planet

After the fall, the order of nature was changed. According
to Scripture, the serpent was cursed and lost some its original abilities, even undergoing dramatic anatomical changes in that it would
henceforth move on its belly. The statement that it would eat dust
is a reference to death since all creatures would return to the dust
from whence they came. Also the fact that some snakes still have
rudimentary legs could be an indication of a genetic change which
deactivated the genes responsible for the development of the original
locomotory structures.

The relationship between man and woman was also changed
through the entrance of sin and in order to deal with the changed
circumstances there was a shift in role distribution which has become the object of much debate and in some cases much misery. The
ground was cursed and would henceforth not yield its strength and it
would take toil to glean its treasures. Adam would henceforth earn
his bread by the sweat of his brow, which means that the provision
of the necessities of life was to become his burden in the transformed
world. Eve, on the other hand would find the raising of children with
right characters a task that would require concerted effort and a task
that would require patience and many tears. Eve did not receive the
lesser role in this new situation, for the raising of descendants with
right characters is the noblest of all tasks.

Not only did the role distribution change, but physical
aspects of human and animal existence also changed. In a world
that would not yield its strength, plants would produce thorns and
thistles and the diet and lifestyles of all the created creatures would
be affected. To the diet of man, the plants of the field were added in
order to augment his diet, and the animals must have also undergone
dramatic changes in diet, as their food supply must also have been
affected. After Cain killed Abel, there was a further decline, which
was to mar the once perfect planet. Cain was cursed and the ground
was to yield even less of its strength (Genesis 4:12). Both animals
and man must have been affected by this change of circumstances
251

The Genesis Conflict


and wickedness increased until God destroyed the world by bringing about the flood.

Prior to the flood, the animal world had already changed to
such an extent that animals were already classified into clean and
unclean categories since Noah was instructed to take seven pairs
of clean animals and one pair of unclean animals on board the ark.
The flood brought about a further radical change, and the diets of
man and beast must have been further affected, since God added
flesh to the already changed human diet. After the flood, there was
a rapid decline in the life expectancy of man (and by implication
in the animals as well). Life expectancy of man was approximately
halved after the flood. After the time of Peleg (when the earth was
divided), life expectancy was halved once more, and by the time
of Moses the average life span was down to 120 years. By the time
of David, it had declined to 80 years, and today it is still lower.

Scientific Evaluation

The existence of evil in a world created by the God of light
and love is one of the principle reasons why many reject God.
However, God has given all the reasons for the state of affairs and
has also provided a solution in Christ to repurchase the lost possession. This same issue plagued Darwin, and he once wrote a letter
to his friend Dr. Asa Gray regarding this matter:
I am bewildered. I had no intention to write
atheistically. But I own that I cannot see so plainly
as others do, and as I should wish to do, evidence
for design and beneficence on all sides of us.
There seems to me too much misery in the world.
I cannot persuade myself that a beneficent and
omnipotent God would have designedly created the
Ichneumonidae with the express intention of their

252

6 - Creation to Restoration
feeding within the living bodies of caterpillars, or
that a cat should play with mice.1

He also wrote in 1844 in his initial draft of The Origin
of Species:
It is derogatory that the Creator of countless
Universes should have made by individual acts
of His will the myriads of creeping parasites
and worms, which since the earliest dawn of life
have swarmed over the land and in the depths of
the ocean .. We cease to be astonished that a
group of animals should have been transformed
to lay their eggs in the bowels and flesh of other
sensitive beings; that some animals should live by
and delight in cruelty; that animals should be led
away by false instincts; that annually there should
be an incalculable waste of the pollen, eggs and
immature beings2

Charles Darwin was thus swayed to reject the hand of God in
nature and to accept the naturalistic approach, but his conjectures and
conclusions were based on the assumption that the present biological
interactions apparent in nature, must have existed since the inception
of life. This is not necessarily true, and we could ask the question:
Does the evidence point to decay with elements of perfection and
design serving as reminders of a once perfect situation, or does the
evidence point to past imperfection and progress toward greater and
greater perfection? The fossil record already reveals greater diversity
in the past than in the present, and life also exploded on the scene
in what has been termed the Cambrian explosion. These two factors alone point in the exact opposite direction to what naturalistic
evolution would propose and they are consistent with the creation
account. Let us examine some of the issues involved.

253

The Genesis Conflict

Evidence for Design


Wherever we look we find evidence for design. The marvel of life, the great variety of life forms, the miracle of flight in
birds and insects all have inspired designers and engineers to try
and emulated the successes so apparent in nature. The flight of
birds has inspired the aeronautical world and even the so-called
primitive dragonfly has inspired flight engineers to design the
helicopter. Even the feathers that are used in flight present design
features that could not possibly have evolved gradually. The list of
biological wonders in the organism and cell organelle world that
smack of design is endless, but for the purpose of this discussion
we will only look at a few examples.
The genome: The greatest evidence for design in the biosphere
lies in the genome. Genetics and evolutionary principles are at
loggerheads with each other. From the beginning of these sciences
they were opposed to each other, since Mendel clearly demonstrated that individual characteristics were carefully conserved
and Darwin, not being aware of Mendels work, proposed change
of inherited characteristics as the nurturing ground for evolution.
Today we know that variations induced by the environment are
not passed on to the next generation, as Darwin believed in his
time. Individuals exposed to the sun get darker, physical activity
enhances muscular development etc. but these traits are not inherited. Mendel also showed that genetic recombinants may have
latent features which can resurface at a later stage, thus showing
that the traits were not lost but could enhance or decrease variation in the phenotype in accordance to the level in which they
were expressed. The genome is thus conservative yet versatile.

The scientific fraternity proposes that mutations are the
nurturing ground for providing new and exciting genetic material,
but only the opposite has been shown to be true in actual observations and experiment. In the fruit fly Drosophila alone, some
3000 mutations have been identified, 3 and all of them are either

254

6 - Creation to Restoration
harmful or have no effect but none of them produce more successful fruit flies. The most important nurturing ground for evolution
thus seems hopelessly inadequate, or rather counterproductive, to
the evolutionary process. In addition, we need to remind ourselves
that, as noted in the previous chapter, natural selection cannot
create anything. It can only select from what is already there and
then only if it is expressed in the phenotype. The entire genome
thus exudes design, yet DNA is not alive. It is a dead molecule and
needs the machinery of the living cell to make copies of itself. The
information for that cell is, however, in the genome, and the DNA
is simply the carrier of the information. In order to read the information, you need the equipment to unravel it and translate it and
the information for that equipment is in the DNA itself. No matter
how one looks at it, design is the only solution for the dilemma.
The cell: If we progress from the genome to the cell, we see that the
cell is not just a chance blob of fortuitous molecules come together
to form protoplasm. It is rather an intricate machine with marvelous
order and elements of design. In 1996, Michael Behe, a working
biochemist, published the book Darwins Black Box.4 Behe pointed
out that the cell, far from being a simple little lump of albuminous
combinations of carbon, as thought in Darwins day, was actually
an entire factory, filled with molecular machines of astounding
precision and complexity. Within these complex structures, there
are numerous individual microstructures and cellular systems in
which vast numbers of parts and enzyme systems work together in
such a way that they will only function if every single piece is in
place. Removal of even one link in the biochemical systems does
not reduce the efficiency; it eliminates the function of the organelle
entirely. He called this situation irreducible complexity, and it
is totally inconsistent with the evolutionary concept of gradual
change over time. Only design could account for such complexity.

Darwin himself, in The Origin of Species, stated that precisely such a situation would disprove his theory:

255

The Genesis Conflict


If it could be demonstrated that any complex organ
existed which could not possibly have been formed
by numerous, successive, slight modifications, my
theory would absolutely break down.5

The living machinery of cells proves precisely this point.
There are myriads of processes that are of this nature and that require
closely coordinated biochemical sequential reactions, each governed by intricate feedback systems, which in turn require receptors
which will activate them at precisely the right point in time. It is
not within the scope of this book to elaborate on the finer details of
these processes, but even some of the simpler biochemical pathways
such as the production of some amino acids which require closed
systems are highly complex and organized. The enzymes involved
in the production of these amino acids are also coded for by genes
and need the very amino acids which they themselves have to produce in order to exist in the first place. As discussed in the previous
chapter, the probability of the complex machinery such as RNA or
DNA or viable enzymes coming about by chance is so mind bogglingly remote as to be non-existent. To cite just one example, the
probability of just the smaller of the ribosomal subunits (consisting
of 1500 nucleotides) coming about by chance is 10903 and this figure
is so large that it is beyond comprehension (remember that 1080 is
the estimated number of particles in the known universe).
Organs: Organs such as the eyes, ears, kidneys and others show
levels of complexity that smack of design. The brain is a mystery of
ingenuity that baffles the greatest intellects on earth and makes even
the worlds super computers look like feeble toys by comparison.
The electrical design and storage capacity of the nervous system
is a further mystery which is astounding. There may be up to one
hundred trillion synapses in the brain, and each one acts as a filter,
a signal disseminator, and a calculator ensuring the flow of and the

256

6 - Creation to Restoration
filtering of information. The capacity to store information is infinite
and to crown it all, the brain makes it possible to appreciate beauty, it
makes us creative and makes us beings capable of moral judgments.

A comprehensive study of all the intricate design details
in the various organ systems found in the animal kingdom would
require untold volumes of books, and then we would still be limited
by our incomplete knowledge of these systems. As a comparative physiologist, I have always been fascinated by the numerous
complex systems, which require clockwork precision at both the
anatomical and physiological level. Systems such as the countercurrent exchange and multiplier systems, which are found in the gills of
fish, the lungs of birds and in the kidneys of mammals also require
full structural development before they will function. One wonders
how such systems could have evolved gradually over time since in
the case of the counter current multiplier system in the kidney, for
example, no halfway developed system would work. These counter
current systems make for highly efficient oxygen exchange, and
in the case of the countercurrent multiplier systems of the mammalian kidney, they create the capacity to concentrate urine against
concentration gradients. The systems have to be complete before
they work and this implies design.
The Eye: For the sake of this discussion, let us limit ourselves
to some of the organ systems that have produced lively discussions in scientific circles. One such system is that of the eye,
which has received much attention from evolutionists, and
some claim that they have solved the issue of its evolutionary
development and have found mechanisms to explain how such
an intricate organ could have evolved naturalistically.6 On a
comparative morphological level, one can arrange the various
light sensitive organs found in the animal kingdom in a sequence
from simple eyespots found even in protozoans to the highly
complex structures found in vertebrates and invertebrates. There
is a vast difference, however, between arranging a simple sequence

257

The Genesis Conflict


of light sensitive organs, and putting together the complex
structure which constitutes the vertebrate eye with its autoaccommodation, complex iris structure (somewhat like a video
camera), and highly complex nervous connections. The eye in
itself does not even explain how one sees, since what happens
in the brain to convert the simple nerve impulses into images is
a mystery. Scientists have used computer models to reconstruct
the possible evolution of the eye, but notoriously absent from
these models are the intricate retina, which contains more than
100 million light sensitive cells called rods and cones which enable us to see in dim light, bright light and provide color vision.
Also absent from their models are the mechanisms which control
the lens and iris and of course the mechanisms which lead to the
perception and translation of the information. The biochemical
reactions associated with sight are also fascinatingly intricate.

The retina of the eye has been an issue of hot debate, since
it seems to be inside out with the light sensitive disks facing away
from the light source and several nerve cells lying in the path of
the light. This has prompted numerous derogatory statements,
such as in fact it is stupidly designed7, from evolutionists with
regard to the concept that the eye needed to have been constructed
by intelligent design. The eye works perfectly as it is, and is a
marvel of engineering in spite of the malicious remarks to the
contrary which some scientists dare to make. Dr. Steve Jones,
Professor of Genetics at University College, London, has even
ventured to say regarding the eye: The feeblest designer could
improve it8 and he calls it the work of an an insensible drudge:
an instrument, like all others, built by a tinkerer rather than by
a trained engineer (one wonders why he does not trade it in for
something better). In fact, the eye is brilliantly designed and the
retina is inside out for a very specific purpose. In the area of the
retina which is responsible for sharp vision, the fovea, the nerve
cells, which elsewhere in the retina lie between the cones and the
light source, are almost completely absent, and the nerve fibers
radiate away from the central region thus allowing clear vision.

Also there is a good reason for the orientation of the rods
258

6 - Creation to Restoration
and cones toward the pigment region and not towards the light
source, which lies on the outside of the retina. These rods and cones
are constantly replacing the visual pigment disks and the old ones
are disposed of by being absorbed by the pigment epithelial cells.
In the rhesus monkey, for example, each rod produces 80 to 90
new disks per day9 and since the human eye probably experiences
the same rate of replacement, that would mean that some 9000
million disks are replaced daily. Should the retina not be inside
out, then the pigment epithelial cells would not absorb the disks
and the vitreous humor of the eye would rapidly become murky
and lead to rapid visual impairment. The pigment epithelial layer
could obviously not lie on the other side of the retina so that the
light sensitive bits would face the incoming light, since then there
would be even more cells between the light source and the retina.
Of course, the pigment epithelium must lie exactly where it does
lie, since it not only absorbs old disks, it also supplies the nutrients
needed for the production of new ones and receives these nutrients
from the rich blood supply in the choroids layer right next to it.
Obviously, without the blood supply the whole system would break
down. If the retina really was stupidly designed and were orientated the other way round as these scientists claim, then the blood
supply would also have to be on the inside of the eye between the
light sources and the rods and cones, and that would totally disrupt
vision.

Crustacean eyes are equally astounding, particularly since
they work on a different system. They focus light by reflection
rather than refraction by a lens. Within these eyes, there are tiny
perfectly square tubes with flat and shiny mirror sides, which perfectly focus the light to a central point. The square arrangement
is crucial because only with this arrangement can a perfect image
be derived from light rays striking from any direction.10 Scientists
have emulated this design in their space programs by incorporating these intricate design features in their telescopes so that they
could observe a quarter of the sky at any one time 11, but nature is
supposed to have produced it by chance.
259

The Genesis Conflict



Ears are a further example of intricate design, and
some species in the animal kingdom show absolute phenomenal
abilities of hearing and tracking. The sonar systems of whales,
porpoises, and bats are some of the most amazing structures on
earth, and engineers have studied these systems in order to create detection devises and sounding devices to use for military or
other purposes. Scientists have learnt amazing things, but still
have not been able to duplicate the precision achieved by some
of these organisms. The US Navy, in fact, uses dolphins to find
and track submarines or other submersed objects. The design of
the seal's hearing apparatus is equally baffling, and the so called
earless seals, as well as dolphins, have only tiny pinprick holes
for ears, but fat bundles in the jaws and ear canals are shaped like
trumpets and conduct the sound extraordinarily well.12

Ears do not only record sound, they also provide information about where that sound is coming from. This is achieved by
separating the ears spatially so that there will be a time difference
and a slight difference in intensity in the recording of the sound
by each ear. This information is then used to calculate where the
sound is coming from. In tiny insects with incredible capacities
for hearing and directional sourcing this becomes an engineering
feat, which is astounding since their ears are often only fractions of a millimeter apart. In the tiny fly Ormia ochracea, the
ears are only 0.5 mm apart yet the fly can source the direction
that sound comes from with pin point accuracy.13, 14 The difference in the time between the two ears hearing the sound is only
1 microseconds (millionths of a second) with practically 0%
intensity difference. This amazing ability is achieved by coupling the eardrums with a flexible lever, resulting in resonance,
which increases the time difference 40 times. The drum nearest
the sound then also vibrates some 10 decibels stronger. Finally,
the nerves also respond in coded fashion creating a further five
fold increase. These masterful design features are already being
incorporated into hearing aids and could be used in directional
microphone technology.
260

6 - Creation to Restoration
Co evolution or design? If we look at the marvelous relationships
that exist in nature between animals and plants then it is hard to
envision how such harmony could have come about by strategies
and counterstrategies of co-evolution. Numerous plants can only be
pollinated by specifically adapted insects that in turn are nurtured by
the plants themselves. Evolutionists explain these relationships by
suggesting that the two co-evolved. However, what if the fortuitous
mutations were out of synchronization? Then the species would not
survive. Moreover, considering the millions of such relationships
which exist in the world, the likelihood of them having come about
by chance are so remote as to be non-existent. In the protea flowers
and fynbos flowers in general (the most diverse group of plants in
the world), each of the thousands of species is pollinated by highly
specific beetles which inhabit only those types to which they are
adapted. These highly specific symmetrical arrangements speak of
design. Further examples are the highly specific species of wasps that
pollinate the various species of figs. Then there are further significant
problems with some of the evolutionary paradigms regarding the
co-evolution of plant insect relationships. Petrified forests in Arizona
contain what are apparently bees nests, but these nests were then
made more than 100 million years before the supposed evolution
of the flowering plants on which the bees depend for survival.15

The co-evolution of so-called anti herbivory phytochemicals
(secondary compounds that plants produce to prevent herbivores
from eating them) is a further problem, since the various herbivores
would then have to evolve counterstrategies in order to still be able
to continue utilizing these food sources. Evolutionists envisage a
constant strategy and counterstrategy between plants and animals.
Some plants produce toxic substances which some animals seem to
cope with and others not. Moreover, plants produce secondary compounds which prevent overgrazing as well. These compounds (such
as tannins for example) are concentrated in the ephemeral tissues
(young leaves and buds) and the animals tend to avoid these tissues,
thus ensuring growth of the plants. Moreover, plants can increase

261

The Genesis Conflict


the levels of these compounds in the older leaves as well, which
happens when the leaves are broken, eg. during grazing. The
broken leaves release pheromones which induce the non-broken
leaves of even nearby trees to increase the levels of these deterring compounds. Generally speaking, this ability thus prevents
overgrazing, since the animals find the higher levels less palatable
and move on to non affected areas.

Instead of supposing such delicate strategies as evolving over millions of years, it seems logical to assume that such
a finely balanced system is the result of a superb design. Firstly,
only certain animals are adapted to certain specific compounds
and they choose the plants with those compounds as their food
source, thus ensuring even distribution over the wide varieties of
food sources (for example, the specialized feeders such as the koala
bears that are attracted to the eucalyptus oils which other species
avoid). Secondly, by concentrating deterrent compounds in sensitive tissues, the plants ensure continued growth and propagation,
and thirdly, by increasing the levels in areas that are generally
eaten only after the grazing has actually begun (such as when the
older leaves produce pheromones that induce them to increase the
levels of deterrent substances), overgrazing is avoided. This is a
brilliant system that speaks of design. If it was really a case of
anti herbivory strategies, then surely plants would have developed
toxic compounds that would kill the herbivore and thus prevent
all further herbivory.

Evidence for Transformation



We have already seen that the genome is endowed with a
vast capacity for variation and that even more variety is possible
through the differential expression of the genes. It is thus possible to
produce dramatic changes in form and structure by just modifying
the way in which the genes are expressed, or by changing the developmental expressions, or by the activation or deactivation of genes
262

6 - Creation to Restoration
within the genome. If environmental conditions were to change,
plants and animals could adapt to these new conditions by differentially employing the genes and gene controlling mechanisms available in order to survive. There would be no need to wait for some
fortuitous mutation to occur in order to overcome new obstacles
because, in a sense, all organisms would have been preadapted to
deal with change within the limits set by their genetic composition.
Moreover, some animals could survive even drastic changes provided they were preadapted with the tools that would allow them
to enter entirely new adaptive zones, such as the transition from a
herbivorous to a carnivorous lifestyle.
Plants: After the fall, according to the Genesis account, the ground
was cursed, and plants and animals were transformed. Some plants
were to bring forth thorns and thistles, and it is to be presumed that
changes in seasons could have brought about deciduous trees in
order to cope with the new conditions. Weeds are nothing other than
plants that compete strongly with cultivated forms. Isnt it strange
that most of the plants that man uses for food are the plants that
have to be nurtured and pampered in order to yield their crops, and
if left to themselves, they rapidly get pushed aside by other plants
which readily out-compete them? If all these plants existed so long
before man, why are these food plants are still around? It certainly
seems as if sweat of the brow is what keeps the food supply coming
in, and that hard work is what is necessary to ensure the survival
of the necessary food plants. According to Genesis, work was also
necessary before the fall because the plants were to be dressed and
kept, how much more so after the fall.

God said that thorns and thistles would appear. Thorns are
really just modified stems in which the growth process has been
modified (differential expression of the developmental genes), and
spines are modified leaves which have followed the same pattern.
There is no new information here, just a modification of the existing
pattern. Originally, according to the Scriptures, plants were watered

263

The Genesis Conflict


by rising levels of subterranean water and by a morning mist.
Such conditions are often simulated in greenhouses today where
it has been found that watering the root systems alone prevents
leaf fungus whereas wetting the leaves with sprayers can be
detrimental. Misting of plants, however, has beneficial effects,
and even micronutrients can be absorbed this way through the
leaves. Early in the morning, the stomata of the leaves are open
under certain conditions, and this allows for uptake of water and
nutrients. What is very interesting is that even music has an effect
on the capacity of plants to absorb moisture and nutrients through
their leaves, and soft classical music or the music of birds tends
to enhance absorption. Is it possible that the beauty of nature has
been so designed to create such superb harmony, and that in many
instances we see only a fraction of the original perfection?
Parasites and venomous creatures: Some organisms can become
dangerous by just being placed in different habitats to which they
are not accustomed. Bacteria, for example, are very specific as
to where they live in the gastro-intestinal tract and if they end up
elsewhere they can wreak havoc by undergoing physiological
changes which could induce them to produce harmful substances
such as certain metabolites or proteins that can have negative
effects, such as inducing diarrhea.16 Here is a mechanism for the
development of disease organisms. Originally, bacteria could
all have had highly specific roles to play in assisting numerous
processes in the body and in the environment, just as the myriads of useful bacteria still do today, and their original role could
have been only beneficial. Moreover, changes in bacteria that are
already out of their original habitat could be rapid and ongoing,
since the mechanisms for gene modification through plasmid
transfers were already in place.

The same could be said for all the organisms that eventually turned to parasitism. A changing environment with a drastically
altered habitat could induce organisms to exploit new and different
food sources and thus parasitism and carnivory could develop.
264

6 - Creation to Restoration
Protozoa that assist in the nutrition of numerous animals could
have been transformed into deadly pathogens and fungi that were
to assist in the decomposition of plant debris (remember plants
were created as food) could have parasitised living organisms.
Parasitic worms show dramatic levels of degeneration of organs,
and the tapeworm and numerous other species of parasitic worms
have been transformed into little other than reproductive organisms. Sacculina, a parasite of crabs, has no digestive tract, but its
larva is still a free-swimming nauplius larva. Instead of maturing
into a normal barnacle, it is transformed into a mass of filaments
in its crab host. The loss of organs is not necessarily the result of
mutations, but could just be the result of deactivation of the gene
systems that are not required under the new circumstances. There
is no evidence here of evolution, only of devolution.

Insects too could have been modified to develop mechanisms of defense and means of parasitism. Mosquitoes use their
syringe-like mouthparts to suck blood from a host, but the male of
the species uses the same mouthparts to extract plant juices from
plants. Is it possible that plant juice was no longer sufficient to provide the necessary energy that the female needs for the maturation
of her eggs, and that the same apparatus that was used for sucking
plant juices could be equally effectively employed to suck blood?
The sting of a bee is nothing other than a modified ovipositor. The
versatility of a bees genome is demonstrated by the fact that the
type of food that is fed to the larvae will determine whether a bee
will develop into a worker or a queen. If a queen should die, then
workers can develop into queens if fed differently, and this obviously activates latent gene systems that enable the non-reproducing
worker to be transformed into an egg-producing queen. The various
secretions associated with oviposition could equally well have been
transformed into the venom that is injected by a bees sting.

Venom, in general, is nothing other than modified normal secretions. The venom of poisonous fish is a product of the glands that
normally produce protective slime to coat the fish, and the spines that

265

The Genesis Conflict


deliver the venom are modified fin rays. The venom injected by
snakes and spiders could be nothing more than modified digestive
proteins. As to what constituted the original diet of spiders and
other venomous creatures, that is a question open to speculation.
There are spiders such as the orb-weaving spider that subsist on
pollen that is captured in their nets17 and it is quite possible that
certain wind carried seeds could also have constituted part of the
original diet.
Carnivores: Carnivores kill and eat other animals and in the
case of carnivorous mammals, they are classified as such on the
strength of their teeth. A carnivore is equipped with the necessary
weapons to kill and catch other animals, but this equipment need
not necessarily have been designed for that purpose. Yes, possessing the equipment pre-adapts an organism to become a carnivore
but this need not have been its original disposition. Panda bears,
for example, are classified as carnivores on the strength of their
teeth, but they eat bamboo. The same type of teeth can kill and
tear flesh, but as in the case of the Panda bear, that need not be
what they were designed for. The same can be said for the whole
family Ursidae, the bears, that subsist largely on a vegetarian diet
eating mainly berries. It is true that they will eat fish if available
and can be opportunist carnivores, but they are equally at home
on the fields grazing alongside buffalo.

Carnivores are not only adapted for meat eating in
terms of their teeth, but their intestines are also shorter than
those of herbivores. It is very interesting that diet has an amazing effect on intestinal structure. Intestines have a tremendous
capacity for growth, and if sections are removed during operations, some parts can regenerate and grow back to their original
length. Carnivores have short intestines because meat does not
contain fiber and a short intestine is thus advantageous so that
the food does not remain trapped in the intestines for long periods of time. Also, the food of carnivores is high-energy food
that is absorbed rapidly. Carnivores whose diets are changed
to herbivorous diets adapt rapidly to these diets and subsist
266

6 - Creation to Restoration
very well on them. Lions will also preferably eat the contents of the
rumen of a kill first. The rumen contains fermented plant products,
and there are numerous accounts of lions and other carnivores
that were raised on plant diets such as grains and would not touch
meat even if presented to them. Dogs and cats can also subsist
very well on vegetarian diets and in fact live much longer and are
less aggressive on such diets. The teeth of these animals that act
as shears could equally well have been used to shred tough plants
in the past, and the fact that they dont do so now could simply be
as a result of the destruction of their original food source. There is
plenty of evidence in the palaeontological record that far greater
varieties of plants existed in the past than exist today.

Destruction of habitat changes the diets of animals even in
our day. Chipmunks traditionally eat seeds in the forests, but with
acid rain leaving its mark, food sources are often becoming inadequate, and it is not unusual to see these cute herbivorous animals
tearing away at road kills to augment their diets with meat. This
is a case of a herbivore becoming a meat scavenger as a result of
changing circumstances. Kea parrots in New Zealand ordinarily
grub for roots, but dwindling food supplies will encourage them
to attack sheep. They will use their sharp weapons, their beaks and
claws, to tear open the backs of the sheep so that they can eat the
fat around the kidneys.18 This is an amazing transformation, and
if their habitat and food source is restored, they will go back to
calmly eating their roots. They have the same equipment as birds
of prey (sharp talons and a powerful beak) but they use them for
harmless purposes. How did they know that tearing open the backs
of sheep would provide the type of food they could subsist on?
That is a mystery, but lack of needs normally leads to aggression
and this could be one of the reasons why they aggressively attack
a creature that will or cannot defend itself. A further example
of such change is found in the so-called Vampire Finches of the
Galapagos Islands. These normally vegetarian birds have recently
been shown to raid nests and suck blood from nesting booby
birds,19,20 a change in diet induced by increasing competition for
267

The Genesis Conflict


vegetarian resources. The finches feed on these sea birds during
extended periods of drought. They peck at the base of the feathers
until the blood flows and then they sip it. Other finches queue up
and resume the process when the previous finch is satisfied. This is
a change in diet and behavior induced by negative environmental
circumstances and did not require millions of years to develop.

Aggression is a trait that potentially exists in all creatures,
but it need not have been there in the beginning. Out of the wild
species from which the domestic dog has been bred, there have
been developed incredibly docile, friendly and loving dogs of all
shapes and sizes. But selective breeding can also produce the most
vicious killers out of the same gene pool. Aggressive natures thus
have a genetic basis and can be reduced rapidly through selection.
The capacity to defend oneself need not ever be displayed if the
need for defense should never arise. The Russian scientist Dmitry
Belyaev and others who studied the process of domestication of
foxes found that changes in behavior could be selected for rapidly.21 Out of a variety of foxes, those that responded without fear
to humans were selected and the fearful ones discarded, and by the
sixth generation the foxes were displaying behavior patterns similar
to domestic dogs, whimpering to attract attention and licking their
keepers. This behavior increased to one pup in 6 by the tenth generation and to 3 pups in 4 by the 30th generation. The changes were
accompanied by anatomical changes and by a reduction in adrenal
hormone secretions (fight and flight hormones) and increases in
serotonin levels. Serotonin is an important chemical (one of the
monoamines that functions in neurotransmission, regulation of
pain thresholds and modulation of vascular muscle tone) in brain
function, and highly aggressive or schizophrenic people in mental
institutions are known to have low serotonin levels and are treated
to compensate for this condition. The development of aggression
and fear of humans need thus not have developed over millions of
years but could have come about very rapidly.

Transformation of animals into killing machines, seen from
a creation perspective, is thus an adaptive condition which points to
268

6 - Creation to Restoration
degeneration rather than evolutionary advance. In evolutionary
thinking, the carnivorous condition is an advanced condition
through which survival pressures are brought into the playing
field, which in turn lead to evolutionary advance, through natural
selection, in both the prey and the predator. In a sense, the constant
battle for survival brings about strategy and counterstrategy, but
any changes would still have to come about through mutations,
which happen by chance, and this scenario is highly unlikely.
Looking at it from the opposite perspective, carnivory is a sad
consequence of the introduction of death and violence into the
system. This point is perhaps well illustrated by the famous piranha, the fish renowned for its razor sharp teeth and its capacity
to strip an animal to bone should it haplessly end up in the water.
There is, however, evidence that the ancestors of the piranha were
once plant eaters.

Many species of South American Pacu fish, which are
closely related to the piranha, use their powerful jaws and strong
teeth to eat aquatic plants and fruits that fall into the water. The
two groups are morphologically very similar, and it is noteworthy
that the piranha will also eat plant material. Young stages (just
as in the case of many pelagic fishes) are largely plant feeders
and genetically, much to the surprise of researchers, there is no
clear distinction between the vicious piranha and the vegetarian
species,22 with some species even merging.23 It is interesting
that the pacu species that is most like the piranha in appearance,
Pygocentrus denticulate, lives on plant foods. Actually, piranhas
are not as vicious as most believe, and they generally only clip
off pieces of other creatures and dont devour them entirely. It
is conceivable that the same scenario as evident for the piranha
could apply to all carnivorous fish including the sharks, which
also have herbivorous cousins. The modifications of the feeding
structures could thus be ascribed to modification or lack of genetic
expression and can be considered secondary rather than primary.

269

The Genesis Conflict

Clean and Unclean



The terms clean and unclean for certain categories of animals are used for the first time in Genesis 7:2 and these categories
were thus applicable before the flood. The terms thus have nothing
to do with Jewish laws but existed long before the Jews. Noah was
also instructed to take aboard the ark seven pairs of all the clean
animals and only one pair of the unclean animals.
Of every clean beast thou shalt take to thee by
sevens, the male and his female: and of beasts that
are not clean by two, the male and his female. Of
fowls also of the air by sevens, the male and the
female; to keep seed alive upon the face of all the
earth. Genesis 7:2,3

For the sacrificial system, which incidentally was instituted
in Eden after the fall as demonstrated by the offering of Abel, only
clean animals were permitted, and Noah sacrificed one of every
clean animal after the flood.
And Noah builded an altar unto the Lord; and took
of every clean beast, and of every clean fowl, and
offered burnt offerings on the altar. Genesis 8:20

Precisely why some animals were classified as clean and
others as unclean is an open question, but it is noteworthy that those
animals that are classified as unclean all seem to occupy ecological
niches which differ substantively from what they must have been
in the beginning. The listing of these creatures together with some
additional data is first presented in Leviticus 11 and in Deuteronomy 14. The precise classification of all the various animals is
not certain, since some of the Hebrew names cannot be precisely
applied to modern classification systems. However, there is general

270

6 - Creation to Restoration
consensus regarding the most common animals. Different Bible
versions will thus vary when it comes to species which cannot be
clearly identified. Let us examine the list presented in Leviticus 11.
And the Lord spake unto Moses and to Aaron, saying
unto them, Speak unto the children of Israel, saying,
These [are] the beasts which ye shall eat among all
the beasts that [are] on the earth. Whatsoever parteth
the hoof, and is clovenfooted, [and] cheweth the
cud, among the beasts, that shall ye eat. Nevertheless
these shall ye not eat of them that chew the cud, or
of them that divide the hoof: as the camel, because
he cheweth the cud, but divideth not the hoof; he
is unclean unto you. And the coney, because he
cheweth the cud, but divideth not the hoof; he [is]
unclean unto you. And the hare, because he cheweth
the cud, but divideth not the hoof; he [is] unclean
unto you. And the swine, though he divide the hoof,
and be clovenfooted, yet he cheweth not the cud;
he [is] unclean to you. Of their flesh shall ye not
eat, and their carcase shall ye not touch; they [are]
unclean to you. Leviticus 11:1-8

The quadrupeds that were regarded as clean (those with
cloven hoofs and that ruminate) belong to the suborder Ruminantia,
which means that they have a rumen and they chew the cud. The
diet of these animals all consist of plants and they include all the
domesticated animals such as cattle, sheep, and goats, as well as all
the species of antelope, deer, and giraffes. Camels also ruminate, but
they do not belong to the same suborder, as do the clean animals.
They belong to the group known as Tylopods, which also includes the
other members of the camel family, namely the alpacas, guanacos,
llamas, and vicunas. These animals show some interesting differences when compared to other mammals. Unlike most mammals

271

The Genesis Conflict


which have round biconcave red blood cells, the camel family has
elliptical red blood cells, which means that they have different rates
of gas diffusion. These elliptical red blood cells allow the camel
(which has been studied in some detail) to survive high blood osmolarities under which other mammalian erythrocytes (red blood
cells) would crenate, causing the blood flow to cease. Camels can
also recycle water from the kidneys, which other mammals cannot
do, and when placed under similar desert conditions as camels,
they would face kidney failure.24 Obviously the camel is adapted
to cope with extreme desert conditions and can accumulate levels
of metabolic toxins that other animals would not be able to survive
and these factors alone would make it inadvisable to use the animals
as food sources.

Coneys (rock Hyrax) and hares are unclean and according to
the Levitical verse, the hare is unclean even though it chews the cud.
This verse is sometimes used to discredit the Bible, since rabbits
do not chew the cud in terms of our present definitions. Ruminants
have a compartmentalized stomach in which the rumen serves as a
fermentation chamber where cellulose is broken down by bacteria
and the bacteria also provide nutrients such as proteins and vitamins
when they in turn are digested in the abomasom, which is the only
chamber that contains gastric enzymes (see Figure 6.1). Rabbits and
hares, as well as rodents in general (animals with paws), do not possess pre-chambers for the digestion of cellulose, but they ferment the
plants in the cecum, where the microbial fermentation of cellulose
takes place. Since this fermentation takes place after the intestines,
the only way in which these nutrients can be absorbed is through
coprophagy, which is the re-ingestion of the feces. Obviously, this
entails the re-ingestion of other metabolites that would normally be
excreted and through the process of biological magnification these
animals will thus be subjected to higher toxic loads than would
be the ruminants. This could disqualify them from being clean
animals in spite of the fact that they are herbivorous. Moreover, in
a sense they thus chew the cud, with the difference that the cud
is eaten directly from the anus. Other animals that fall into the
272

6 - Creation to Restoration
category of coprophages are
the horse, zebra and donkey
(their hooves are not cloven
hooves), which also ferment
their food in the cecum and
will practice coprophagy
in the wild. These animals
would thus also be classified
as unclean.

The pig is listed
as unclean and although
it is a potential carrier of
trichinosis (particularly under unsanitary
conditions) the
level of transfer of this parasitic infection
to humans is
relatively low.

A study
carried out at
Iowa University School of
Medicine in
1962 showed
that some 17%
of human subjects had been
infected by the
parasite, and
that the levels
of infection
were generally
too low for concern. Pigs are, however, also carriers of viruses
273

The Genesis Conflict


Figure 6.1c

Figure 6.1 (a) The digestive


organs of ruminants, (b) rodents, (c) rabbits (in situ) and
(d) rabbit (unraveled), showing
the chambers, which precede
the stomach (abomassum) in
ruminants and the extended
cecum of rodents and rabbits.

Figure 6.1d

that cause human encephalitis, a potentially deadly and disabling


disease. In 1999, Malaysia experienced an outbreak of this disease
and the government undertook a large-scale eradication program
by even bringing in the military to kill and bury more than 300,000
pigs. Tissues, such as heart valves, from swine, that are used in human transplant operations, can also potentially transfer the disease

274

6 - Creation to Restoration
to humans and this has prompted scientists to seek a ban on swine
tissue for such operations.

Pork is also associated with toxins that collectively are
called suetoxins and many people are allergic to these compounds
and are thus not able to eat pork without experiencing allergic
reactions such as the development of hives. Moreover, pork connective tissues are high in mucoid compounds that are rich in
sulphates, and it is this combination that allows the pork tissue
to adhere and spread and why it is used frequently in smears and
sausages. However, these high sulphate compounds also place a
considerable acid load on the system, which could be one of the
contributing factors in the development of degenerative diseases
such as gout and other joint diseases. Finally, being an omnivore
as well as an opportunist scavenger, the pig is far more likely
to accumulate environmental toxins than animals that feed on
plants. The reason for this lies in biological magnification, which
increases at the higher trophic levels.

In one fascinating study, conducted by David Macht MD,
Phar.D., a scientist in the Research Pharmacological Laboratories of
Sinai Hospital in Baltimore, Maryland, it was found that a definite
relationship exists between levels of toxicity and the clean versus
unclean categorization. He used a 2% muscle extract from various
animals as a growth medium for seedlings of Lupinus albus and
recorded the response in terms of the plant root growth compared
to seedlings grown in a standard growth media. He then recorded
the result as a phytotoxoic index, where 100% indicated no impairment of growth.25, 26 The results for mammals are presented
in the Figure 6.1.

It is noteworthy, that the clean animals had the lowest
toxicity index, whereas from the dog onward, in all the animals
that walk on paws, the toxicity increased dramatically. The index
for the camel and the horse also shows a high level of toxicity.

The next category listed in Leviticus 11 is that of the
aquatic animals, where everything that does not have fins and
scales is categorized as unclean.
275

The Genesis Conflict

Phytotoxic Index of Various Mammals.27,28


Animal Phytotoxic Animal Phytotoxic

Sheep
Ox
Goat
Deer
Calf
Dog
Black Bear
White Rat
Grizzly Bear
Pig

Index

94%
91%
90%
90%
82%
62%
59%
55%
55%
54%

Cat
Ground Hog
Opossum
Silver Fox
Hare
Guinea Pig
Hamster
Camel
Squirrel
Horse

Index

53%
53%
53%
50%
49%
46%
43%
41%
39%
39%

Table 6.1

These shall ye eat of all that [are] in the waters:


whatsoever hath fins and scales in the waters, in
the seas, and in the rivers, them shall ye eat. And
all that have not fins and scales in the seas, and in
the rivers, of all that move in the waters, and of any
living thing which [is] in the waters, they [shall
be] an abomination unto you: They shall be even
an abomination unto you; ye shall not eat of their
flesh, but ye shall have their carcases in abomination.
Whatsoever hath no fins nor scales in the waters, that
[shall be] an abomination unto you.
Leviticus 11:9-12

Fish that lack scales are generally carnivorous or they are scavengers and one would expect higher levels of toxins in these creatures

276

6 - Creation to Restoration
due to biological magnification. Fish that have very loose scales
were also generally considered unclean in orthodox Jewish circles.
Even in modern fish breeding programs in Israel, the fish that are
raised for human consumption must have firmly attached scales.
The skin of fish is a vehicle for the elimination of toxins via the
mucoid secretions and it could be for this reason that scavenger
fishes and many fish in the higher trophic levels have either totally
or partly lost their scales. All creatures in the waters that did not
have fins or scales were considered unclean, therefore all aquatic
invertebrates such as mussels, crabs, crayfish, squid, etc. were
considered unclean. Many aquatic creatures are filter feeders and
are highly prone to the accumulation of environmental toxins.
Also, they contain allergenic compounds to which consumers can
sometimes exhibit violent reactions. In red tide situations, these
organisms also accumulate high levels of the toxins produced by
the dinoflagellate blooms, and low levels of these toxins can always
be present in these aquatic animals. In terms of healthful living, it
would thus be wise to avoid these foods. The Phytotoxic index of
various fish species is again presented in the Table 6.2.

Phytotoxic Index of Various Fish.29,30


Animal Phytotoxic Animal Phytotoxic

Sea Bass
Herring
Pike
Salmon
Cod
Tuna
Halibut
White Perch
Table 6.2

Index

103%
100%
98%
96%
90%
88%
82%
81%

277

Index

Rainbow Trout
Shark
Porcupine Fish
Sand Skate
Puffer
Moon Fish
Catfish
Eel

81%
62%
60%
59%
51%
51%
48%
40%

The Genesis Conflict



It is once more noteworthy that from the shark down
there is a dramatic drop in phytotoxic index. Sharks, of course,
accumulate urea in their tissues to compensate for osmotic water
loss, since they do not have the same capacity as the bony fishes
to deal with the salt load of the marine environment. Because
urea is readily metabolized by soil bacteria other compounds in
the shark must account for its phytotox effects . Parasite infestation is usually also highest in those fish that belong to the higher
trophic levels or that are scavengers and these, as noted earlier,
would tend to have loose scales or no scales.

The birds and flying creatures in general (listed as
fowl) that are listed as unclean are also generally those that
are carnivorous.
And these [are they which] ye shall have in
abomination among the fowls; they shall not be
eaten, they are an abomination: the eagle, and
the ossifrage, and the ospray, And the vulture,
and the kite after his kind; Every raven after his
kind; And the owl, and the night hawk, and the
cuckoo, and the hawk after his kind, And the
little owl, and the cormorant, and the great owl,
And the swan, and the pelican, and the gier eagle,
And the stork, the heron after her kind, and the
lapwing, and the bat. All fowls that creep, going
upon [all] four, [shall be] an abomination unto
you. Yet these may ye eat of every flying creeping
thing that goeth upon [all] four, which have legs
above their feet, to leap withal upon the earth;
[Even] these of them ye may eat; the locust after
his kind, and the bald locust after his kind, and
the beetle after his kind, and the grasshopper after
his kind. But all [other] flying creeping things,
which have four feet, [shall be] an abomination
unto you. Leviticus 11:13-23
278

6 - Creation to Restoration
The phytotoxic index for birds is presented in the following table,
and again it is clear that the birds of prey have lower indexes, thus
pointing to the principle that the higher the trophic level, the more
toxic the tissues. There is uncertainty about birds with webbed feet
as to whether they should be considered clean or unclean. The German Luther Bible refers to the goose and its kind as being unclean,
but other translators do not seem to find consensus on the issue.

Phytotoxic Index of Various Birds31,32


Animal

Phytotoxic
Index

Pigeon
Duck (Mallard)
Quail
Coot
Swan
Goose
Turkey

93%
90%
89%
88%
87%
85%
85%

Animal

Phytotoxic
Index

Canada Goose
Wild Duck
Chicken
Sparrow Hawk
Owl
Crow
Red-Tailed Hawk

85%
85%
83%
63%
62%
46%
36%

Table 6.3


Zoologically speaking, some may argue that the Bible is
at fault because it speaks of insects that walk on four legs when it
is plain that all insects have six legs. However, many insects do, in
fact, walk on four legs whilst the front pair is really comparable to
arms. Beetles generally fall in this category and so do the members
of the order Dictyoptera (to which the cockroaches and the preying
mantids belong). Flies in general also use their front legs more
like arms and all these insects were thus classified as unclean. The
beetles and mantids use their front arms to hold and capture prey
and many of them occupy niches which would expose them to high
levels of toxins, particularly the scavengers and dung beetles.
279

The Genesis Conflict



The fact that working with carcasses and corpses qualified
one for being unclean for a period of time and necessitated washing
is also a very logical health law which, if upheld, could prevent
the spread of disease. It is, in fact, this law that helped the medical
profession to escape the high death rates in hospitals in the middle
ages when hand washing after contact with sick people or corpses
was once more practiced as a consequence of this Biblical advice.
And for these ye shall be unclean: whosoever
toucheth the carcass of them shall be unclean
until the even. And whosoever beareth [ought]
of the carcass of them shall wash his clothes,
and be unclean until the even. [The carcasses] of
every beast which divideth the hoof, and [is] not
clovenfooted, nor cheweth the cud, [are] unclean
unto you: every one that toucheth them shall be
unclean. And whatsoever goeth upon his paws,
among all manner of beasts that go on [all] four,
those [are] unclean unto you: whoso toucheth
their carcass shall be unclean until the even. And
he that beareth the carcass of them shall wash his
clothes, and be unclean until the even: they [are]
unclean unto you. Leviticus 11:24-28

All mammals with paws were regarded as unclean, and the
correlation between the phytotoxic index (as shown in the table of
mammals) and some of these creatures is extraordinary. Most of
the species are in addition also coprophages to a lesser or greater
degree. Not all of them are aut-coprophages (animals that eat their
own excreta), but many of them are sin-coprophages (animals that
eat the excreta of other animals). All reptiles were also considered
unclean and, given the fact that many of these animals also fall in
the carnivorous category, they would be exposed to high levels of
toxins. The meat of reptiles, in general, even that of herbivorous
reptiles, is highly acid forming, which could possibly be ascribed
280

6 - Creation to Restoration
to their mode of metabolism since they are terrestrial ectotherms
and subject to great fluctuations in metabolic rates.
These also [shall be] unclean unto you among the
creeping things that creep upon the earth; the weasel,
and the mouse, and the tortoise after his kind, And
the ferret, and the chameleon, and the lizard, and
the snail, and the mole. These [are] unclean to you
among all that creep: whosoever doth touch them,
when they be dead, shall be unclean until the even.
Leviticus 11:29-31
Other restrictions placed on the Israelites regarding the issue of
clean and unclean were that any earthen vessel or oven or material
that came into contact with dead unclean animals had to be washed
or destroyed. They became unfit for use. Chemical compounds and
pathogenic bacteria can often survive in earthenware and cause
illness when these utensils are used later. What was true then is
equally valid today. Many infectious diseases have been transferred
by vehicles as mundane as a cracked cup.
And upon whatsoever [any] of them, when they are
dead, doth fall, it shall be unclean; whether [it be]
any vessel of wood, or raiment, or skin, or sack,
whatsoever vessel [it be], wherein [any] work is
done, it must be put into water, and it shall be unclean
until the even; so it shall be cleansed. And every
earthen vessel, whereinto [any] of them falleth,
whatsoever [is] in it shall be unclean; and ye shall
break it. Of all meat which may be eaten, [that] on
which [such] water cometh shall be unclean: and all
drink that may be drunk in every [such] vessel shall
be unclean. And every [thing] whereupon [any part]
of their carcase falleth shall be unclean; [whether

281

The Genesis Conflict


it be] oven, or ranges for pots, they shall be
broken down: [for] they [are] unclean, and shall
be unclean unto you. Nevertheless a fountain or
pit, [wherein there is] plenty of water, shall be
clean: but that which toucheth their carcass shall
be unclean. Leviticus 11:32-36
The prohibition on seed planting in the case of seeds that have
become contaminated with the carcasses of unclean animals is
particularly interesting, especially with regard to the phytotoxic
index as recorded by Kenneth MacDonald. Seeds that were exposed to extracts of muscle tissues from unclean animals stunted
the growth of the plants he used in his experiments. Is it possible
that compounds in these animals interfere with genetic expression
or interfere with enzyme activities? More research will have to
be done in order to answer these questions, but nevertheless the
results of the experiments are quite astounding.
And if [any part] of their carcase fall upon any
sowing seed which is to be sown, it [shall be]
clean. But if any water be put upon the seed, and
[any part] of their carcase fall thereon, it [shall
be] unclean unto you. Leviticus 11:37-38
Two further prohibitions in terms of dietary laws are also worthy
of note and these are the prohibition of the eating of blood and fat,
a law that also applied to any stranger among the people. These
laws also must have existed before the Jewish system, because
we find elements of them in the book of Genesis.
But flesh with the life thereof, [which is] the blood
thereof, shall ye not eat. Genesis 9:4
[It shall be] a perpetual statute for your generations

282

6 - Creation to Restoration
throughout all your dwellings, that ye eat neither
fat nor blood. Leviticus 3:17
And whatsoever man [there be] of the house of
Israel, or of the strangers that sojourn among you,
that eateth any manner of blood; I will even set my
face against that soul that eateth blood, and will cut
him off from among his people. Leviticus 17:10
Moreover ye shall eat no manner of blood, [whether
it be] of fowl or of beast, in any of your dwellings.
Whatsoever soul [it be] that eateth any manner
of blood, even that soul shall be cut off from his
people. Leviticus 7:26-27
The prohibition did not only apply to the Old Testament, but was
also applied in the New Testament.
But that we write unto them, that they abstain
from pollutions of idols, and [from] fornication,
and [from] things strangled, and [from] blood.
Acts 15:20
Some argue that the laws regarding clean and unclean were rescinded by Christ when He said:
Not that which goeth into the mouth defileth a
man; but that which cometh out of the mouth, this
defileth a man. Matthew 15:11

Jesus here was not referring to clean or unclean animals,
but to rules and regulations regarding ritual cleansing which the
Pharisees demanded from the Jews. These laws were man-made
and very exacting, so the lesson conveyed in the words of Jesus
was that cleansing of the soul temple was more necessary than
283

The Genesis Conflict


upholding these exacting pharisaical demands. If Jesus had taught
His disciples to disregard the laws regarding clean and unclean as
recorded in the Old Testament then surely Peter would not have
protested so vehemently after receiving the vision of the sheet
filled with unclean animals which he was commanded to eat. His
response was:
But Peter said, Not so, Lord; for I have never eaten
any thing that is common or unclean. Acts 10:14
When he was admonished twice more to eat because he was not
to consider unclean what God had declared to be clean he still did
not purchase unclean foods but wondered what the vision meant.
And the voice [spake] unto him again the second
time, What God hath cleansed, [that] call not thou
common. This was done thrice: and the vessel was
received up again into heaven. Now while Peter
doubted in himself what this vision which he had
seen should mean, behold, the men which were
sent from Cornelius had made enquiry for Simons
house, and stood before the gate. Acts 10:15-17

He sought a meaning for the vision, because he knew that
God would not contradict what had gone out off His mouth before.
The men sent from Cornelius provided him with the answer to his
question and we read his conclusion in the following verses:
While Peter thought on the vision, the Spirit said unto
him, Behold, three men seek thee. Arise therefore,
and get thee down, and go with them, doubting
nothing: for I have sent them. Then Peter went down
to the men which were sent unto him from Cornelius;
and said, Behold, I am he whom ye seek: what [is]
the cause wherefore ye are come? And they said,
284

6 - Creation to Restoration
Cornelius the centurion, a just man, and one that
feareth God, and of good report among all the
nation of the Jews, was warned from God by an
holy angel to send for thee into his house, and to
hear words of thee. Acts 10:19-22

If the Spirit had not prompted Peter to go with the men to
the house of the centurion, he would never have gone, since the
Jews regarded those not of Jewish descent as unclean.
And as Peter was coming in, Cornelius met him,
and fell down at his feet, and worshipped [him].
But Peter took him up, saying, Stand up; I myself
also am a man. And as he talked with him, he
went in, and found many that were come together.
And he said unto them, Ye know how that it is
an unlawful thing for a man that is a Jew to keep
company, or come unto one of another nation; but
God hath shewed me that I should not call any man
common or unclean. Acts 10:25-28
The centurion regarded Peter so highly that he fell at his feet to
worship him, but Peter admonished him not do it, since according to the commandments, only God was worthy of worship.
Moreover, he also explains the meaning of the vision which he had
received. The vision concerned the practice of regarding anyone
other than a Jew unclean, because he says God has shewed me
that I should not call any man common or unclean. The vision of
the sheet filled with unclean animals thus had nothing to do with
the Levitical laws, but concerned human relationships. The gospel
was to be preached to all men and not only to the Jews. Salvation
embraced all of mankind and not only a select few.

There are excellent health reasons for the observance of
the Levitical laws, and the Jews were not alone in observing at

285

The Genesis Conflict


least some of these laws. Islamic laws to this day forbid the eating
of pork, and the method of slaughter is similar to that practiced by
the Jews. In many societies, the eating of pork was prohibited. The
Navahos and the Yakuts of Northern Turkey, as well the Laplanders had prohibitions on the eating of pork, and Iranians were not
allowed to eat fish that did not have both fins and scales. Also the
inhabitants of the South Pacific will not eat eel.33 Similar laws to
the Levitical code existed among the ancient Hindus, and the Code
of Manu (Manu was the Hindu equivalent of Noah) forbade the
eating of all carnivorous birds and all animals that did not have a
cloven hoof. These laws suggest that there was a common origin
to these laws34 and that they reflect the position just after the flood
and can thus not be regarded as strictly Jewish.

As we have seen, the prohibition regarding the consumption
of fat and blood also applied to the New Testament church and there
are good scientific reasons why they should. Fat consumption is associated with numerous health hazards and degenerative diseases ranging
from cardiovascular diseases to cancer. The correlation between fat
consumption and cancer is well established. Blood, on the other hand,
contains metabolic waste products such as ammonia and urea, as well
as secondary metabolites. A further problem is created by the exposure
of certain blood proteins to glucose, which is also carried by the blood.
When these proteins combine with glucose, molecules known as Advanced Glycated End Products (AGEs) are formed. It is thought that
these products are responsible for much of the deterioration that accompanies aging. When these products are present in high concentrations
as in the case of diabetics, the aging process is enhanced. AGEs form
naturally in the blood when glucose levels are elevated for extended
periods of time.35,36 Outside the body, these compounds are formed
when sugar and protein are heated together to produce the browning so coveted by cooks. These compounds, when ingested, enter
in the blood stream and consequently lead to elevated blood AGE
levels.37

When one considers how meat was to be butchered, then

286

6 - Creation to Restoration
the method was a far cry from what is common practice today.
The Talmudic law prescribed the precise methodology. The jugular was severed, allowing the heart to continue pumping out the
maximum quantity of blood, and after the slaughter, the meat was
washed and soaked for half and hour. The meat was then placed
on an inclined grooved board and salted on both sides with course
salt and allowed to remain like this for a further hour while the
salt absorbs the blood. It was then rinsed twice and was then only
ready for cooking.38 This process would leave the meat white
and tasteless, and is obviously the reason why this method is not
practiced generally today.

The categorizing of animals as clean and unclean must
represent a post fall condition. Those animals most affected by
the new circumstances were considered unclean (defiled by circumstances). This does not mean that these animals could not
be associated with as pets and work animals. It simply means
that they were not fit for human consumption. All animals that
occupied trophic levels higher than herbivores were considered
unclean, and numerous herbivores were also considered unclean
in view of their particular mechanisms of dealing with the changed
environment which put them at a physiological disadvantage. If we
now consider modern methods of animal husbandry where even so
called clean animals, such as sheep, cattle in general and poultry
are fed carcass meal, fecal matter, blood meal and bone meal, then
none of these animals could be considered clean anymore. The
eating of animal products in general is not the healthiest lifestyle
and the original diet as proclaimed by God (grains, seeds nuts,
fruits with vegetables added after the fall) in the book of Genesis
is by all scientific standards the most healthful.39 Nations that
follow largely vegetarian lifestyles have far lower incidences of
degenerative diseases and switching to vegetarianism has been
found to benefit even the advanced in age. Moreover, the quality of life can be greatly enhanced and if rightly conducted the
vegetarian lifestyle is extremely satisfying.

287

The Genesis Conflict

The Animal Production Problem



As noted above, it is unlikely that under present circumstances any domesticated food animal can still be considered as
clean, since production strategies have totally altered the status
of these animals. Modern farming techniques totally change the
feeding patterns of animals and force them into categories to
which only unclean animals belong. In order to conserve energy
and to make the production and distribution of animal products a
viable proposition, the science of modern animal husbandry has
been developed into a fine art. The space and energy requirements
associated with free-range farming have forced the industry to
adopt an in-house method of animal production. This, in turn, has
produced its own set of problems and introduced a new dimension
in terms of the hazards involved in feeding the masses.

Modern animal husbandry is geared towards production
and profit more than to any other consideration and the effect on
the well-being of the animals and the ultimate effect on the consumers are merely secondary considerations. Using the chicken
industry as an example, the salient points of modern animal
husbandry strategies can be readily demonstrated. In order to
conserve energy, chickens are cramped together to restrict movement and housed in dimly lighted, ventilated buildings designed
to keep the animal calm and to maximize the energy going into
growth whilst restricting the energy going into thermoregulation
and other vital functions. Laying hens are crowded into tiny cages
where they stay for approximately one year until they are sold to
poorer communities for meat. Broilers and laying hens are fed
abnormal diets such as fishmeal, carcass meal, bone meal as well
as the dried and recycled remains of the slaughtering process. In
this regard, the entrails, other unused body parts, and the feathers are fed to the next generation of chickens, effectively turning
them into cannibals.

288

6 - Creation to Restoration

Figure 6.2 - The world population growth. Three possible projections are presented. The
bottom figure of 7 billion assumes that the average birth rate will drop due to birthcontrol,
the top figure represents no drop and the middle figure of 10 billion may be the most realistic.


In order to prevent the spread of infectious diseases under
these circumstances, the animals are fed subtherapeutic doses of
antibiotics, besides being fed growth stimulants, digestion aiding
enzymes, and a host of disease preventing chemicals. Moreover, the
animals are genetically selected to maximize the features for which
they are required. In the case of broilers, the new breeds that have
now been produced have incredible growth rates and efficiencies
of feed conversion. Under modern husbandry conditions, it takes
only six weeks for a chicken to increase in mass form 35 grams
to 1.5 kilograms. In the past, it would take 17 kilograms of food
to increase the mass of a normal chicken by this amount, whereas
the new breeds achieve this growth on just 3.5 kilograms of feed.
The result is a chicken that grows fast, converts most of what it
eats into muscle tissue, but is compromised in terms of all its other
developmental features.

These chickens have highly compromised immune systems,
poor development of internal organs such as heart, lung and excretory system, and must be raised under virtually sterile conditions to
prevent epidemic diseases and death from handling. Indeed, their

289

The Genesis Conflict


hearts are so poorly developed that they readily die from shock
when stressed. The legacy does not end there, as the cycle of efficiency in feed utilization is filtered down to other animals used for
human consumption.

Piles of chicken manure are processed into feed for cattle
(particularly dairy cattle) and sheep as a cheap form of nitrogen
to be converted by the rumen bacteria into protein. In this way,
not only the nitrogen reserves, but also potentially lethal doses of
growth stimulants and other chemicals are passed down the food
chain to end up eventually in man. Indeed, it is more than likely,
that the great Bovine Spongifore Encephalitis (mad cows disease)
fiasco started in this way. A further legacy of the animal husbandry
industry in general is that, through the standard use of antibiotics,
a new breed of antibiotic bacteria have been produced over time
that are reversing human victories over infectious diseases. New
drug resistant bacteria have been responsible for epidemics of food
poisoning which have left first and third world countries reeling
under the impact. Already bacterial infections of the respiratory
system and diarrhea have been identified as the top two killers in
the world today.

Ecology: A planet in peril



It is evident from what we hear in the media that all is not
well with our planet. The situation is indeed so grave that various
pressure groups have arisen in an attempt to influence governments
to change their policies regarding environmental issues. Scientists
have warned that if drastic measures are not implemented to reverse
industrial damage to the environment, then damage may become
irreversible. Indeed some scientists believe that damage to the
environment is in many cases already irreversible.

To meet the challenge, there have been a number of international earth summits where governments and scientists have
put their heads together to draw up global programmes to avert a
catastrophe. Sadly, most of the agreed upon protocols have either
290

6 - Creation to Restoration
not been implemented or are running way behind schedule. As
early as 1985, the Mediterranean nations set themselves ten
objectives to be reached by 1995 to clean up their environment,
but according to Ljubomir Jeftic, the deputy coordinator of the
Action plan, none of these objectives have been achieved.40

Ecological disasters seem to have multiplied over the
last decades, and each year seems to record either record heat
waves, record cold spells, record rainfalls, record wind speeds,
record depletion of the ozone layer or record levels of air and
aquatic pollutants and their consequences. Already in 1989, Time
Magazine carried an article in which it referred to the year 1988
as: This year the earth spoke, like God warning Noah of the
deluge where they listed the devastating global natural disasters
which had occurred, ranging from the consequences of pollution
to killer hurricanes to monstrous earthquakes that affected various
parts of the world. A statement in the article sums up the inherent
problem which lies at the root cause of the mayhem the world
is experiencing:
Spurred by poverty, population growth, illadvised policies and simple greed, humanity is
at war with the plants and animals that share its
planet. Entire ecosystems are declining and nearly
every habitat is at risk.41

In many cases, human greed and selfishness seem to be the
main cause of the demise and mankind has largely itself to blame.
In the beginning, God gave man dominion over the planet and
when he squandered that privilege, the writing was on the wall.
The prognosis of Scripture is:
Of old You laid the foundation of the earth, And
the heavens are the work of Your hands. They will
perish, but You will endure; Yes they will grow

291

The Genesis Conflict


old like a garment; Like a cloak You will change
them and they will be changed. Psalm 102:25,26
The same sentiment is expressed in the book of Isaiah where
the prophet states:
...The earth will grow old like a garment. And those
who dwell in it will die in like manner. Isaiah 51:6

These texts indicate that the only hope of planetary restoration lies in an intervention from God in the affairs of earth. The
second law of thermodynamics will take its toll eventually and even
mans best efforts will eventually prove futile. The inherent greed,
selfishness and indifference to the needs of others which mankind so
often displays towards others will further undermine all attempts at
salvaging the situation. The state of the planet is in ecological terms
precarious, and a survey of the immediate issues will show that there
is indeed no quick fix solution. Natural phenomena, such as raging
fires, storms, soil erosion, desertification and disease have also played
their part in the deterioration of the planet, but mans impact on the
biosphere has also been profound. Human impact on the biosphere
has affected virtually every level from the atmosphere to the oceans
and even to the deepest ground waters.

Human Impact on the Biosphere



The human population explosion and the impact of expanding technology have altered the delicate balance of our environment.
Carbon dioxide and other pollutants have damaged our atmosphere
and solid pollutants have entered our soils and waters to an alarming extent. In recent years there has consequently been an increase
in global warming, destruction of the ozone layer and profound
changes in the global weather patterns.
The Growing Population: In 1650, the world population stood at 500
million and today it exceeds 6 billion. The birth rates over the last
292

6 - Creation to Restoration
300 years have remained relatively constant and range between 25
and 30 births per thousand people per year, yet the exponential nature of the growth curve means that the rate of increase is enormous
and ever increasing as the population size increases. Better medical
care and sanitation have led to a decrease in the death rate, which
in 1995 stood at 9 deaths per 1000 people. The overall increase in
the population rate thus amounts to a 1.6% increase per year. This
figure looks deceptively small, but would lead to a doubling of the
worlds population in a mere 43 years.

The annual increase of about 90 million people per year (the
current population of Mexico) implies that 250,000 people are being
added to the worlds population every day. At this rate of growth, the
world population could reach 18 billion by the end of the next century
and this has led to international debates on birth control as emphasized
in the UN sponsored Conference on Population held in Cairo in
September 1994. At that meeting, the Roman Catholic Church and
the Islamic world voiced strong opposition to contraceptive birth
control, emphasizing the deep divisions in human viewpoints on
how to control the massive increase in the human population.

The world is, theoretically, capable of sustaining such
a population, but the distribution of know-how and technology
is unfortunately not equal to the task. Third world countries do
not produce enough to sustain themselves, particularly in times
of drought, and the lack of infrastructure coupled with factional
differences lead to difficulties in the distribution of food even if it
should be supplied by affluent countries. In 1950, for every person
living in an industrialized country, there were two people living in
non-industrialized countries. In the year 2020, this ratio will more
than double and is estimated to increase to five. With 85% of the
worlds wealth concentrated in the industrialized nations (Europe,
Former East block countries, Japan, United States, Canada, Australia, and New Zealand) and a 20 times higher standard of living,
it is a matter of grave concern.

Starvation and disease are rampant in undeveloped countries
and it is estimated that 40,000 babies die of starvation each day.
293

The Genesis Conflict


In India, 37% of the population cannot buy enough food to sustain
itself, and in drought stricken areas of the world, the situation is
often beyond comprehension. The age distribution in countries with
rapidly growing populations is a further matter of concern. The bulk
of the population in these countries falls into the infant and juvenile
categories and it is the little ones who suffer most. Clearly, given all
these constraints, the world population is currently already larger
than can be supported with current technologies. Moreover, AIDS
has added a further dimension, leaving whole communities of juveniles without parents or proper supervision because the parents
have died from this disease and this in turn leads to a breakdown
of society.
Atmospheric Change: There are six major categories of atmospheric pollutants: Nitrogen oxides, sulphur oxides, carbon oxides,
suspended particles, volatile organic compounds, and photochemical
oxidants. The United States alone pumps 700,000 metric tons of
atmospheric pollutants into the air every day. The industrial race
for world supremacy has made the air we breath unfit for respiration in many areas of the world. In Russia, the levels of pollutants
that are pumped into the atmosphere are staggering. One city alone
(Nizhni Tagil) pumps 700,000 tons of atmospheric pollutants into
the air per year. Vast quantities of metals, including heavy metals,
are also pumped into the air by metal processing plants in Russia,
resulting in extremely polluted soils in some areas.

In Russias Kola Peninsula, the quantities of metals pumped
into the air are so high as to make even mining of the fall out in the
topsoil a viable proposition. The area around Monchegorsk has been
defined as a technogenic desert. Clemens Reimann, the leader of
the Norwegian team investigating the extent of the pollution comments that every sample of water from streams in the area exceeds
safe limits for drinking water. I would not like to live there, he
says, Everything is dead. There is nothing except a few small birch
trees with yellowing leaves. It is a desert.42 Some results show that
the contamination of moss with nickel is in the order of 100,330
294

6 - Creation to Restoration
parts per million, whereas in British moss the level is only 2.2 parts
per million.43

The death of the vegetation in other Russian industrial zones
has led to vast erosion and desertification leading to a drop in fresh
water reserves. It is estimated that the Aral Sea, the worlds sixth
largest fresh water sea, may not exist in twenty years time considering the rate at which the water levels are dropping. Pollution of
the soils, atmosphere, fresh water resources, and the oceans is not
a local government issue as the whole world is affected sooner or
later. Pollution is not containable, but is distributed through dynamic global circulation patterns of water and air.
Nuclear Power: On April 26, 1986, one of the four reactors of the
Chernobyl nuclear power plant experienced a destructive meltdown. Chernobyl was one of the largest nuclear power plants in
Europe and produced enough power to meet the needs of a relatively
large city. The explosion sent up a plume five kilometers high and
several tons of uranium dioxide fuel were distributed over a wide
area. Over 100 megacuries of radioactivity were released, making
it the largest nuclear accident in history. The band of radioactivity
contaminated a broad band across Europe, stretching from Scandinavia in the north, to Greece in the south. Over 24,000 people
in the immediate area were subjected to serious radiation doses,
and in areas outside the immediate area, in the rest of Europe, it
is estimated that up to 75,000 people will die from cancer caused
by exposure to radiation.44 The direct effect on human lives is not
only measurable in deaths from cancer, but also in the legacy of
hundreds of deformed children born as a consequence of radiation
exposure. Moreover, the soils over vast areas are contaminated with
radiation, making them useless for agriculture.

If the world is to enjoy safe nuclear energy, then it must
learn to not only prevent and control nuclear disasters, but must
also deal with the storage of radioactive wastes and deal with the
threat of international nuclear terrorism. Already in 1990, some

295

The Genesis Conflict


35 nuclear plants were more than 25 years old and not one has been
safely decommissioned.
Carbon Dioxide and Global Warming: The atmosphere consists of
approximately 0.03% carbon dioxide and 0.0002 % methane. These
tiny quantities of so-called greenhouse gases, together with others,
absorb infrared radiation reflected from the earths surface and prevent it from escaping into space. Without greenhouse gases, the earth
would be too cold to sustain life, and with too high a concentration
of these gases, the earth would experience global warming. Both the
concentrations of methane and carbon dioxide are increasing in the
atmosphere as a consequence of mans indiscriminate burning of
fossil fuels. Methane is also added to the atmosphere by ruminants
and sewage works. Acid rain and deforestation have decimated the
worlds forests, which act as traps and reservoirs of carbon dioxide,
thus increasing the chance of global warming. It is estimated that
there will be a 1-5% increase in global warming during the next
century. In figure 6.3, the increase in global temperature and carbon
dioxide levels during the last century are represented.

If this increase in carbon dioxide concentrations of more than
11% in the last 30 years is maintained, then the amount will have
doubled to 702 ppm by the year 2075. An increase of just 3oC to 4oC
in atmospheric temperature will have a profound effect on weather
patterns. Some models predict the melting of polar ice caps and the
flooding of coastal cities, as ocean waters rise by more than 100
metres. Other models predict denser ice and a drop in ocean levels.
Whichever model is accepted, it is evident that extremes in weather
patterns will develop, as is already evidenced by current changes in
weather patterns.

Worldwide, the glaciers are disappearing, the sea level has
risen 20 metres in the last century, and US satellites show that the
rate of rise is on the increase. Fresh water lakes have warmed, and
hot spots have appeared in the oceans leading to intensified El Nio
phenomena. These conditions have led to an unprecedented increase

296

6 - Creation to Restoration

Figure 6.3 - Global warming and Carbon Dioxide increases during the last century.

in windspeeds, violent tropical storms, severe droughts and unheard


of floods in many areas of the world. Since 1960, there has been a
steady increase in massive natural disasters worldwide from storms,
flooding, fires, droughts, mudslides and avalanches. The yearly damage cost in US dollars has increased from 8 billion in 1960 to almost
60 billion in the late 90s.

297

The Genesis Conflict



In February 1995, New Scientist carried an article titled El
Nio goes critical in which the opening paragraph states Whats
happening to the Pacific? We are used to climate causing havoc
around the world - but not every single year. In 1982-83 El Nio
caused damage estimated at 8 billion US dollars. There is a new trend
to these phenomena: This is a new regime. What is happening is unprecedented in the last 100 years says Ants Leetmaa, a climatologist
at the National Meteorological Centre in Camp Springs, Maryland.45
El Nio tends to cause severe storms and flooding, particularly on
the west cost of the American continent, whilst it is responsible for
severe droughts in parts of Australia and the African continent.
Chlorofluorocarbons (CFCs and ozone depletion): CFCs are used
as propellants in aerosol cans, reactants in industrial solvents, ingredients in plastic foams, and coolants in refrigeration equipment.
The presence of these substances in the atmosphere has been linked
to the destruction of the ozone layer and the formation of the ozone
hole over the arctic zones. Ozone absorbs harmful ultraviolet rays
which would cause increases in skin cancer, cataracts, and would
weaken the immune system of animals and humans exposed to
these rays. Also harmed by ultraviolet rays are the vast quantities
of phytoplankton, which sustain the worlds aquatic ecosystems and
represent the largest group of photosynthetic organisms on earth.

In 1992, the leaders of the worlds industrial nations met at
the Earth Summit conference in Brazil and signed a treaty to phase
out the use of CFCs. However, economically hamstrung nations
are finding it hard to adhere to these guidelines. In 1996, both the
northern and the southern hemispheres recorded record depletions
of ozone. In 1996, the hole that was first thought to be confined to
the Antarctic region, stretched over the northern hemisphere with
record low levels of ozone being recorded over Britain.46 The usual
annual ozone hole over Antarctica was also the greatest since it was
first recorded in the 1980s,47 this in spite of the reduction of more
than 30% in production of CFCs since their peak in 1988.

298

6 - Creation to Restoration
Acid Rain: The burning of fossil fuels not only increases the CO2
levels, but also produces sulphur dioxide and nitrogen. In the United
States alone, over 24 million metric tons of sulphur dioxide are
emitted into the atmosphere annually. Most of the sulphur entering
the atmosphere is from power stations (70%) whilst vehicles emit
30% of the nitrogen. Sulphur introduced into the upper atmosphere
combines with water vapour to produce sulphuric acid resulting
in a drop in pH. The pH of normal rain is slightly acidic (between
4.0 and 5.6), but in the industrialized countries of the world the
rain is up to 40 times more acidic than usual. One of the lowest pH
levels recorded was at Pitlochry, Scotland where the level dropped
to 2.4 and in South Africa, the level in some areas drops as low as
2.92. In South Africa, the emission of SO2 is some 220 tons per
kilometre per year in some areas from power stations alone. Acid
rain is associated with respiratory problems in humans and animals,
corrosion of buildings, and the death of trees and animals in fresh
water systems.

Hydrogen ions in acid rain tend to displace essential minerals, such as calcium, potassium and magnesium, which are required
for healthy tree growth. As a result of this leaching, the trees start to
die. In the United States and Europe, more than 7 million hectares
of trees have been lost due to acid rain. The effect in some areas
is devastating and in some countries more than 50% of the forests
have been affected or destroyed by acid rain. A further factor is that
the biomass per acre of spruce has fallen by more than 73%.

Our fresh water systems have been negatively affected by
acid precipitation and the thresholds required for sustaining life
have been crossed in many areas. Even coastal waters are affected
by acid in river runoffs. Lakes and rivers most affected are those
with poor buffering capacities. Due to its leaching capacity, acid rain
causes the introduction of heavy metals such as lead, mercury and
copper into the water systems. Furthermore, aluminium ions become
soluble at a pH of 4.2 and are highly toxic, particularly to fish as
they thicken the mucous layer over the gills and cause suffocation.
Aluminium also reacts with other essential ions such as phosphates,
299

The Genesis Conflict


resulting in their precipitation and loss from the system. In lakes,
phytoplankton is lost at a pH of 5.8, whilst fish disappear at a pH of
4.5. In Norway, fish began to disappear from the lakes in the 1920s
and currently the southern lakes are entirely dead and more than 2000
lakes are without trout. In the northeastern United States and eastern
Canada tens of thousands of lakes are dying as a result of acid rain.
Deforestation: What acid rain is achieving in industrialized countries,
deforestation is achieving in the tropics. With more than half the
worlds population living in the tropics, the serious problems of space
provision, food supply and the provision of household fuel will have
to be overcome if this is still possible at this stage. Many people in the
tropics are engaged in shifting agriculture, which entail the clearing
of an area of forest, its use for agriculture, and then moving on once
the soil has been deprived of its nutrients. Vast areas of forests are
slashed and burnt, and in other areas the timber is indiscriminately
cut and sold to developed countries. One and a half billion people
depend on firewood as their main source of fuel, and particularly in
Africa, the destruction of natural forests for fuel is leading to widespread erosion and desertification.

It is estimated that cutting destroys some 160,000 square
kilometres of forest annually, with an equal area being lost to shifting
agriculture. At this rate, the total destruction of the forests will be
complete in 25 to 30 years. In Sudan alone, some 150 million cubic
metres of wood are used for firewood per year. The dismantling of
tropical forests leaves permanent damage, in view of the delicate nature of the ecosystems involved. Rainforest soils are generally poor,
since the soil minerals have been trapped in the lush growth of the
forests. If these trees are cut and removed or burnt, a large proportion
of these minerals are lost to the area and regeneration of the forest
is virtually impossible. With less than 5% of the worlds rainforests
receiving any form of protection, the devastation will leave a legacy
of loss to the world.

Destruction of the worlds rainforests not only removes

300

6 - Creation to Restoration
one of the worlds prime consumers of CO2, which could retard the
greenhouse effect, but also leads to an unprecedented destruction of
biodiversity. It is estimated that 3.5 million species of organisms exist
on earth, 2.5 million of them are as yet unfound and 95% of them live
in rain forests. Some estimate that at least 100 species go extinct every
day. Its as though the nations of the world decided to burn their
libraries without bothering to see what was in them, says University
of Pennsylvania biologist Daniel Jansen.48
Desertification: Overcultivation, overgrazing, and the destruction of
vegetation due to human need have led to widespread desertification.
Wells and boreholes are sunk to provide water for cattle, and this leads
to further destruction through trampling. Water resources are dwindling
rapidly in areas affected by desertification. In the past, Lake Chad had
an area equivalent to the Caspian Sea (350,000 km2). By 1963, it had
shrunk to an area of 35,000 km2 and currently has an area of less than
20,000 km2. The worlds sixth largest sea, the Aral Sea, is shrinking
so rapidly that it probably wont exist in 20 years time. Worldwide,
the rate of desertification is estimated to be 6 x 106 hectares of land
per year which represents an area about the size of Ireland. It does
not take much imagination to see that this trend cannot long continue
before the now densely populated areas subjected to desertification
will face a toll of human misery unprecedented in history.
Pollution: Pollution of the worlds oceans and fresh water resources
is so widespread that whole ecosystems are collapsing. Waste disposal
by industry and agricultural runoff have wreaked widespread havoc.
Fertilizers used in agriculture are rapidly leached from the soils and
end up in rivers, dams, lakes, and eventually the oceans. The increase
of nutrients is called eutrophication and causes an increase in photosynthetic organisms and leads to algal blooms. At night, photosynthetic
organisms use up oxygen reserves in the water and this can lead to
large scale death of aquatic life including algae and plants. Not only

301

The Genesis Conflict


fertilizers, but pesticides, herbicides and industrial toxins, including heavy metals also impact on ecosystems. These toxins become
concentrated as they pass through the food chain and some have a
direct effect on living organisms. The concentrating process as toxins
accumulate up the food chain is called biological magnification and
is responsible for widespread decimation of animal life on earth.
Moreover, humans who harvest numerous species from the top of the
food chain (particularly marine species) are very prone to biological
magnification. The extent of biological magnification of a toxin such
as DDT is well documented. The concentrating potential of the food
chain can result in several million fold increases in organismic toxic
levels as illustrated in the following example.

Animals accumulate toxins particularly in their fatty tissues,
and when called upon to utilize these fat reserves, these toxins are
released into the bloodstream and can lead to various diseases and
death. It has now been firmly established that the deaths of hundreds
of thousands of marine mammals such as dolphins and seals can be
largely attributed to a lowered immune capacity owing to the immune
system being compromised by the presence of accumulated toxins.
It has been found that even the paint used on the hulls of boats and
ships can add sufficient toxins to the oceans to cause widespread
death of marine life. The paint contains tributyl tin (TBT), which
prevents barnacles from sticking to the hull of vessels. The substance
has been banned for use on small vessels but is still widely used on
large vessels. TBT is probably the most potent toxin deliberately
introduced into the sea.

DDT and its Breakdown Products DDE and DDD

302

Parts per million DDT, DDE, DDD

6 - Creation to Restoration

Water 0.000005
Phyto- and zooplankton 0.04
PRODUCERS & CONSUMERS
Silverside minnow
0.23
HERBIVORES & PLANKTIVORES
Sheephead Minnow
0.94
Pickerel (fish)
1.33
Needlefish
2.07
CARNIVORES

Heron 3.57
Tern 3.91
Herring gull 6.00
SCAVENGER
Fish Hawk 13.8
Merganser (duck) 22.8
TOP CARNIVORES
Cormorant 26.4




The toxin has a very potent effect, and even a few nanograms
in water can cause abnormal development such as female dog whelks
Table 6.4 male organs. However, the immunosuppression capadeveloping
bilities of the toxin could be one of the factors contributing to the
widespread death of dolphins and other marine life. It was found that
marine mammals concentrate TBT in their tissues in concentrations
of up to 10 parts per million.49

There are numerous substances found in the oceans which
are wreaking havoc with marine life and directly impact on humans.
Already in 1953, cats and birds on the island of Minimata in Japan got
the staggers and died. Then humans developed headaches, ataxia,
fatigue, fetal deformities and mental abnormalities. Some 15,000 people were affected and at least 3500 died. A government investigation
showed that the culprit was mercury salts that had been dumped in the
river and had accumulated in the sediments of Minimata Bay. There
the salts had become methylated and converted to methyl mercury,
a highly toxic organic compound. Once this compound had found
its way into the food chain, it was responsible for the symptoms in
humans who consumed the tuna.

The disposal of highly toxic waste has always been a major
headache for industry and governments. Much of this waste is stored
in drums and buried in deep wells or discarded mineshafts. Some of

303

The Genesis Conflict


it is incinerated and a fair proportion is dumped in the sea. Even
if the toxins are dumped in barrels, sooner or later mankind has to
reap the legacy of this indiscriminate dumping. After the Second
World War, tons of chemical weaponry was dumped in the oceans,
and in the North Sea, mustard gas is now leaking from these eroded
containers and affecting marine life.

In the Mediterranean, more than 500 million tons of sewage alone pours into the water. An article in New Scientist states
that: Attempts to save the grossly polluted Mediterranean seem as
doomed as the sea itself. Sewage is only one of the many pollutants
that are destroying this partly enclosed sea. Each year 120,000 tons
of marine oils, 60,000 tons of detergents, 100 tons of mercury, 3800
tons of lead, 1 million tons of crude oil and 3600 tons of phosphates
enter this sea. Thousand of marine mammals have died and are dying
from this pollution. A further problem is that certain weeds such as
Caulepra toxifolia flourish under these conditions and could cause
the total collapse of ecosystems in the area. In 1985, the Mediterranean nations set themselves cleanup goals which were to be achieved
by 1995, but none of these goals have been achieved.50 The fresh
water resources of the world are equally polluted. On the first of
November 1986, the Rhine River, which flows from the Alps to the
North Sea, almost died. The problem started in Switzerland where
a fire had started in a warehouse belonging to the giant chemical
company, Sandoz. By the time the blaze had been contained, 30
tons of mercury and pesticides had washed into the Rhine. Soon
thereafter, for hundreds of kilometres, the water was blanketed with
dead fish, and even the plants started to die. The river became a river
of death and not one drop was fit for use. Only direct and targeted
intervention by the industrialized European nations prevented this
disaster from permanently destroying the delicate ecosystem of this
river, and today the Rhine has largely recovered from the almost
death blow. This type of drama is however, repeated all over the
world, and in many cases, the governments concerned do not have
the resources to deal with the crises as was the case with the River

304

6 - Creation to Restoration
Rhine.

In the former East Block countries, the fresh water systems
are so polluted, that whole river and lake systems have become
sterile. It is not only the surface waters that have become affected,
but the seepage into the underground water systems has affected
these vast reserves as well. The indiscriminate dumping of toxic
waste has left its legacy worldwide. From the industrial landfills in
Germanys industrial areas to the choked sewage drains in Calcutta,
the dumping has reached uncontrollable levels. In Hong Kong alone,
the 49,000 factories dump 1000 tons of plastic within 400 square
miles of dumps per day whilst mines and smelters in former East
block countries are pumping industrial sludge directly into river
systems. To give an idea of the extent of the problem, it is informative to note that in Western Germany alone, up to 50,000 landfills
which threaten underground water supplies have been declared
potentially dangerous. Of late, the rich countries of the world are
ridding themselves of their toxic waste by exporting it to poorer
countries, and in this way, the whole planet has become a target for
hazardous chemical pollution.

The Water and Food Problem



The problems of food production and the utilization of water
go hand in hand. There is simply not enough water to dispose of
all the industrial and other pollutants that todays huge population
produces daily. The worlds fresh water reserves are being overexploited, and in spite of improvements in technology, the amount
of water fit for human consumption and agriculture is rapidly diminished. The world food production is increasing, but in spite of
this trend, the production is falling behind the worlds population
growth as can be seen in the case of grain (Figure 6.4)

305

The Genesis Conflict

.

Figure 6.4
More
people
can
be fedperfrom
than
can with
be total
fed grain
from
- The drop
in grain
production
person plants
since 1975,
compared
51
production
(Data
from
US
Department
of
Agriculture
)
animals, and it is therefore not surprising that some 70% of the
worlds population subsists on a largely vegetarian diet, particularly
in Asian countries and certain areas of Africa. The water and energy
(particularly fossil fuel energy) required for the production of food
for human consumption rises dramatically if animal products are
substituted for plant products. For each calorie of food that appears
on our tables, it has been estimated that it requires 9 calories of energy
to put it there. Only half a calorie was used to produce the food on
the farm and the rest is used to process, package, store, distribute
and cook the food. Grains and other seed products are relatively easy
to store, but animal products tend to spoil and require sophisticated
storage and processing systems. In figure 6.5 the amount of energy
required to produce plant and animal food products is presented, and
in Figure 6.6 the volume of water required to produce this food is
indicated.52

The state of our planet and the future for mankind do indeed
look bleak. The warnings from the scientific community have become louder and more urgent as we enter the twenty-first century.
Mankind seems to be running out of time, and even where solutions
are at hand, natural disasters and the sheer volume of other equally
pressing problems renders us impotent to deal with all these issues
simultaneously. We are caught in an exponential spiral. For those who
believe in divine revelation, there is, however, hope. God predicted
this turn of events and He did not leave us orphans. His promise is

306

6 - Creation to Restoration

Figure 6.5 - Fossil fuel energy required to produce certain agricultural products.

Figure 6.6 - The volume of water required to produce certain foods

307

The Genesis Conflict


one of redemption in Christ and an earth made new. Restored to its
former glory, the earth will become the home of the redeemed, and
there will be no more death, nor crying, nor disease.
And I saw a new heaven and a new earth: for the
first heaven and the first earth were passed away;
and there was no more sea. And I, John, saw the
holy city, new Jerusalem, coming down from God
out of heaven, prepared as a bride adorned for her
husband. And I heard a great voice out of heaven
saying, Behold, the tabernacle of God was with men,
and He will dwell with them, and they shall be His
people and God Himself shall be with them, and be
their God. And God shall wipe away all tears from
their eyes; and there shall be no more death, neither
sorrow, nor crying, neither shall there be any more
pain: for the former things are passed away. And
He that sat upon the throne said, Behold, I make all
things new. And he said unto me, Write: for these
words are true and faithful. Revelation 21:1-5

REFERENCES
Charles Darwin, The Autobiography of Charles Darwin and Selected
letters (New York: Dover Publications, 1958): 249.

1.

Charles Darwin, The essay of 1844, in Darwin for Today: The Essence of his Works (New York: The Viking Press, 1963): 222.
2.

D. L. Lindsay and E. H. Grell, Genetic Variations of Drosophila


Melanogaster, Carnegie Institution of Washington, No. 627 (1967).

3.

4.

Michael Behe, Darwins Black Box (New York: The Free Press, 1996).

Charles Darwin, The Origin of Species, (New York: Heritage Press,


1963).

5.

308

6 - Creation to Restoration
Richard Dawkins, The Eye in a Twinkling, Nature 368 (1994):
690-691.
http://spot.colorado.edu/~cleland/articles/Dawkins.pdf

6.

George C. Williams, Natural Selection: Domains, Levels, and Challenges (New York: Oxford University Press, 1992): 73.
7.

Steve Jones, Almost Like a Whale: The Origin of Species Updated,


(London: Doubleday, 1999).

8.

R. W. Young, The Renewal of Rod and Cone Outer Segments in the


Rhesus Monkey, Journal of Cell Biology 49(2) (1971): 303-318.
9.

Michael F. Land, Animal Eyes with Mirror Optics, Scientific American 239(6) (1978): 88-89

10.

M. Chown, I Spy with my Lobster Eye, New Scientist 150(2025)


(1996): 20.

11.

How Dolphins Hear Without Ears, New Scientist 164(2218) (19992000): 17.

12.

Andrew C. Mason, Michael L. Oshinsky, and Ron R. Hoy, Hyperacute Directional Hearing in a Microscate Auditory System, Nature
410(6829) (2001): 686-690.
http://hoylab.cornell.edu/hoy/mason_oshinsky_hoy2001.pdf
13.

14.

Peter M. Narins, In a Flys Ear, Nature 410(6829) (2001): 644-645.

15.

Daily Telegraph (London, May 26, 1995): 5.

Gerald T. Keusch, Ecology of the Intestinal Tract, Natural History


83(9) (1974): 70-77.
16.

17.

Nature Australia (1999-2000): 5.

Gerald Wheeler, The Cruelty of Nature, Origins 2(1) (1975): 32-41.


http://www.grisda.org/origins/02032.pdf

18.

309

The Genesis Conflict


Jonathan Weiner, The Beak of the Finch (London: Jonathan Cape
Random House, 1994): 17.
19.

Islands of the Vampire Birds, ABC TV (ABC Natural History,


Australia, October 13, 1999).

20.

Lyudmila Trut, Early Canid Domestication: The Farm Fox Experiment, American Scientist 87 (1999): 160-169.
http://www.americanscientist.org/issues/issue.aspx?id=813&y=0&no
=&content=true&page=3&css=print

21.

Labbish Chao, Piranha and New DNA Evidence, Bio-Amazonia


Conservation >http://www.angelfire.com/biz/piranha038/dna.html>,
April 28, 2000.
22.

Labbish Chao, SubFamily Serrasalminae, Bio-Amazonia Conservation >http://www.angelfire.com/biz/piranha038/pg2.html>, April


27, 2000.

23.

S. A. Miller and J. P. Harley, Zoology. 3rd edition (Boston: WCB/


McGraw-Hill, 1996): 654.
24.

David I. Macht, An Experimental Pharmacological Appreciation of


Leviticus XI and Deuteronomy XIV, Bulletin of the History of Medicine, 27(5) (1953): 444-450.

25.

Glen Blix, Unclean or Unhealthy: A Look at the Levitical Prohibition. (Unpublished document written by Prof. Glen Blix, Associate
Professor, Health Promotion and Education, School of Public Health,
Loma Linda University).
26.

David I. Macht, An Experimental Pharmacological Appreciation of


Leviticus XI and Deuteronomy XIV, Bulletin of the History of Medicine, 27(5) (1953): 444-450.

27.

Glen Blix, Unclean or Unhealthy: A Look at the Levitical Prohibition. (Unpublished document written by Prof. Glen Blix, Associate
28.

310

6 - Creation to Restoration
Professor, Health Promotion and Education, School of Public Health,
Loma Linda University).
David I. Macht, An Experimental Pharmacological Appreciation
of Leviticus XI and Deuteronomy XIV, Bulletin of the History of
Medicine, 27(5) (1953): 444-450.
29.

Glen Blix, Unclean or Unhealthy: A Look at the Levitical Prohibition. (Unpublished document written by Prof. Glen Blix, Associate
Professor, Health Promotion and Education, School of Public Health,
Loma Linda University).
30.

David I. Macht, An Experimental Pharmacological Appreciation


of Leviticus XI and Deuteronomy XIV, Bulletin of the History of
Medicine, 27(5) (1953): 444-450.

31.

Glen Blix, Unclean or Unhealthy: A Look at the Levitical Prohibition. (Unpublished document written by Prof. Glen Blix, Associate
Professor, Health Promotion and Education, School of Public Health,
Loma Linda University).
32.

33.

Ibid.

Theodore H. Gaster, The Holy and the Profane: Evolution of Jewish


Folkways (William Morrow and Co. Inc, 1955).

34.

Glen Blix, Unclean or Unhealthy: A Look at the Levitical Prohibition. (Unpublished document written by Prof. Glen Blix, Associate
Professor, Health Promotion and Education, School of Public Health,
Loma Linda University).
35.

A. Cerami et al., Glucose and Aging, Scientific American 256


(1987): 90-96.

36.

T. H. Maugh, Hazards: Browned Foods May Carry Harmful Toxins


(Los Angeles Times, June 10, 1996).
37.

311

The Genesis Conflict


Alfred J. Kolatch, The Jewish Book of Why (New York: Jonathan
David Publishers Limited, 1981).
38.

Walter J. Veith, Diet and Health: Scientific Perspectives (Stuttgart:


Medpharm Publishers, 1998).

39.

40.

New Scientist (February 4, 1995): 29.

41.

Time Magazine (January 2, 1989).

42.

New Scientist (September 28, 1996): 5.

43.

Ibid.

44.

Ibid.

Bernice Wvethrich, El Nio Goes Critical, New Scientist


145(1963) (1992): 32-35.

45.

46.

New Scientist (March 16, 1996).

47.

New Scientist (September 28, 1996).

48.

Time Magazine (January 2, 1989).

49.

New Scientist (September 28, 1996).

50.

New Scientist (February 4, 1995).

51.

Ibid.

K. Arms and P. S. Camp, Biology (Philadelphia: Saunders College


Publishing, 1995).
52.

Bibliography
P. H. Raven and G. B. Johnson, Biology. 4th edition (Wm. C Brown
Publishers, 1996).
New Scientist (January 13, 1996).

312

WRITTEN IN STONE
Archaeology and the Bible

The Genesis account of origins has led to much controversy in the course of history. There have always been those
who took the Bible at its word and those who would question its
claims. The Genesis account of origins has, in particular, been
a bone of contention, and even from within church circles this
battle has taken its toll. Darwin himself was a member of the
clergy, but even long before Darwin, the churches could not find
unanimity on the issue of origins. Many regarded the Biblical
account of origins as allegorical or poetic and would not allow
for a literal interpretation. The doctrines of Higher criticism,
started by the theologians Richard Simon and Dr. Alexander
Geddes in 1678, ripped the heart out of the Scriptures and called
into question the plainest teachings on origins and history. The
so-called higher critics questioned the historic references and
the creation account in the writings of Moses and relegated
these to the realms of mythology. This, of course, had a ripple
effect on perceptions regarding the validity of the Scriptures,
since if Moses was not historically correct, then every further
reference by subsequent prophets and even by Jesus Himself, to
313

The Genesis Conflict


these writings must then also be mythologized. The result was that
faith in the validity of the Scriptures was undermined, and a literal
interpretation of these events was not only questioned, but also
often ridiculed. Questioning the writings of Moses sets a dangerous
precedent, since where does one draw the line in the invalidation
of what is written. As Jesus Himself said,
If you believed Moses you would believe Me, for
he wrote about Me. But since you do not believe
what he wrote, how are you going to believe what
I say? John 5:46,47 NJKV

Today, most churches, including the Vatican, have given
their blessing to the naturalistic origin of life and even Time Magazine carried a caption which read: Vatican Thinking Evolves
The Pope gives his blessing to natural selection though mans soul
remains beyond sciences reach. Even more astounding was the
statement made by the Jesuit, Consolmagno, who in an interview
with the magazine Elm Street in 1999 in their lead article And
Heaven and Nature Sing, responded to the question: Arent
you guys all creationists? by stating that creationism is a 19thcentury Protestant heresy. The ancient Church fathers knew better
than to interpret the Bible that way. The pendulum has surely
swung the other way. In Protestant circles, as well this trend is very
pronounced, and a new wave, termed the New Reformation, is
sweeping the ranks whereby the Biblical accounts are placed on a
par with ancient mythologies. This is not only true for the creation
account, but also for the teachings regarding Jesus Christ Himself.
The virgin birth, the death and the resurrection, and the centrality
of Christ with regard to salvation are mythologized and placed on
a level with ancient Gnostic teachings embracing Babylonian and
Egyptian cult figures.

In spite of the swing of the pendulum of faith in the veracity of the Scriptures, it cannot be denied that the Bible has greatly
influenced the minds of men. It has been loved and hated, criticized
314

7- Written in Stone
and revered. Indeed, millions have suffered torturous deaths rather
than to deny its teachings. Equally as many millions have refused
to believe it! There have also been numerous attempts to destroy
the Scripture off the face of the earth. In the Dark Ages, Bibles
were banned. It was considered a mortal sin to study its pages, and
people were put to death for the crime of possessing a Bible. The
printing presses of Gutenberg were destroyed because they might
put the Scriptures in the hands of common man. All these attempts,
and all the wars fought in the name of religion could, however,
not eradicate the Word. The Historical Critical Method of Biblical
interpretation not only threw doubt on the Genesis accounts, but
the actual existence of the famous Bible characters such as Abraham, Moses and Daniel has also been doubted, and many of the
prophetic writings were attributed to obscure scribes and scholars
of much later periods. It was argued that the amazing prophecies
in the Bible could not have been written by the proposed authors,
since then they would have had the capacity to foretell the future,
and so the writings had to have a later origin, and must have been
written after the events foretold.

In spite of these attacks on the Bible, it has consistently stood
the test of time, and as the science of archaeology blossomed after
the discovery of the Rosetta stone, so the tablets of stone have come
out in support of the words of Scripture. The historical characters
of the Bible that were previously scoffed at were found inscribed
in tablets of stone, and proved to be historical figures. Even the
most improbable events described in Scripture find support in the
numerous discoveries made at ancient archaeological sites. The
Bible invites man to test it.
Despise not prophesyings. Prove all things; hold
fast to that which is good. 1 Thessalonians 5:20, 21

The Bible challenges us to examine its pages and to either
prove or disprove their claims. God claims to be the only One able
to foretell the future. Through the prophet Isaiah, He says,
315

The Genesis Conflict


Produce your cause, saith the Lord, bring forth
your strong reasons ... shew us what shall happen...
declare us things to come. Shew the things that
are to come hereafter, that we may know that ye
are gods ... Isaiah 41:2123
I am God, and there is none like Me, declaring the
end from the beginning! Isaiah 46:9,10
For this test, the Bible lays down some very specific guidelines.
When the word of the prophet shall come to pass,
then shall the prophet be known, that the Lord hath
truly sent him. Jeremiah 28:9
... if the thing follow not, nor come to pass, that is
the thing which the Lord hath not spoken.
Deuteronomy 18:22

More than 50% of the Bible is in the form of prophecy, most
of which has been fulfilled. This alone should be overwhelming
evidence for the authenticity of the Bible, and should encourage
us to trust the yet unfulfilled prophecies (incidentally, it cannot
be the denied that these are written before the events which are
yet to unfold). Nevertheless, a study of the past will enable us to
make informed judgments as to the Scriptural authenticity, and
can strengthen us to believe in the future. Beside the prophetic
writings, the Scriptures contain substantial historical accounts,
many of which were questioned by the critics, but which have
found vindication in the sands of time as unearthed by archaeologists of the past century and a half. Of course, the Bibles main
task is to introduce the author of life and the path to salvation.
Knowledge of science and history cannot save one, but the steady
unfolding of prophecy and the unearthing of the historic record
can strengthen one's faith in the Bible as the Word of God. The
316

7 - Written in Stone
well-known archaeologist, Professor Nelson Glueck was once asked
if any discovery had been made that contradicted the Bible. His
answer may come as a surprise to some:
No, not one! It may be stated categorically that no
archaeological discovery has ever controverted a
Biblical reference. Scores of archaeological findings
have been made which confirm in clear outline or
in exact detail historical statements in the Bible...
The archaeologist today is correcting much of what
the historian said but the archaeologist has never
had to correct anything the Bible has said about these
ancient cities.
Another famous archaeologist, Professor W.F. Albright, said:
During these 15 years, my initially rather skeptical
attitude towards the accuracy of Israelite historical
tradition has suffered repeated jolts, as discovery after
discovery confirmed the historicity of the details which
might reasonably have been considered legendary .
Thanks to modern research we now recognize its (i.e.
the Bibles) substantial historicity. The narratives of
the patriarchs, of Moses and the Exodus, the conquest
of Canaan have all been confirmed and illustrated
to an extent that I should have thought impossible 40
years ago.1

Since it is unbelief in the Genesis account of origins which
has led many to doubt the veracity of the remainder of the Scriptures,
it may be useful to briefly outline some of the amazing discoveries
which archaeologists have made which underscore the authenticity
of the Biblical accounts. Since the Biblical prophecies and historic
accounts are the foundation pillars upon which the authenticity of

317

The Genesis Conflict


the Bible must be measured, and since it is these very pillars that
are questioned by the critics, a brief study of these may throw some
light on the question of the trustworthiness of the Scriptures.

The Bible and History


The Rosetta Stone: For many centuries, the history of ancient civilizations lay buried under sands of time and even the information that
was available could not be deciphered because the ancient languages
and writings were not understood. In Egypt, the inscriptions were
veiled in mystery because the art of reading the hieroglyphics had
been lost. However, this situation was dramatically changed when
Napoleon invaded Egypt in 1798. Shortly afterwards in 1799, one
of his scientists discovered a flat stone with three different languages
on it at a place called Rosetta (its modern name is Rashid). After
careful investigation they discovered that it carried an identical
message in three different languages. At the bottom was Greek, in
the middle Demotic (Egyptian phonetic) and on top hieroglyphics.
Deciphering the ancient writing was a major task and it took a man
by the name of Jean Francois Champollion 22 years to complete
this task. It is thus only for the last 100 years that the mysteries of
ancient civilizations are being unfolded. Today, it is possible to not
only read hieroglyphics, but also the ancient cuneiform writings.
Astoundingly, the ancient relics have succeeded in silencing many
of the Biblical critics and the harmony between Scripture and archaeological findings has shed new light upon these ancient records.
The Ebla Tablets: Prior to the advent of modern archaeology, knowledge of the ancient civilizations was fragmentary
and the only records of kings, kingdoms and wars were those
preserved in ancient manuscripts and in many cases the only
records were those, which were recorded in the Bible. The
Biblical record was often brushed aside as unreliable and
other sources of information were advanced as authentic,
318

7 - Written in Stone
particularly if the records were in conflict with each other. It was
also argued that the Bible was written by unknown scribes and that
much of the information had been lost or changed over time.

Prior to modern archaeological endeavors, names of certain
kingdoms, cities and patriarchs were known only from the Scriptures,
names such as Sodom and Gomorrah, numerous Bible places, and
names of kings and records of their wars, defeats and victories. Bible
critics had a field day with these Biblical records until some major
archaeological discoveries shook the world and vindicated the Bible
at every turn. Pet theories had to be laid aside as the names of these
hitherto unknown characters were found inscribed in stone. A major
discovery was made as recently as 1964, when the ancient records
of the kingdom of Ebla were discovered at Tel Mardikh near the
present city of Idleb in Syria.

Excavation were carried out at Tel Mardikh by a team of
archaeologists headed by Prof. Paul Mathia of the University of
Rome, which resulted in the one of the most significant discoveries in
modern Archaeology. The so-called Ebla tablets (the official records
of the kingdom of Ebla) were discovered and date from 2300-2400
BC. These records are recorded on over 14,000 clay tablets and
contain records of Sodom and Gomorrah, previously only known
from the Bible records. Moreover, regarding these cities and the
circumstances surrounding their destruction, archaeologists made
a tremendous breakthrough when they excavated and identified the
cave where they believed Lot lived after he fled from the destruction
of these cities. Moreover, the sites of ancient Sodom and Gomorrah,
called Bab ed Dhra and Nuweira have also been identified.

Besides references to Sodom and Gomorrah, the Ebla tablets
list numerous Bible places, the names of Esau, Abraham, Israel, Sinai and Jerusalem. The name of Ebla is also recorded on the temple
walls at Karnak in the Valley of the Kings and it is known that it
was destroyed twice, once by Sargon I in 2300 BC and then by the
Hittites in 1000 BC. Incidentally, before the science of archaeology
unearthed numerous records and artifacts from the Hittite Kingdom,

319

The Genesis Conflict


even its very existence was doubted, since the only record of this
once mighty kingdom that even dominated Egypt for a while was
to be found in the pages of Scripture.
The Dead Sea Scrolls: One of the most amazing discoveries of our
time must be the discovery of the Dead Sea Scrolls in the Qumran
caves. The scrolls were written by the Essenes who lived there in
the time of Christ, and some believe that they had an influence on
John the Baptist and even Jesus himself. However, this is highly
unlikely, since Gnostic elements formed part of their belief systems
and besides the canonical writings the Dead Sea Scrolls also include
many apocryphal writings. The Dead Sea scrolls are largely kept in
the museums of the world, with the bulk of the scrolls being housed
in Israel at the Rockefeller and Shrine of the Book Museums but
some significant portions are also housed in the Archaeological
Museum of Jordan, which is built on the citadel in Amman where
the ancient Ammon Rabba, the once Ammonite capital where Uriah
the Hittite died, stood.

Qumran lies northwest of the Dead Sea between Jericho and
Ain Geddi, and the ruins of the town itself have been excavated
in order to throw light on the community involved with the scrolls.
The Essenes were a Jewish sect tainted with Gnosticism and Hellenism who wanted to bring forth the Messiah and who practiced
scrupulous ritual purity. The sect probably never had more than
some 4000 members and was spread over the former province of
Syro-Palestine but they preferred to live in isolated communities.
They formed secret societies within towns, the best known of these
being the community of Damascus. The Essenes were wiped out
during the period of Roman repression at the time of the Jewish
revolt in 69-70 AD.

The discovery of the scrolls at Qumran was made as late as
1947, when Tmireh Bedouin found jars containing scrolls in the
caves and clefts of the cliff face at Qumran. This discovery was extremely fortuitous and was made when a young Bedouin by the name
of Mohammed adh-Dhib lost a sheep and threw stones into the caves
320

7 - Written in Stone
in order to see if it had perchance strayed into one of these recesses.
One of the stones broke the clay jar in which scrolls were contained
and the sound of breaking pottery attracted his attention.

Eleven caves yielded ten complete scrolls in the form of
rectangles of kidskin sewn together and rolled up. The pottery jars in
which they were stored were long and narrow and were specifically
made for the purpose of storage of the scrolls. Beside the complete
scrolls, 600 further manuscripts have been found in 50 broken jars,
but most of these were badly damaged by decay, rats and insects.
However, thousands (more than 100 000) of small fragments were
salvaged and are still being pieced together.

The scrolls are a veritable library and were written in Hebrew,
Aramaic and Greek. Portions of every book in the Old Testament,
with the exception of the book of Esther have been found. Also
found were the records of the Essenes and the eschatological texts
titled Conduct of the war waged by the Sons of Light against the
Sons of Darkness, the Rule and the Hyms. Some copper scrolls
(up to 2.4 meters long) were also found engraved with Aramaic
square script giving details of treasure troves hidden in Palestine.
However all attempts to find these so-called treasures have failed
to date. Moreover, some believe that the copper scrolls do not form
part of the original scrolls but date from a later period coinciding
with the second Jewish revolt in 135 AD.

It was thought by some that these 2000-year-old manuscripts
would show that the Bible had changed significantly over time and
that its reliability was therefore questionable. The discovery of the
complete Isaiah scroll showed, however, that the scrolls contents
was exactly the same as the present book of Isaiah in the Bible.
Moreover, the fragments of the scrolls of the book of Daniel show
that the great prophesies of Daniel could not have been written after
the events, and also the dialect of the Aramaic used in these scrolls
dates from the Persian period and authentically dates the writing of
the Daniel scrolls (part of which were written in Hebrew and parts
in Aramaic) to the Persian period. This totally eliminates the critics

321

The Genesis Conflict


arguments that these books date from a later period.
Chronology of nations: The critics often doubt Biblical chronology, but even ancient secular writers support the Scriptural chronology. One such example relates to the founding of the original
Babylon which Biblical chronology dates to a time period after
the division of the earth in the time of Peleg.

The Hebrew word for earth which is used in this text is
erets, which can also mean nation. In other words, it could be
interpreted as the division into nations at the tower of Babel event
after the flood, and the date is to be sought in the time of Peleg
around 2247 BC. This date is not a date which Biblical critics
would accept; however, when Alexander the Great defeated Darius at Gaugmela near Arbela, he also entered Babylon. Writings
covering 1013 years of astronomical observation were handed to
him by the Chaldeans which they claimed dated from the founding of Babylon. This would place the founding of Babylon in
2234 BC which is exactly in line with the Biblical chronology.
This was documented by De Caelo, by Simplicius, a Latin writer
in the 6th century AD, and Porphery (who was an anti-Christian
Greek philosopher, c. 234-305 AD) supports the same date.2

Constantinus Manasses, a Byzantine chronicler, wrote
that the Egyptian state lasted 1663 years. Counting back from
the conquest of Egypt in 526 BC by Cambyses, king of Persia,
this would give a date for the founding of Egypt of 2188 BC, 60
years after the birth of Peleg. The origin of the Greek nation is
given by Eusebius of Caesarea to be 2089 BC, when the king
of the city of Sicyon began to reign some 160 years after Peleg.
These secular dates confirm the veracity of the Biblical chronology and also place Babylon first, followed by Egypt and then
Greece, exactly as it is described in the Bible. Moreover, since
the dawn of Archaeology, researchers have drastically reduced
the chronologies of these ancient cultures, as more and more
information is unearthed. Kings that in the past were placed in
chronological sequence by secular historians have now been
found to have been co-rulers (father and sons controlling various
322

7 - Written in Stone
provinces) and the times allocated to these various dynasties have
thus had to be reduced, bringing them more and more into line with
the Biblical chronology.

Egypt

The Bible stories concerning the relationship of Gods people with Egypt have been subject to much ridicule. Higher critics
regarded such stories as the account of Joseph who became second
in command in all of Egypt, and the Exodus, as belonging to the
realms of mythology. The stones of archaeology were silent witnesses to the dramas of the past, and it was only after 1799, when
the Rosetta stone was discovered that the ancient records could be
deciphered. Concerning the story of Joseph, it is known that the
Semitic Hyksos overthrew the Egyptian dynasties from the year
1780 BC to 1545 BC, a period of just over a quarter of a century.
During this time, it would have been possible for a Semite to reach
the position of prestige occupied by Joseph. In recent times, frescoes
have been found in Egyptian tombs depicting fat and thin cows,
and inscriptions have been found referring to seven lean and seven
opulent years, making this Biblical story more than just a myth. The
inscriptions found at the first cataract of the Nile, which support the
story of Joseph, read:
I collected corn I was watchful in times of
sowing. And when famine arose lasting many years,
I distributed corn. The Nile has not overflowed
for a period of seven yearsHerbage fails The
storehouses were built All that was in them has
been consumed.3
The Exodus and the Eighteenth Dynasty: One of the most exciting stories in Scripture, however, concerns that of the exodus. The
323

The Genesis Conflict


exodus must have caused a major upheaval in Egypt, yet the records
(other than the Biblical one) are strangely silent as to these events.
Moreover, there is considerable controversy as to the date of the
exodus. The Bible texts requiring a date in the middle of the 15th
century BC and archaeological data suggesting a much later date
in the 13th century. Raamses II is often associated with the exodus
because of Biblical references to the building of the City of Raamses
(also spelt Rameses) by the Israelites, but these references do not
seem to refer to the city located at Tanis, and the Bible also does
not employ the name Raamses with the same chronological specificity employed in Egyptian texts. None of the other circumstances
regarding the exodus seem to apply to the Raamses period either.
One of the most detailed accounts of the Biblical chronology and
the events surrounding the exodus are to be found in an article
written by Prof. William Shea in the International Standard Bible
Encyclopedia, revised edition. This article also provides substantive
evidence for associating the exodus with the Eighteenth Dynasty
of the earlier 15th century.4

The main Biblical evidence for the 15th century date is
the text which is found in 1 Kings, where the date of the exodus
is given with reference to Solomons reign. In this text, even the
month is given, and given that Solomon reigned from 971-931 BC,
this would date the exodus ca. 1450.
And it came to pass in the four hundred and
eightieth year after the children of Israel were
come out of the land of Egypt, in the fourth year
of Solomons reign over Israel, in the month Zif,
which [is] the second month, that he began to build
the house of the Lord. 1 Kings 6:1

The correlation of the Egyptian data with this date must
also be based on sound criteria, and in the case of the eighteenth
Dynasty, this is indeed the case. The dates and chronology of this

324

7 - Written in Stone
dynasty have been established by using Sothic cycle dates, new
moon dates and the highest-numbered regnal years for each of the
kings of this period.5 In the light of the fact that Egyptian records
of defeats and embarrassments are largely lacking from their writings, the deciphering of events can be likened to a detective story,
and the true history has to be gleaned from what is written between
the lines.

According to the Biblical chronology, Moses was born in
1530 BC, and this date would place his birth in time when Tutmoses
I reigned, since he ruled from 1532 to 1508 BC. Tutmoses I was the
third pharaoh of the eighteenth dynasty, the first being Amoses (the
moon is born) 1570 to 1553 BC, followed by Amenhotep (Amun is
pleased) 1553 to 1532 BC, who was the father of Tutmoses I. The
pharaoh who must have issued the decree that all the sons born to
the Israelites were to be thrown into the river, but that girls were
permitted to live (Exodus 1:22), must thus have been Tutmoses
I. Aaron, the brother of Moses was born in 1533 BC, just prior
to the reign of Tutmoses I, and he had thus escaped the vicious
decree. Tutmoses I fits the bill very well for a pharaoh who would
have issued such a harsh decree. Prior to this pharaohs time, the
18th Dynasty had defeated the Hyksos and it was only in the time
of Tutmoses I that the kingdom really became established, and he
enlarged the kingdom until it encompassed the territory stretching
from the Euphrates to the Fifth Cataract of the Nile. His character
also fits that of the pharaoh of the death decree, since he was known
for his harshness, and he even hung the head of his executed Nubian
enemy from the bow of his barge. The hieroglyphic records also
confirm that Tutmoses I was the first pharaoh to introduce Semitic
slave labor. Moreover, he had a daughter named Hatshepsut who
would later play a prominent role, even becoming pharaoh herself.
This very daughter could thus have been the princess that found
the baby Moses in the basket floating on the Nile, and she could
also have been instrumental in persuading her father not only to
save Moses but also to rescind his death decree on the Hebrew
baby boys. In Exodus, we read about the pharaoh that subjected
325

The Genesis Conflict


the Israelites to slave labor and also proclaimed the death decree
regarding the sons born to the Israelites.
And Joseph died, and all his brethren, and all
that generation. And the children of Israel were
fruitful, and increased abundantly, and multiplied,
and waxed exceeding mighty; and the land was
filled with them. Now there arose up a new king
over Egypt, which knew not Joseph. And he
said unto his people, Behold, the people of the
children of Israel are more and mightier than
we: Come on, let us deal wisely with them; lest
they multiply, and it come to pass, that, when
there falleth out any war, they join also unto our
enemies, and fight against us, and so get them up
out of the land. Therefore they did set over them
taskmasters to afflict them with their burdens.
And they built for Pharaoh treasure cities, Pithom
and Raamses. Exodus 1:6-11
Then Pharaoh gave this order to all his people:
Every boy that is born, you must throw into the
river, but let every girl live. Exodus 1:22 NKJV

If Moses became the adopted stepson of Hatshepsut, then
he would have been trained in all the wisdom of the Egyptians and
theoretically he could also have been in line for the throne, which
is suggested in the Bible and also in the writings of Josephus.
And Moses was learned in all the wisdom of the
Egyptians, and was mighty in words and in deeds.
Acts 7:22
By faith Moses, when he was come to years,
refused to be called the son of Pharaohs daughter;

326

7 - Written in Stone
Choosing rather to suffer affliction with the
people of God, than to enjoy the pleasures of sin
for a season. Hebrews 11:24,25
The pharaoh succeeding Tutmoses I could thus theoretically have
been Moses, but he refused the throne as suggested in Hebrews
11:24. The reason for his refusal can be sought in his religion,
since he was nursed by his real mother. He was also trained in
the Hebrew religion, but to become pharaoh he would have had
to adopt the Egyptian polytheistic religion, which he refused,
preferring to suffer affliction with his own people. This could
explain why Tutmoses II, who was the husband of Hatshepsut,
became the next pharaoh. But he died after just four years on the
throne. Hatshepsut herself ruled as pharaoh from 1504-1482 BC,
and as co-regent she had Tutmoses III (an extramarital son of her
husband Tutmoses II), who also commenced his rule at the same
time as Hatshepsut. Tutmoses III ruled from 1504-1450 BC, and
the date of his death coincides exactly with that of the Exodus.
This situation makes for an interesting scenario, since the two co
rulers seem to have been in conflict with each other. Tutmoses III
began to assert himself in the latter part of Hatshepsuts reign,
and in 1488 BC, the last reference to Senmut, Hatshepsuts
prime minister is recorded. He could have been deposed to give
Tutmoses III full control of the throne. Tutmoses III eventually
became the most powerful pharaoh of all time and he was also
called the Napoleon of Egypt.

In 1488 BC, after 16 years of co-rulership, not only was
the prime minister of Hatshepsut deposed of, but also all official
documentation concerning Hatshepsut herself ceased. Why? Is
it possible that she was ostracized for sympathizing with the Israelites, or could she even have changed her religious views and
leaned towards monotheism? Hatshepsut was a powerful ruler,
and she was not deposed in 1488 BC, but six years later in 1482
BC, she and all her officials were finally murdered.

In ancient times, regents were also considered gods, and

327

The Genesis Conflict


kingship and religion worked in unison with each other. The pagan
priesthood had a powerful and influential position in the courts of
kings, and a change of religion would have met with great opposition. Tutmoses III was not only pharaoh, but he was a powerful
religious figure as well. Under Tutmoses III, the Guidebook to the
Netherworld, the so-called Amduat, which presents the Egyptian
view of the underworld, was formulated, and it first appears in
his royal tomb.6 This guidebook can be likened to the Egyptian
Bible, and it is still a much-revered document in occult circles
today. Is it possible that this pharaoh, who is considered to be the
father of occultism, could have been the very pharaoh that was
to clash with the monotheistic religion of the Hebrews?

During her reign, Hatshepsut was a creative builder and
she erected many temples throughout Egypt. She was also known
for establishing trade links with distant countries. Her mortuary
temple, Deir el Bahri, also reveals some interesting secrets. In this
temple and at Karnak, the reliefs of Hatshepsut have been chiseled
out of the walls, as if the memory of her was to be obliterated
from history. Some murals of her still exist, but these date from
earlier periods where she was still associated with the Egyptian
deities. One such mural shows her drinking milk from the holy
cow Hathor.

The Bible states that Moses fled Egypt because he feared
the wrath of pharaoh after he killed an Egyptian overseer.
And when he was full forty years old, it came into
his heart to visit his brethren the children of Israel.
And seeing one of them suffer wrong, he defended
him, and avenged him that was oppressed, and
smote the Egyptian: For he supposed his brethren
would have understood how that God by his hand
would deliver them: but they understood not.
Acts 7:23-25
According to Biblical chronology, Moses fled Egypt forty years
328

7 - Written in Stone
after his birth in 1490 BC (Remember, we have to calculate backwards, as we are dealing with the time before Christ). Exodus 2:15
tells us about pharaohs reaction:
When pharaoh heard of this [the killing of an
Egyptian], he tried to kill Moses, but Moses fled from
pharaoh, and went to live in Midian. Exodus 2:15

Now, from which pharaoh did he flee, since there were two
ruling at that time? The obvious conclusion would be that he fled
from the wrath of Tutmoses III. The escape of Moses could further
have fomented the hatred that this pharaoh felt for Hatshepsut, but
it took two more years for him to depose her and a further six before
she was finally eradicated. Hatshepsut thus died whilst Moses was in
exile in Midian. It was here in Midian of Sinai that the Lord revealed
Himself to Moses. Moses heard about the death of Hatshepsut while
he was in exile, and her death is recorded in his writings.
And it came to pass in process of time, that the king
of Egypt died: and the children of Israel sighed by
reason of the bondage, and they cried, and their
cry came up unto God by reason of the bondage.
Exodus 2:23

The death of Hatshepsut must have removed the last vestige
of protection that the people of Israel had and their burdens of bondage must have been increased greatly under the rule of Tutmoses
III who was now the sole regent. Moses had great compassion for
his people, as is evident from the beautiful Psalm which he wrote
during his exile.
Return, O Lord, how long? and let it repent thee
concerning thy servants. O satisfy us early with thy
mercy; that we may rejoice and be glad all our days.

329

The Genesis Conflict


Make us glad according to the days wherein thou
hast afflicted us, and the years wherein we have
seen evil. Let thy work appear unto thy servants,
and thy glory unto their children. And let the beauty
of the Lord our God be upon us: and establish thou
the work of our hands upon us; yea, the work of our
hands establish thou it. Psalm 90:13-17

The Bible records how pharaoh suppressed the children of
Israel in the most cruel fashion. It is no wonder that Moses feared
this pharaoh who was also responsible for the assassination of his
stepmother Hatshepsut, and it is understandable that he was reluctant
to return to Egypt and to face his former enemy who was now the
sole regent in Egypt. Since this pharaoh was also the father of the
Egyptian religious writings concerning the underworld and militarily speaking the most powerful of all the pharaohs that had ruled in
Egypt, he would suit the bill perfectly with regard to a clash between
truth and error. Also the clash between the priesthood of Egypt and
the God of Israel would make sense, since it would represent a clash
between sorcery and faith.

It was thus in the year 1450 BC that God told Moses to go
back to Egypt and tell Tutmoses III: Let my people go!, but Tutmoses III replied haughtily.
...Who is the Lord, that I should obey him and let
Israel go? I do not know the Lord and I will not let
Israel go. Exodus 5:2

Gods answer to this stubborn refusal was to send the plagues
in order to humble him and to lead the Egyptians to repentance. He also
demonstrated His superiority over the Egyptian deities. For instance,
they worshipped the Nile and called it Hapi and Iru, but their Nile god
was turned into blood. They also worshipped insects, such as the dung
beetle as manifestations of god (a form of pantheism), but during the

330

7 - Written in Stone
third and fourth plagues insects were turned against them. They
worshipped cattle such as cows (a system still practiced in eastern
religions today), but during the fifth plague these beasts all died.
In the final plague, all the first born of Egypt died, their own cruelty was turned against them and they were at the receiving end
of the same decrees that pharaohs had dared to utter. However,
God being a compassionate God, provided a way out and any
Egyptian that sought refuge amongst the children of Israel could
be saved from this destruction just as the children of Israel were
spared. The children of Israel themselves were subject the same
requirements, and they were also only spared from the plague if
they painted the blood of the Passover lamb on the doorposts of
their dwellings. Only those were saved on that fateful day who
had placed themselves under the protection of the blood of the
Passover lamb.

The greatest miracle of antiquity took place when God led
His two million redeemed slaves through the waters of the Red
Sea. The Bible also gives us the exact date when the Israelites
celebrated their first Passover. It was the 14th day of the Abib,
later called Nisan, which corresponds with the month of March.
Three days later they passed through the Red sea. This brings
us to March 17, 1450 BC.

The date of the death of Tutmoses III is exactly in line
with the recorded date of the exodus in 1450 BC. According to
the chronology in 1 Kings 6:1, the exodus, as we have seen, took
place on the 17th of March 1450 BC. The Bible tells us that the
pharaoh then ruling (Tutmoses III) followed the Israelites through
the Red Sea, and that he was killed in the process and this date
can be verified independently by the Egyptian writings.

Breasted, the famous Egyptologist, studied the biography
of Tutmoses III written by Amenemhab who wrote:
Lo, the king completes his lifetime of many years,
splendid in valour, in might and triumph: from
year 1 to 54.
331

The Genesis Conflict


Calculating from 1504 to 1450, a reign of 54 years, brings us precisely to the date of the Exodus. Amenemhab also mentions the
month and the day of his death:
The last day of the third month of the second
season...He mounted to heaven, he joined the sun:
the divine limbs mingled with him who begat him.
According to Breasted, this translates to the 17th of March 1450 BC.
There are no references to his mode of death in the Egyptian writings, but none need to be expected, since this would be contrary to
Egyptian propaganda, which could not admit to such misfortune,
particularly since, in the theology of kingship, the pharaoh was
regarded as a god, the incarnation of Horus. If this pharaoh died in
the Red Sea, together with his entire army, then it is possible that his
body was not recovered, but there is a mummy in the Cairo Museum
which bears his name. This mummy of Tutmoses III in the Cairo
museum was, however, examined by two Egyptologists, Harris and
Weeks in 1973 and found to be a mummy of a young man in his
forties, whereas Tutmoses III must have been much older.7

Egyptians had a way of disguising their embarrassments. This
pharaoh was probably never recovered from the Red Sea, and to hide
this fact from posterity, a fake mummy was put in his place. To further
support this argument, there is more circumstantial evidence that can be
gleaned from the eighteenth dynasty. The next pharaoh after Tutmoses
III was his son Amenothep II who previously was co-ruler together with
his father. The record tells us that he became co-ruler of Egypt with
his father in 1453 BC, and was crowned as the sole ruler of Egypt in
June 1450 BC. Now if his father died in March 1450, why did he only
take over the reigns in June of that year? The reason is that he was not
in Egypt at the time of the exodus, but he was suppressing a revolt in
Syro-Palestine with the bulk of the Egyptian army and only returned to
Egypt in June of 1450 BC. Upon his return, he apparently defaced many
Egyptian monuments and this act needs an explanation. The Bible tells

332

7 - Written in Stone
us that all the first-born in Egypt died in the last plague. On returning to Egypt, he would thus have found not only the Israelites gone,
but also he would have found his father dead, and his first-born son
killed in the plague, and this could explain his anger. On his arrival at
Memphis he was so bitter that he decapitated a few Semitic prisoners
of war (Amenemhab records the beheading of seven kings of Tikshi)
from Syro-Palestine and displayed their heads on the walls of Karnack.
Moreover, he probably made an example of these captives in order to
discourage any further revolts, particularly since all the Israelites had
defied the Egyptian authority and had also left Egypt.

The fact that Amenhotep II was on a campaign in SyroPalestine could also explain why Moses confronted Tutmoses III
in the Delta region and not in the capital city of the kings which
is in the south of Egypt. Tutmoses III probably accompanied his
son to the north of Egypt and sent him on the campaign whilst he
stayed in the delta region to await his return. Moreover, the revolt
in Syro-Palestine could be one of the reasons why he refused to let
the Israelites go. Also, the location and circumstances concerned
has impact on the route of the exodus, which took the long route
rather than the direct road to Canaan. In Exodus 13:17 a possible
reason (beside the lessons of trust that had to learnt on the way) for
the chosen route is given.
And it came to pass, when Pharaoh had let the people
go, that God led them not [through] the way of the
land of the Philistines, although that was near;
for God said, Lest peradventure the people repent
when they see war, and they return to Egypt: But
God led the people about, [through] the way of
the wilderness of the Red sea: and the children of
Israel went up harnessed out of the land of Egypt.
Exodus 13:17-18

What war is this text talking about? The most likely explanation is that they would have faced Amenhotep II with his army
333

The Genesis Conflict


who was returning south, had they ventured along the shorter route.
God thus led His people on a detour through the Sinai Desert to
the Promised Land in order to avoid a bloody confrontation. Also
very unusual is the Egyptian text which is associated with the
end of this pharaohs reign where he expresses his hatred for the
Semites as well as referring to magicians, which could reflect the
contest between the magicians of Egypt and Moses.8

The next pharaoh to rule Egypt was Tutmoses IV, who
was the second born son of Amenhotep II. According to succession rights, the first-born and heir apparent should have become
pharaoh. To explain this apparent anomaly, there is an inscription on the Stela between the legs of the Sphinx (The Sphinx
represented the Egyptian god Harmachis), which tells the story
of how the second-born son became pharaoh in the place of the
first-born. Apparently, Tutmoses IV was resting between the legs
of the Sphinx after returning from a hunting expedition, when he
heard a voice telling him to clear the sand from between the legs
of the Sphinx, and the Sphinx would see to it that he, rather than
the first-born, would be pharaoh. This is an unlikely story, and a
further demonstration of attempts to cloud the issue, so that the
embarrassment of the tenth plague should not be made public to
the descendants.
The Amarna Period: Events as dramatic as the exodus and the
awesome demonstration of the power of God in the outpouring of
the ten plagues must have left their mark in Egypt. There could be
no denying that the God of Israel was superior in power to all the
gods of Egypt that had been humiliated during this contest. One
wonders why the record is so silent regarding the impact of these
events; or is there hidden between the lines of recorded Egyptian
history any indication of a change of heart in that once mighty nation? Yes there is; monotheistic worship did not die with the death
of Hatshepsut, but during the Amarna Period of the eighteenth
dynasty, monotheism again surfaced in Egypt. The pharaoh after
Tutmoses IV was Amenhotep III, the son of Tutmoses IV. We will
334

7 - Written in Stone
never know the full extent of what happened in the minds of these
pharaohs, but Tutmoses IV had witnessed the entire contest and
had ascended the throne because his brother had died in the plague.
These issues must have left their mark on that family, because there
is to be found a dramatic shift in the religion of Egypt during the
reign of his son Amenhotep III.

Amenhotep III left Karnack and built his palace on the
western side of the Nile. The biography of this pharaoh shows that
he began to move away from the worship of Amun as the most
prominent god in the Egyptian pantheon of gods, and that from this
time period the name of Aten, the symbol of the unseen Creator
God, became more prominent. During the reign of his son, Amenhotep IV (the name still contains the reference to the god Amun as
the controlling god in his life), the religion of Egypt shifted from
the worship of Amun to that of Aten. Atenism was the worship of
the one Creator God. The symbol of the sun and its rays was used
to describe Atens care for mankind. The sun was not worshipped
in Atenism, but served merely as a symbol. Amenhotep IV, however, changed his name to Akhenaten, which implies a change of
religion, in that Amun was no longer his god but Aten. His wife
was the famous Nefertiti, which means maiden of joy.

Not only did he change his name, but also he moved away
from Thebes where all the Egyptian gods were worshipped and
built a new capital and a new center of worship to the north called
Akhetaten which today is called Tel-el-Amarna. This site is most
interesting, since it was here where the Amarna tablets with their
cuneiform inscriptions were found which contained pleas for help
from the kings of Palestine to come and rescue them from the invading Habiru (Hebrews), a further vindication of the truthfulness of
the Scriptural historic records. Akhetaten, which means the Horizon
of Aten, thus became the new capital where monotheism replaced
the Egyptian pantheon of gods. But again this shift produced strife,
and history shows that this new religious emphasis was eradicated
by force. Just as in the case of Hatshepsut, Akhenaten and his

335

The Genesis Conflict


wife were murdered and archaeologists are only recently piecing
this history together. Akhenaten left an astounding legacy behind
and one scholar by the name of Lionel Casson says he was the
sole pharaoh in Egypts history to boast the distinction of an intellectual. Under his influence, Egyptian culture experienced a period
of realism. Statues of this pharaoh and his family were no longer
depicted as larger than life, but portrayed him with all his defects,
and his wife and children were also portrayed in a loving bonding
relationship with the pharaoh.

Akhenatens theology was in conflict with the traditional
Egyptian belief and he broke away from all the old traditions.
Whilst all the previous pharaohs built their tombs on the western
side of the Nile, Akhenaten built his tomb on the eastern side.
Archaeologists also excavated a beautiful hymn, which he wrote
concerning the Creator and His creation. What is so amazing
about this hymn is the fact that 17 lines correspond perfectly with
17 lines of Psalm 104, a psalm written by Moses in honor of the
Creator God and this strongly suggests that his sympathies lay with
the God of Israel. Moreover, Akhenaten introduced a new word
in Egypt called Maat, which means truth, and in all the murals
of him and his family he chose to display the beauty of family
relationships rather than material achievements. In one engraving,
Akhenaten and his wife are shown hugging and kissing the first
three of his six daughters, Meritaten, Meketaten and Ankesenpaten.
All the names also end in Aten in honor of his God, but after
the murder of Akhenaten and his wife Nefertiti, the names of his
children revert to Amun, which again implies a reversal to the old
form of religion.

One of Akhenatens daughters, Ankensenpaaten, was engaged to a young man by the name of Tutankaten. Upon the death of
Akhenaten, Tutankaten was to become the next pharaoh. However,
his change of name to Tutankamun indicates that his continued reign
was subject to the change of his religion. The greatest archaeological finds concern this pharaoh and tell the story of a splendid reign
of short duration. The question one might ask is whether it was
336

7 - Written in Stone
worth giving up the truth for the sake of earthly glory. The defacing
of the statues associated with the reign of Akhenaten again demonstrates the hatred and rivalry between idolatry and the worship of
the Creator God.

Tutankaten, which means 'in the living image of Aten',
changed his name to Tutankamun, which means 'in the living image
of Amun', but the history of his short reign is still poorly understood
and some scholars believe he was also murdered. His famous tomb
was discovered in the Valley of the Kings on November 25, 1922
when Howard Carter and Lord Carnarvon were the first to gaze
upon the most incredible burial treasures ever discovered. Most
of these treasures are today housed in the Cairo Museum. What is
really astounding is that there are two royal thrones amongst these
treasures, which tell the story of a change of religion and heart. One
of these portrays Egyptian polytheism, and the other is his famous
monotheistic throne, which still reflects the symbols of Atenism. At
this stage he was still called Tutankaten, meaning 'in the living image of Aten', and his wife, the daughter of Akhenaten and Nefertiti,
was still called Ankensenpaaten before her name also changed to
Ankensenamum.

The story of the 18th Dynasty is a vivid reminder of the
conflict between truth and error. The veracity of the Bible may be
doubted by some, but the history recorded in its pages is verified by
what archaeologists have been able to glean from the stones of time.

The Fall of Jericho



The fall a Jericho is another of those amazing Bible stories,
which are so often greeted with incredulity. According to the Scriptural record the walls of Jericho came tumbling down without human
intervention. After excavations carried out in the 1950s, the British
archaeologist Kathleen Kenyon concluded:
It is a sad fact that the town walls of the late Bronze
337

The Genesis Conflict


Age, within which falls the period of Jericho,
therefore, has thrown no light on the walls of Jericho
of which the destruction is so vividly described in
the Book of Joshua.9,10
In spite of this conclusion, the evidence that has been mounting
suggests that conclusions of Kenyon were premature. Firstly, her
date was not in line with Biblical chronology and it appears that the
destruction took place around 1400 BC.11 The tell (mound containing the remains of ancient cities) contains evidence that Jericho had
tremendous walls, just as Moses had told the children of Israel the
walls of the enemies would be (Deuteronomy 9:1). Excavations show
that the walls of Jericho consisted of a retaining wall some four to
five meters high and on top of that there was a further wall built of
mud brick approximately two meters thick and up to eight meters
high. A similar wall was situated at the crest of the embankment 14
meters above the base of the first wall. These were formidable walls,
and according to the records of the German archaeological teams,
the population of Jericho lived not only within the inner walls, but
also lived on the embankment between the inner and the outer wall.12
The city also had a spring and according to Joshua 3:15, the harvest
had been gathered, so the people of Jericho were well equipped to
handle a siege.

The work of Kenyon was concentrated on the west end of
the city where she reported piles of bricks reaching nearly the top
of the lower wall, and these probably came from the top wall. The
bricks are thus evidence of a fallen city wall. Again, according to the
Bible, Rahabs house formed part of the wall and it was promised
that this house would be spared (Joshua 2:12-21; 6:17, 22-23) and
that she and her family would be spared. Now it is interesting, that
the German excavation team of 1907-1909 found that a short stretch
of the wall on the northern side did not fall as did the rest, and that
a portion was still standing to a height of over two meters, and what
is more, there were houses built up against the wall.13 Excavations
have thus shown that the Israelites could have entered the city after
the collapse of the inner wall and brick outer wall which then formed
338

7 - Written in Stone
a natural ramp against the outer retaining wall. The invaders then
climbed up and over the ramp into the city.
So the people shouted when [the priests] blew with
the trumpets: and it came to pass, when the people
heard the sound of the trumpet, and the people
shouted with a great shout, that the wall fell down
flat, so that the people went up into the city, every
man straight before him, and they took the city.
Joshua 6:20

According to Joshua 6:24, the Israelites then burned the
city and archaeology has verified this fact as well. Excavations
that have been carried out on the east side of the city show an
extensive layer of ash and debris approximately one meter thick.
Kenyon writes:
The destruction was complete. Walls and floors
blackened or reddened by fire, and every room
was filled with fallen brick, timbers, and household
utensils; in most rooms the fallen debris was burnt,
but the collapse of the walls of the eastern rooms
seems to have taken place before they were affected
by the fire.14

Moreover, many storage jars full of grain were found in the
ruins, which is most unusual, as this would have been considered
plunder by any invading army. Not only does this confirm the Bible
statements regarding the harvest, but also confirms that plunder was
not taken, according to the command of Joshua. These extraordinary
findings once again confirm the veracity of the Bible by proving
that a heavily fortified city with an abundance of food and water
fell suddenly to the invading Israelites, and that the city was burnt
without being plundered exactly as described in the Bible.

339

The Genesis Conflict

The Bible and Prophecy



The science of archaeology is not only confirming historic
data, but also the ancient Biblical prophecies regarding the kingdoms and cities of antiquity have been shown to be absolutely
accurate. The trustworthiness of all the fulfilled prophecies in the
Bible underscores the trustworthiness of the prophecies that need
yet to be fulfilled, and provides a foundation upon which to build
one's faith. Some of the ancient prophecies are amazing, and yet
they have been fulfilled to the letter. In fact, one is filled with a sense
of awe when tracing the events foretold in the annals of history.
Let us briefly look at three ancient prophecies to demonstrate this
point, those regarding Babylon, Tyre, and Petra.
Babylon: In 689 BC, the Assyrian king Sennacherib ruthlessly
destroyed Babylon, but the Assyrian empire eventually came to an
end when Nabopolasser, along with his son Nebuchadnezzar and
Cyaxares, the Median ruler of Ecbatana defeated them. It was Nebuchadnezzar (Nabu-kudurri-ussur) who had the dream described in
Daniel 2, and he was to become one of the most powerful rulers
of antiquity, but for 2600 years virtually all the knowledge about
this man was obtained from the Bible and the writings of Josephus.
In 1956, however, the Babylonian Chronicle was discovered describing the events of the first 11 years of his reign. In 605 BC,
he defeated the Egyptians and the rest of the Assyrian army at
Carchemish on the upper Euphrates River. He then conquered the
rest of Syro-Palestine, and Jerusalem surrendered to him in 605 BC
in which year he also took the Jewish hostages, including Daniel
and his three friends, to Babylon. Jerusalem was, however, rebellious, and Nebuchadnezzar punished it again in 596 BC, and on this
occasion he took the prophet Ezekiel along with 10,000 citizens as
well as the king captive to Babylon and in 586 BC Jerusalem was
finally destroyed after a siege of two years.

The dream described in Daniel 2, which brought Nebuchad-

340

7 - Written in Stone
nezzar face to face with the omnipotence of God, and Babylon
had every opportunity to acquaint itself with the Creator God, but
eventually they rejected the light that they had been privileged
to receive. According to the Scriptures, Nebuchadnezzar himself
finally did accept that God controlled the destiny of nations, but
initially he challenged the prophecy that the head of gold (the
kingdom of Babylon) would be replaced by another kingdom.
In defiance of the prophecy, he built an image that was made of
gold from head to foot in 593 BC. A further reason for enforcing
the worship of his image can be gleaned from a clay tablet that
was translated and published in 1956. It tells of a serious mutiny
that erupted in Nebuchadnezzars army in December 594 BC and
states: He slew many of his own army. His own hand captured
his enemy. His decision to summon the officials to the dedication of his image could have been triggered by this revolt. One
also wonders how he felt when Daniels three friends refused to
bow down to the image that the king had erected and were thrown
into the fiery furnace at his command only to be protected by the
one that looked like the Son of God.
He answered and said, Lo, I see four men loose,
walking in the midst of the fire, and they have no
hurt; and the form of the fourth is like the Son of
God. Daniel 3:25
No wonder he was induced to proclaim:
[Then] Nebuchadnezzar spake, and said, Blessed
[be] the God of Shadrach, Meshach, and
Abednego, who hath sent his angel, and delivered
his servants that trusted in him, and have changed
the kings word, and yielded their bodies, that
they might not serve nor worship any god, except
their own God. Daniel 3:28

341

The Genesis Conflict



The Bible also tells the story of Nebuchadnezzars insanity when he ate straw like an ox, and critics of the Scriptures
had a field day with these verses. However, the symptoms of his
disease as described in the Bible are consistent with those of the
disease called boantrophy, the ox-syndrome. Now it is fascinating that a clay tablet has been found which is now housed in the
British Museum and which supports the Biblical claims. It was
translated in 1975 and says that his life appeared of no value to
him . He does not love son and daughter Family and clan
do not exist. The Bible is an amazing book and contains untold
treasures for those who seek. The happy ending to the story of
the life of Nebuchadnezzar is that the Bible states that the king
personally accepted God. However, the same cannot be said for
Babylon as a whole, since it stubbornly refused to acknowledge the
God of the Hebrews in spite of all the manifestations of His power
and majesty.

The name Babylon is derived from BAB-ILU The portal
of the gods, and in a sense it thus portrays a means of access to the
gods that is contrary to Gods prescribed plan of salvation. Access
is granted through the system and not by faith in Jesus Christ. It is
a system where salvation by works replaces salvation by faith. To
add to the confusion (which is also implied in the name Babylon),
the Babylonians believed in a pantheon of gods thus providing
more than one intercessor, which also makes the ministry of Jesus
of non-effect. Two hundred years ago, scholars doubted whether
Babylon ever existed, and the only record could be found in the
Bible. Higher critics used the story of Babylon, and what they
called its non-historic kings, to disseminate Scripture. However,
in 1898, Babylon was suddenly discovered and excavations started.

We know today that it was one of the first cities in the
world, and indeed, founded by Nimrod, greatgrandson of Noah
(Genesis 10:10,11). Archaeologists have found his name on many
inscriptions and tablets, while a massive stone head of Nimrod has
been excavated near Calah on the Tigris River. The Bible tells the
story of the tower of Babel and how the language of mankind was
342

7 - Written in Stone
confused there. Archaeologists have found that the inhabitants of
ancient Mesopotamia had a popular habit of building towers (ziggurats), and almost every city of importance had at least one. The
temple Tower of Babylon was the highest and largest of all, being
91 meters high and built in seven stages. At one site, the foundations
and a few steps of the stairway may still be seen at what is now
considered to be the most probable location of the Tower of Babel.
Moreover, it is interesting to note that, according to the Scriptures,
the tower was built of brick and asphalt (Gen. 11:3, Hebrew), and
this is the very building material found in the buildings of Babylon.

For 1400 years, the city of Babylon grew in importance and,
in 626 BC, it became the capital of the Babylonian empire. In the
time of Nebuchadnezzar II, it reached its peak, and was the wonder
of the ancient world! It was 18 kilometers in circumference, with
26metre wide double walls towering 62 meters high. It was a
magnificent sight, the external brickwork of buildings being glazed
and of different colors. The outer walls were yellow, the gates
were blue, the palaces were rosered and the temples were white
with golden domes. Reliefs of bulls, dragons and lions decorated
many walls and gates and the famous Hanging Gardens, which
Nebuchadnezzar had built especially for his wife Amuhea from
Ecbatana, was one of the Seven Wonders of the World. The city
was also regarded as the greatest religious center of the world, and
the area called the Esagila had 53 temples, 955 small sanctuaries,
and 384 street altars. The temple tower of Etemenanki rose to a
height of 300 meters and was the most famous temple in the East.

We know today that ancient Babylon was a center of advanced science, art, culture, and industry. Then appeared upon the
scene the Hebrew prophets Isaiah and Jeremiah who predicted her
utter destruction.
And Babylon, the glory of kingdoms, the beauty
of the Chaldees excellency shall be as when God
overthrew Sodom and Gomorrah. Isaiah 13:19

343

The Genesis Conflict


And Babylon shall become heaps, a dwellingplace
for dragons, and astonishment, and a hissing, without
an inhabitant, desolate forever. Jeremiah 51:37,26

These amazing prophecies are all the more astounding because of the location of Babylon - at the very center of economic
trade routes of that time. Destruction of a city might have been plausible, but that it would never be rebuilt to be inhabited again seemed
far-fetched. This prophetic claim should be easily challenged, and
indeed has been over the ages. Yet the prophecy stands to this very
day. A further point is that Babylon was extremely wealthy, but the
prophet Jeremiah predicted that these treasures would be robbed,
and that all who robbed her would be satisfied (Jeremiah 50:10).
To read her history is to read the fulfillment of the prophecy. Cyrus
the Median took mammoth treasures, Xerxes the Persian took huge
quantities of gold, Alexander the Great of Greece plundered what
was left, fulfilling these prophecies to the letter. The City would thus
face total destruction, would never be inhabited and would be totally
plundered. In harmony with this prophecy Sir George Rawlinson
wrote of the: "absolute loss of inhabitants and he goes on to say:
Babylon soon became, and has for ages been, an
absolute desert Captain Mignan was accompanied
by six Arabs completely armed, but he could
not induce them to remain towards night, from
apprehension of evil spirits. It is impossible to
eradicate this idea from the minds of these people.15
The explorer Henry Layard wrote:
Shapeless heaps of rubbish cover for many an acre
the face of the land a naked and hideous waste.
Owls start from the scanty thickets, and the foul
jackal skulks through the furrows.16

344

7 - Written in Stone
Babylon was never again inhabited, just as the Bible predicted, and
the archaeological findings that were made in its ruins testify to the
validity of the Scriptures.
Tyre: The city of Tyre was located in Phoenicia and was the wealthiest and most powerful coastal city of antiquity. Tyre was located
on the mainland, but about one kilometre off the mainland there
used to be an island that the Phoenicians also used as a harbour.
Tyre was the maritime equivalent of Babylon. It was a major city,
and Carthage, a rival of Rome, was only a colony of Tyre. The
Greek name, Phoenicia, is related to one of its principal exports, a
purplecoloured material called Phoinix, meaning purple or crimson.
The people who lived here called themselves Kenaani hence they
were Canaanites. Cuneiform records reveal that the Phoenicians
called Tyre-Ushu, the Greeks however called it Palaityros. The
earliest reference to Tyre in contemporary historical sources is to be
found in the Tell elAmarna tablets of the 14th century BC, which
contain letters written by Milki, the governor of Tyre, to pharaoh
Akhenaten of Egypt.

Tyre has an amazing history which stands as a memorial to
Biblical prophecy. The prophet Ezekiel wrote a powerful reprimand
against this city and predicted an unusual end to its glory. The city
was well known for its idolatry and licentious worship, which included the offering of human sacrifices to their gods, of which Baal
was the principal deity. They also worshipped the patron goddess of
sexual love, called Ashtoreth. These deities were also worshipped by
the other nations of antiquity, but under different names. Ashtoreth,
for example, was named Aphrodite by the Greeks and the Babylonians called her Ishtar from whence the present day feast of Easter is
derived. The Phoenicians also sacrificed to the god Moloch, a cruel
deity who required that human sacrifices were to be burned alive in
order to appease him.

In his lament against Tyre, the prophet Ezekiel uses the cruel
king of Tyre as a type of Satan and his kingdom. In typology, there

345

The Genesis Conflict


is enacted an object lesson of a greater reality. For example, the
Hebrew sacrificial system required the sacrifice of a lamb (the type
of the greater reality), which in turn represented the Messiah who
would come to die in the place of the repentant sinner (the Messiah
is the greater reality, the antitype, to which the lamb points). In
the prophecy of Ezekiel, the literal ruler of Tyre becomes a type
or example of the antitypical ruler of this world, who is Satan.

While Tyre was at the height of her power and wealth and
prestige, the prophet Ezekiel wrote this startling prophecy from
Babylon in the year 592 BC.
And they shall destroy the walls of Tyrus, and
break down her towers: I will also scrape her dust
from her, and make her like the top of a rock. It
shall be [a place for] the spreading of nets in
the midst of the sea: for I have spoken [it], saith
the Lord God: and it shall become a spoil to the
nations. And they shall make a spoil of thy
riches, and make a prey of thy merchandise: and
they shall break down thy walls, and destroy thy
pleasant houses: and they shall lay thy stones and
thy timber and thy dust in the midst of the water.
And I will make thee like the top of a rock: thou
shalt be [a place] to spread nets upon; thou shalt
be built no more: for I the Lord have spoken [it],
saith the Lord God.
Ezekiel 26:4,5, 12,14

The prediction of destruction of Tyre could have been
plausible in the sense that all the cities of antiquity were eventually
destroyed by wars or natural disasters, but the prophecy that Tyre
would be thrown into the midst of the sea, and its former location
be scraped like the top of a rock seemed more than implausible.
Considering the wealth and power of the Phoenicians, it is not surprising that they ignored the prophecy, yet these prophecies were
346

7 - Written in Stone
fulfilled to the letter. Ancient sites, such as Baalbek, in the vicinity
of Tyre reveal that the buildings and particularly the temples of the
Phoenicians were impressive and even colossal, and from this, one
can deduce that Tyre, the principle city, must have been even more
impressive. The probability of any power succeeding to scrape the
city as clean as the top of a rock and to throw the entire city into the
sea seemed ridiculous. How was this prophecy of the destruction of
Tyre fulfilled?

The clay tablets discovered at ancient Babylon tell us that
Nebuchadnezzar of Babylon besieged the city in 583 BC, but the
siege lasted some 13 years before he could destroy the city. The
inhabitants of Tyre, however, escaped to the nearby 140-acre island
and built a new city on the island. Nebuchadnezzar then fulfilled
only the first part of the prophecy by rendering the city to ruins.
The prophet Daniel, who was a contemporary of the prophet Ezekiel, predicted that the MedoPersians would overthrow Babylon.
This happened in 539 BC, but the ruins of ancient Tyre still lay on
the original mainland site for two andahalf centuries, as a mute
contradiction of the Bible.

When Alexander the Great conquered the Medo-Persian
Empire in three successive battles, the first of which were the battles of Granicus in 334 BC and at Issus in 333 BC. The speed of
his conquests so intimidated the other regions that they surrendered
to his army before he even engaged them. The new island city of
Tyre, however, resisted his advances. Frustrated by their efforts,
Alexander ordered his troops to build a causeway to the island by
throwing the ancient ruins of mainland Tyre into the midst of the
sea, and using the dust to create a way for his troops, thus fulfilling
the prophecy that Tyre would be thrown into the midst of the sea.
The historian Meyer writes:
Alexander the Great, after a most memorable siege
captured the city of Tyre, and reduced it to ruins in
BC 332. She never recovered from the blow. The

347

The Genesis Conflict


larger part of the site of the once great city is now
bare as the top of a rock; a place where the few
fishermen who still frequent the spot spread their
nets to dry.17
The scraped rocks and sunken causeway of ancient Tyre declare
with emphasis to this generation that the Bible is more than just an
ordinary book!
Petra: Petra is the Greek word for rock. In the heart of Mount
Seir, halfway between the Dead Sea and the Gulf of Aqaba, there
is a trapezoidal valley surrounded on all sides by very steep rocky
cliffs, with a few narrow gorges leading inside. In this valley, the
city of Petra was built. Its Bible name was Sela. The earliest
inhabitants of this area were the Horites, or Hurrians. Later, Esau,
the brother of Jacob, settled in the territory south of the Dead Sea,
and his descendants, the Edomites, gradually replaced the Hurrians.
The Edomites lived here when Israel came from Egypt during the
Exodus about 1445 BC.

About 400 BC, the Arabian Nabataeans drove out the Edomites. These people made Petra their capital and controlled the
most important trade routes between the East and the West. Caravans
passing through this territory had to pay taxes to the Nabataeans,
who in this way became very wealthy enabling them to build beautiful palaces, temples, theatres and tombs hewn out of solid rock in
their capital city. In later centuries, caravans followed other routes
between the Orient and Europe. Traffic through Nabataean territory
dried up, Petra became deserted and forgotten, and for centuries it
was a legendary city, and all the references in Scripture were considered by higher critics to be figments of the imagination. Once more
they ridiculed and claimed the nonexistence of Petra as proof for the
unreliability of Scripture. However, in the year 1812, Burckhardt,
disguised as an Arabian sheik, discovered the lost city and when
he published his report, it seemed almost unbelievable that such a

348

7 - Written in Stone
picturesque place could have existed just 161 kilometres south of
Jerusalem without being known. Yet the city was still occupied in
the time of Christ, since Hulda, the daughter of king Aretas who
lived here during the time of Christ is the woman who was married
to Herod Antipas who divorced her in order to marry Herodias, his
brother Phillips wife.

Because of the unstable Middle Eastern political situation,
visits to Petra were made virtually impossible, and only in recent
years has this ancient city become readily accessible to tourists. Biblical descriptions of Petra speak of lofty places, and the confidence
of its inhabitants. Yet the prophets Obadiah and Jeremiah predicted
that the city would lose its power and become uninhabited.
The vision of Obadiah. Thus saith the Lord God
concerning Edom; We have heard a rumour from
the Lord, and an ambassador is sent among the
heathen, Arise ye, and let us rise up against her in
battle. Behold, I have made thee small among the
heathen: thou art greatly despised. The pride of thine
heart hath deceived thee, thou that dwellest in the clefts
of the rock, whose habitation [is] high; that saith in
his heart, Who shall bring me down to the ground?
Though thou exalt [thyself] as the eagle, and though
thou set thy nest among the stars, thence will I bring
thee down, saith the Lord. Obadiah 1-4
Thy terribleness hath deceived thee, [and] the pride
of thine heart, O thou that dwellest in the clefts of
the rock, that holdest the height of the hill: though
thou shouldest make thy nest as high as the eagle,
I will bring thee down from thence, saith the Lord.
Also Edom shall be a desolation: every one that
goeth by it shall be astonished, and shall hiss at all
the plagues thereof. As in the overthrow of Sodom

349

The Genesis Conflict


and Gomorrah and the neighbour [cities] thereof,
saith the Lord, no man shall abide there, neither shall
a son of man dwell in it. Jeremiah 49:16-18

Petra, a city hewn out of solid rock, is one of the most magnificent ancient cities in the world today, yet it is uninhabited. As one
enters through the narrow 1.2 kilometer gorge that the Arabs call, Es
Siq, the first view that confronts one is that of the beautiful temple,
carved out of solid rock, called El Khazneh Farun. The urn on top of
this temple was thought to contain some of the treasures of Egypt,
but no evidence to this effect has been found. Petra boasts a beautiful
amphitheater which seats 5000 people and just above the top seats
there are tombs hewn out of the rock, because the Edomites believed
that they could witness the theatre events after their death. Petra is
built along two deep valleys, called Wadi Farasa and Wadi Thugra
with magnificent dwellings, places of worship and tombs hewn out
of the sheer sides of the rock-faces lining these valleys. There were
also ruins of buildings in the wider sections of the valleys that were
constructed in the normal way, including homes and temples such
as the temple to Isis.

Why did God predict the demise of the inhabitants of Petra? For the answer, one must look into the rituals and practices of
these people. The main place of worship, the Jabel-AibbAtuf, is
the bestpreserved high place in all the Bible lands. The object of
worship here was not God, but the sun, and as part of their worship
they offered human sacrifices! Close by, two obelisks may be seen
which were sun pillars of fertility. The two at Petra represent the
gods of Dushara and el Uzza. Regarding such pillars, God told the
Israelites that they had to destroy their sacred pillars when they
come to Canaan. (Exodus 23:24), the reason being that they represented the beams of light of pagan sun worship and were phallic
symbols which were connected to the fertility rites of these systems
of worship. An integral part of these rites was the offering of human
sacrifices, which also included the sacrifice of young virgins in order

350

7 - Written in Stone
to appease the sun god and to ensure future fertility. At Petra, the
hill of sacrifice is called Um el Bayyarah, and ruins dating back
to the time of the Edomites, descendants of Esau, have been excavated on the summit.

Contrary to the Biblical claims, some propose that only
animal sacrifices were offered at such high places, but archaeology
has revealed remains of numerous human sacrifices associated
with sacred pillars on high places such as found Gezer in Israel.
Just below the cultic pillars at Gezer, archaeologists discovered
several caves filled with ash and bones of men, women, children
and infants that had been sacrificed. It was because of these and
other abominable practices that God instructed Israel on their entry
into Canaan after the exodus, to destroy the high places of the
heathen. Because of the pagan vices and immoral rites practiced
there, the finger of prophecy forecast the downfall and entire
destruction of cities like Petra.
Egypt shall be a desolation, and Edom shall be
a desolate wilderness, for the violence [against]
the children of Judah, because they have shed
innocent blood in their land. But Judah shall
dwell for ever, and Jerusalem from generation to
generation.
Joel 3:19-20
And say unto it, Thus saith the Lord God; Behold,
O mount Seir, I [am] against thee, and I will
stretch out mine hand against thee, and I will make
thee most desolate. I will lay thy cities waste, and
thou shalt be desolate, and thou shalt know that I
[am] the Lord. Ezekiel 35:3,4

From the top of Jaball-Madbah, looking across the valley,
a white stone is visible which, according to tradition, is the site
where Aaron the high priest of Israel is buried. In a sense, two
351

The Genesis Conflict


religious systems meet here at Petra, the one relying on eternal life
through one's fertility and sacrifices of one's own merits, and the
other relying on the blood of the lamb. The story of Petra bears
a deep spiritual meaning which can serve as an object lesson for
us today. Petra represents the rock of self-reliance, hewn out by
human hands, to create dwellings of safety. The Edomites were
the descendants of Esau, the brother of Jacob, who chose rather to
sell his birthright than to inherit the blessing of his father. In type,
Esau thus represents those who would rather forego the blessings
of eternal life and rely on their own merits than to submit to the
sanctifying power of God. In a literal sense, Esau and Jacob then
represent the Edomites and Israelites. But in a spiritual sense they
represent the saved and the lost. In Genesis 25:34 we read that
Esau despised his birthright, which means that he rejected the
spiritual responsibilities of the birthright.

Jacob, on the other hand, was himself no angel, since he
deceived his father by claiming to be Esau in order to receive the
blessings of the birthright which was reserved for Esau, the firstborn. Jacob thus represents sinful man with his deceptive nature.
Jacob, however felt remorse for his sin, and at Bethel, God gave
Jacob a dream after he fled from the wrath of Esau. The dream
recorded in Genesis 28:12 provided a solution for his problem, but
the solution lay outside himself and his own self-reliance.
And he dreamed, and behold a ladder set up on
the earth, and the top of it reached to heaven: and
behold the angels of God ascending and descending
on it. Genesis 28:12

The ladder, of course, is a symbol of Christ as we read in
the New Testament:
And he saith unto him, Verily, verily, I say unto you,
Hereafter ye shall see heaven open, and the angels

352

7 - Written in Stone
of God ascending and descending upon the Son
of man. John 1:51

His own merits could not bridge the gulf between sin and
righteousness, but God provided a way out. By repentance and
dependence on the merits of Christ all sinners can be reconciled
with God. Just as Jacob wrestled with the angel one evening at
the Jabok River just before returning to his homeland to face
Esau, so we have to wrestle with our sinful nature, and it is only
by clinging to Christ as Jacob clung to the angel that we can
find peace. After this event, Jacobs name was changed to Israel
because he had struggled with God and found forgiveness. Jacob
fell upon the rock and was broken; his salvation lay in the Rock
of Ages. The rocks of Petra represent the rock of self-reliance
and those who choose this rock will eventually be crushed. No
human sacrifice will suffice to eradicate sin or change the heart:
But if we walk in the light, as he is in the light, we
have fellowship one with another, and the blood
of Jesus Christ his Son cleanseth us from all sin.
1 John 1:7
Standing on Petras high place with the colorful ruins of the city
below, one can hear the voice of its desolate silence declaring
that Gods prophetic word never fails!

353

The Genesis Conflict

REFERENCES
William Foxwell Albright, History, Archaeology and Christian
Humanism (New York: McGraw-Hill Book Company, 1964).

1.

Larry Pierce, In the Days of Peleg, Creation (22)(1) (1999):


46-49.
http://www.answersingenesis.org/articles/cm/v22/n1/peleg
2.

3.

Archeology and the Bible: 305-306.

William H. Shea, Exodus, Date of the, International Standard


Bible Encyclopedia. Revised edition (Grand Rapids, Eerdmans,
1982): 230-238.
4.

5.

Ibid.

D. Kessler, The Political History of the Eighteenth to Twentieth


Dynasties, in Egypt: World of the Pharaohs. Eds. R. Schulz and
M. Seidel (Kln: Knemann Publishers, 2004): 144.

6.

James E. Harris and Kent R. Weeks, X-Raying the Pharaohs


(Charles Scribners Sons, 1978).

7.

Alan H. Gardiner, Egypt of the Pharaohs (New York: Oxford


University Press, 1966).

K. M. Kenyon, Digging up Jericho (London: Ernest Benn, 1957):


261-62.

9.

10.

Bryant Wood, The Walls of Jericho, Creation 21(2) (1999): 36-40.

B. G. Wood, Did the Israelites Conquer Jericho? Biblical Archaeology Review 16(2) (1990): 44-58.
11.

354

7 - Written in Stone
13.

Ibid.

14.

Bryant Wood, The Walls of Jericho, Creation 21(2) (1999): 36-40.

15.

Sir George Rawlinson, Travels: 235.

Sir Austen Henry Layard, Discoveries Among the Ruins of Ninevah


and Babylon (New York, Harper & Brothers, 1871).
16.

17.

Ernst Meyer, Ancient History: 121.

355

The Genesis Conflict

356

STONES THAT SPEAK


Ancient writings
Figure 8.1a) The famous Rosetta stone
8.1a
in the British Museum. This stone was
found in 1799 during
the Napoleon archaeological expedition to
Egypt. Jean Francois
Champollion took 22
years to decipher the
hieroglyphics, and by
September 14, 1822 he
could read the names
of pharaohs. He also
discovered that the
Coptic language of
Christian Egypt was an adaptation of the Greek alphabet and
was a form of the language of ancient Egypt. This set the stage
for the deciphering of the ancient writings. Egyptian words were
written with a mixture of sound and picture signs and by the

357

The Genesis Conflict


8.1b

8.1c

death of Champollion in 1832, the groundwork for understanding


the Egyptian language had been laid. (8.1b - 8.1d) Excavation site
at Tel Mardick where the Ebla tablets were found containing the
official records of the kingdom of Ebla. These tablets (8.1d) are
now largely housed in the museum at Idlib, Syria and contain the
names of ancient Bible places and names of Biblical personalities
previously only known from the Bible. Since the deciphering of

358

8 - Stones That Speak


8.1d

ancient cuneiform writings, these


once silent stones are now confirming the veracity of the Bible in
our age. (8.1e-8.1f) The Dead Sea
Scrolls. One of the original jars
in which the scrolls were housed

8.1e

and a fragment of one of the


scrolls currently housed in the
museum at Citadel Ammon
Rabba in Jordan.
8.1f

359

The Genesis Conflict

The 18th Dynasty of Egypt and the Exodus


Hatshepsut
Figure 8.2a) Obelisks
of Tutmoses I (the father of Hatshepsut) and
Hatshepsut at Karnak,
the temple of Amun-Re.
Tutmoses I had these
two obelisks erected and
originally they probably
had gilded tips.
(8.2b & 8.2c) The Temple of Hatshepsut at
Deir el-Bahri with the
staircase of AmmunRe. Hatshepsut chose
this site for her funeral
temple which was called

8.2a

8.2b

360

8 - Stones That Speak


8.2c

8.2d) The site


alongside the
temple where the
university stood
where Moses in
all likelihood received his education.

Djeser-Djeseru (the Holy


of Holies).

8.2d

8.2e

8.2e) The temple


at Deir el-Bahri
shows many features of Egyptian
sun worship. Here,
the facade of the
entrance hall is
fronted by a row
of pillars depicting
the god Osiris.

361

The Genesis Conflict


8.2f

8.2f-8.2i) shows
the images of
Hathor worship
at the chapel of
Hathor on the
south of the
temple. The pillar (8.2f) shows
the face of the
goddess Hathor
and in 8.2g,
8.2h & 8.2i)
the goddess is
depicted as the
divine cow. In
8.2g) the solar disc can be
seen between
the horns of
Hathor, in 8.2h)
Hathor is being
fed and in 8.2i)

8.2g

8.2h

Hatshepsut is
seen drinking
from the udder
of Hathor.
After
having eliminated Hatshepsut, Tutmoses
III started a

362

8 - Stones That Speak


8.2i

82j

363

The Genesis Conflict


8.2k

program to eradicate the memory of Hatshepsut. He had the statues


of Hatshepsut destroyed 8.2l
both at Deir el-Bahri and
at Karnak and he had her
images defaced. It is interesting, however, that
reliefs of her where she is
engaged in pagan rituals
were preserved, such as
the image of her drinking
from the cult images of
Hathor. This is an indication that posterity was to

364

8 - Stones That Speak


forget aspects of Hatshepsut other than her pagan roots. In 8.2j &
8.2k the images of Hatshepsut were chiseled out of the wall at
Deir el-Bahri and Karnak respectively. In 8.2l), can be seen one
of the few busts of Hatshepsut that survived the destruction and
which is now housed in the Egyptian Museum, Berlin.
8.3a

Tutmoses III
Figure 8.3a) Bust of Tutmoses
III who ruled from 1504 1450
BC. According to the Biblical
chronology of the exodus, this is
the pharaoh that ruled when the
children of Israel were delivered.

8.3b) The tomb of Tutmoses


III in the Valley of the Kings.
The tomb contains descriptions from the book of the afterworld, which is attributed
to this pharaoh. Within the
tomb there is also a chamber
with two columns and the
burial chamber is cartouche
shaped and also has two
columns. Two columns are
also a feature of modern day
occultic practices.

8.3b

365

The Genesis Conflict


8.3c) The mummy
of Tutmoses III is
housed in the Cairo
Museum, but it has
been branded a fake
since the mummy is of
a much younger man
than was the pharaoh
when he died.
8.3d & 8.3e) Images
of pagan deities such

8.3c

as the scarab
beetle, the goat
form of Amun,
the cow Hathor
and serpents.
According to
the Scriptures,
the pharaoh
of the exodus
challenged
God and in
one incident
his magicians

8.3d

8.3e

366

8 - Stones That Speak


8.3f

8.3g

were able to turn their staffs into serpents. The Tomb of


Tutmoses III contains numerous images of serpents and the
serpent, as staff is also a very common design on the tomb
walls. (8.3f & 8.3g) Pharaoh seated with serpent standing in
front of him and a priest of Horus (the eagle head is a depiction
of Horus) throwing a staff with a further image of the serpent
367

The Genesis Conflict


8.3h

serpent staffs. These murals


show an amazing similarity to the story recorded in
the Scriptures.

standing before him as well


as images of worshipping the
deity by bowing down toward
the serpent.
8.3h & 8.3i) show priests
representing other deities
(such as Amun) also with
8.3i

8.4a

Amenhotep II and his


son Tutmoses IV
Figure 8.4a) Statue of Amenhotep II at Karnak where the
inscription states that all is
8.4b

well in his kingdom. This is


a typical example of selective reporting, because this
is the pharaoh that, upon his
return from Syro-Palestine,
found his kingdom almost
368

8 - Stones That Speak


annihilated by the plagues, his
father and first-born son dead and
the Israelite slaves gone. He also
vented his anger on the captives of
his campaigns by beheading them
and displaying their heads on his
barge. 8.4b) Mural on the wall of
the tomb of Amenhotep II showing
the goddess Hathor holding out
the ankh, the symbol of life, to the
pharaoh. 8.4c & 8.4d) The stela
between the legs of the sphinx,
telling the story how the next

8.4c

8.4d

pharaoh (Tutmoses
IV) became pharaoh
instead of his firstborn brother. This is
a further example of
distorted reporting,
since the Bible says
that the first-born died
in the 10th plague, but
the stela reports that
8.5a

the king was rewarded for removing


the sand that had accumulated between
the legs of the sphinx by becoming the next pharaoh instead of his
first-born brother.

369

The Genesis Conflict


8.5b

Amenhotep III

8.5c

Figure 8.5a) Quartzite


head of Amenhotep III
wearing the red crown of
Lower Egypt British Museum London. The style
of the sculpture shows
leanings towards realism as portrayed during
the Amarna period at the
end of the 18th Dynasty.
8.5b) These two large
statues (20 meters tall)
of Amenhotep III are
known as the colossi
of Memnon and were
placed in the sun court
of his mortuary temple.
An earthquake in 27
370

8 - Stones That Speak


BC8.5d
caused one of 8.5d
them to crack and
when the wind
blew through the
crack a mournful
sound was made
which became
known as the cry
of lament. After
the statue was restored in AD 199,
the sound ceased.
8.5c) The statue
is still similar to
the art form prior
to the Amarna Period, since prior
to this period,
the wives and
consorts of the
pharaohs were
assigned minor positions on
such statues.
8.5d) Destroyed
mural of Amenhotep III. During the latter half of his reign, Amenhotep III
experienced a shift in religious emphasis, which was taken
further by his son Amenhotep IV who later changed his name to
Akhenaten, thus showing a break in the worship of Amun and a
switch toward monotheism and to the worship of the one creator
God. In both the cases of Amenhotep III and Akhenaten, their
statues and murals were also largely defaced or destroyed as in
the case of Hatshepsut. It appears as if a switch in religion was
not readily tolerated.
371

The Genesis Conflict


8.6a

Amenhotep IV
(Akhenaten) and
his Family
Figure 8.6a & 8.6b)
Akhenaten - Depicted with his wife
Nefertiti and their
first three children,
and the pharaoh
kissing his wife. Egyptian art
was transformed during the
Amarna Period and Akhenaten had himself portrayed
as he was, complete with
potbelly. Also the relationship between the pharaoh and
his family is displayed as a
loving relationship with the
wife, depicted as an equal by

8.6b

8.6c

his side and the children being coddled by the couple. Under Atenism,
the sun was not worshipped, but
served as a symbol of the creator
God. (8.6c-8.6e) Akhenaten and
his wife Nefertiti (8.6d, Egyptian
Museum, Berlin). While sculptors
were busy on the second bust of

372

8 - Stones That Speak


8.6d

Nefertiti (8.6d), she and her husband,


Akhenaten were brutally murdered. The
worship of the creator God was short
lived, and during the next generation
of pharaohs there is a reversal to Amun
worship.
8.6e
Akhenaten
broke so
completely
with the old
religion that
he even built a new capital and, unlike previous pharaohs, he built their
tombs on the western side of the Nile.
They were put to death because they
dared to believe in Maat, the Egyptian
name for truth.
8.7a

Tutanhkamun and his


wife Ankensenamun
Figure 8.7a & 8.7b) Royal
throne of Tutankhamun (Tutankaten) still depicting the
worship of Aten, here shown
with Ankensenpaaten.

373

The Genesis Conflict


There were other
thrones found with
the treasures of Tutankhamun including
a polytheistic throne
and an ecclesiastical
throne (8.7c). Before
their death, the third

8.7b

8.7c

7c)

eldest daughter of Akhenaten and Nefertiti,


Ankensenpaaten, married Tutankaten. In
this relief the wife touches her husband.

8.7d

374

8 - Stones That Speak


Tutankaten, which means 'in the living image of Aten', changed his
name to Tutankamun, which means 'in the living image of Amun'.
He thus forsook the worship of Aten for the worship of Amun, but
he only reigned for a short time and then suddenly died. Some
scholars believe he was also murdered. His wifes name was also
changed to Ankensenamun, which means she also changed her
religion. Here at Luxor, the couple is depicted as Tutankhamun and
Ankensenamun (8.7d).

Additional Treasures of Tutankhamun


(Cairo Museum)
Figure 8.8a) Head of Tutankhamun.

8.8a

8.8b) Lid of Tutankhamuns ivory chest which


still depicts Amarna art
and was therefore probably
made while he was still
Tutannkhaten and his queen
was still Ankensenpaaten.

8.8b

375

The Genesis Conflict


8.8c

8.8c) The golden mask of Tutankhamun.


8.8d) The coffin.

8.8d

8.8e

8.8e) The canopic shrine which


contained the kings vital organs.
The four protective goddesses
are Isis, Nephthys, Selket and
Neith. Normally, the internal
organs were placed under the
protection of four divinities
known as the sons of Horus
(Imsety, Hapy, Duamutef and
Quebehsenuf).
8.8e

376

8 - Stones That Speak


8.8f

8.8f) The god Anubis. 8.8g) Statue of the young Tutankhamun


8.8g

8.8h) A model of the boat on


which Tutankhamuns mummy was transported across the
Nile to his final resting place
in the Valley of the Kings.

8.8h

377

The Genesis Conflict


8.8i) Some of the
gods in the Egyptian pantheon that
were to protect the
king. Depicted here
are the earth-god
Geb, the goddess
Nephthys, the sungod Aten, Ihi (son
of Hathor), the god
Mamu, the goddess Isis and the
god Khepri.

8.8i

8.8j

8.8j) The lid of the


canopic chest that
housed the internal
organs of the king

8.8k) the jars which contained the king's viscera.

8.8k

378

8 - Stones That Speak


8.8l

8.8l) One of the


kings chariots.

8.9a

Petra (the siq)


Figure 8.9a) The 1.2 kilometer
Es Siq is the narrow entrance
to the rock city of Petra, the
capital of the Edomites, built
in what the Bible calls the Seir
Mountains. The siq widens in
places and originally the rock
face was decorated with murals and prayer shrines.

379

The Genesis Conflict


8.9b

8.9b & 8.9c)


The remnant of a
sculpture of a man
leading a camel
and a prayer shrine
which would originally have contained an image
of one of the deities. The narrow
siq ends at AlKhazna Farun, a
mausoleum (templetomb) built in
the 1st century BC.
This magnificent

8.9c

380

8 - Stones That Speak


8.9d

8.9e

temple shrine is the very first building one sees as one nears the
end of the siq (8.9d). The temple is hewn out of solid rock (8.9e)
and according to folklore the urn on top was believed to contain
Egyptian treasures but this has never been confirmed.
8.10a

Petra the City


Figure 8.10 The street of
Facades contains highly
decorated Nabataean tombs
8.10b

( 8 . 1 0 a ) , w h ic h w e r e
carved for the wealthy
residents of the city. Prime
location for a tomb was
above the amphitheatre
(8.10b & 8.10c);

381

The Genesis Conflict


8.10c

8.10d

8.10d) the lion's


fountain;

8.10e

10e) the soldier's tomb;

382

8 - Stones That Speak


8.10f

8.10f) a Bedouin rides


on her donkey past
the tombs of Petra;

8.10g

8.10g) the ruins of


the Temple of Isis
which was built
from clay bricks
and was not carved
out of the rock;

8.10h

8.10h) this magnificent temple,


reminiscent of the
Al-Khazna temple, is according
to legend the place
where Miriam the
sister of Moses
was buried.

383

The Genesis Conflict

Petra - the Sacrificial High Place


Figure 8.11a)
The sacrificial
high place, Jabal Madbah,
at Petra and
the steps

8.11a

such as these were present (similar high places with cultic pillars
were also found at Gezer in
Israel where human sacrificial

8.11b) leading
up to the sacrificial high
place. Whenever two obelisks 8.11c)
8.11b

8.11c

remains were excavated), sacrifices, including human sacrifices, were offered to the sun god.
These two represent the gods

384

8 - Stones That Speak

of Dushara and
el Uzza. God told
the Israelites that
they had to destroy their sacred
pillars when the
came into Canaan
(Exodus 23:24).

8.11d

8.11d-8.11f) The place of sacrifice showing the slab where the


victim lay
8.11d) together
with the ritual
sacrificial area.
In the background
is a high mountain with a tiny
white marker
stone, which according to tradition marks the
grave of Aaron,
the High Priest
of Israel and the
brother of Moses. 8.11e) the area where the body was washed and
prepared. Animal sacrifices were routinely sacrificed and in this
area the carcass was prepared.
8.11e

385

The Genesis Conflict


8.11f) The sun disk into which the heart was placed after
the sacrifice.
8.11f
The blood
from the
heart would
trickle down
the groove
into the sacred pool and
the wrath of
the sun god
would be appeased.

8.11g

8.11g) The sacred pool for


ritual washing.
Before and after
the offering of
sacrifices, the
priests washed
their hand in
these pools.

386

8 - Stones That Speak

8.11h

8.11h) One of the temple complexes at Petra where worship


took place. The Irony of Petra is that here the two systems of
religion meet, represented by the priests of Israel and Esau. Also
interesting is that both the graves of Miriam and Aaron are at
Petra. The High Priest of Israel stood as a type of Christ who
through His own sacrifice (represented by the sacrificial lamb)
would take away the sins of the world, whilst Esau, the father
of the Edomites, spurned his birthright and sought salvation in
his own way.

387

The Genesis Conflict

NOTES:

388

Companion DVD's to the


Genesis Conflict are available. To order,
please find us through the following:

AMAZING DISCOVERIES
PO BOX 189
7101C - 120th Street
Delta, BC V4E 2A9
Canada

Tel: 604-856-9457
1-866-572-9457
Website:
amazingdiscoveries.org

Email:
info@amazingdiscoveries.org

389

You might also like